Selected quad for the lemma: cause_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
cause_n good_a true_a work_n 3,594 5 6.0209 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A11516 The historie of the Councel of Trent Conteining eight bookes. In which (besides the ordinarie actes of the Councell) are declared many notable occurrences, which happened in Christendome, during the space of fourtie yeeres and more. And, particularly, the practises of the Court of Rome, to hinder the reformation of their errors, and to maintaine their greatnesse. Written in Italian by Pietro Soaue Polano, and faithfully translated into English by Nathanael Brent.; Historia del Concilio tridentino. English Sarpi, Paolo, 1552-1623.; Brent, Nathaniel, Sir, 1573?-1652. 1629 (1629) STC 21762; ESTC S116697 1,096,909 905

There are 50 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

read_v the_o protestation_n which_o he_o hold_v write_v in_o his_o hand_n he_o begin_v with_o the_o emperor_n vigilancy_n and_o diligence_n to_o reunite_v christendom_n divide_v into_o diverse_a opinion_n of_o religion_n he_o show_v what_o request_v he_o have_v make_v to_o adrian_n clement_n and_o paul_n himself_o to_o persuade_v they_o to_o call_v the_o council_n unto_o which_o the_o rebel_n of_o germany_n refuse_v to_o submit_v he_o have_v compel_v they_o to_o obedience_n by_o force_n of_o arm_n wherein_o though_o the_o pope_n to_o show_v he_o will_v not_o be_v want_v to_o the_o public_a cause_n do_v contribute_v some_o small_a assistance_n of_o man_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o the_o war_n be_v finish_v only_o by_o the_o emperor_n force_n in_o which_o while_o he_o be_v busy_v behold_v the_o good_a work_n begin_v in_o trent_n be_v interrupt_v by_o a_o pernicious_a attempt_n of_o transfer_v the_o council_n upon_o pretence_n neither_o true_a nor_o probable_a to_o this_o purpose_n only_o that_o public_a quiet_n may_v be_v hinder_v notwithstanding_o the_o more_o godly_a and_o sound_a part_n of_o the_o father_n do_v oppose_v and_o remain_v in_o the_o place_n that_o the_o name_n of_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o those_o not_o to_o those_o who_o be_v retire_v to_o bolonia_n honour_v by_o his_o holiness_n with_o the_o name_n of_o his_o adherent_n who_o will_v he_o prefer_v 〈◊〉_d before_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o ferdinand_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o empire_n not_o regard_v the_o good_a of_o germany_n nor_o the_o conversion_n of_o those_o 〈…〉_o to_o reduce_v who●●_n see_v they_o be_v content_a to_o submit_v to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 〈…〉_o remain_v nothing_o but_o to_o reduce_v it_o to_o that_o city_n for_o which_o be_v request_v in_o the_o foresay_a name_n by_o he_o the_o ambassador_n he_o have_v give_v a_o answerefull_a of_o chan_v but_o void_a of_o reason_n wherefore_o see_v that_o the_o evangelicall_a requisition_n make_v by_o he_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n to_o his_o holiness_n the_o 14._o and_o 27._o of_o december_n and_o the_o 16._o of_o januarie_n by_o other_o proctor_n of_o his_o majesty_n in_o bolonia_n have_v be_v neglect_v in_o both_o place_n he_o do_v then_o protest_v that_o the_o departure_n from_o trent_n and_o translation_n of_o the_o council_n to_o bolonia_n be_v void_a and_o unlawful_a will_v bring_v contention_n into_o the_o church_n and_o put_v the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o religion_n in_o danger_n and_o do_v for_o the_o present_n give_v ●eandall_n to_o the_o church_n and_o deform_v the_o state_n thereof_o that_o all_o the_o ruin_n scandal_n and_o dissension_n which_o will_v arise_v ought_v to_o be_v impute_v to_o his_o holiness_n who_o though_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o provide_v against_o they_o even_o with_o the_o loss_n of_o his_o blood_n yet_o do_v favour_n and_o cherish_v the_o author_n of_o they_o that_o the_o emperor_n in_o defect_n and_o fault_n of_o his_o holiness_n will_v employ_v all_o his_o force_n to_o make_v provision_n herein_o according_a to_o the_o form_n set_v down_o by_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o observe_v by_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n then_o turn_v to_o the_o cardinal_n he_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n refuse_v to_o take_v care_n for_o the_o peach_n of_o religion_n unite_n of_o germany_n and_o reformation_n of_o manner_n if_o they_o also_o will_v be_v negligent_a he_o make_v the_o same_o protestation_n unto_o they_o and_o leave_v the_o writing_n which_o he_o have_v in_o his_o hand_n he_o depart_v the_o pope_n consider_v the_o protestation_n of_o mendoza_n and_o advise_v of_o the_o business_n with_o the_o cardinal_n see_v he_o be_v in_o a_o strait_a and_o that_o to_o be_v take_v for_o cause_n the_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d ●●te_n to_o make_v himself_o neutral_a and_o judge_n in_o the_o cause_n a_o party_n and_o to_o have_v the_o contention_n turn_v against_o he_o be_v much_o against_o his_o reputation_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o remedy_n but_o by_o find_v a_o way_n to_o make_v himself_o neutral_a and_o judge_n between_o they_o who_o approve_v and_o who_o oppugn_v the_o translation_n to_o do_v this_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o decline_v the_o protestation_n that_o it_o may_v seem_v not_o to_o be_v make_v against_o he_o but_o before_o he_o against_o those_o of_o bolonia_n in_o which_o not_o be_v able_a to_o dissemble_v sufficient_o he_o resolve_v to_o lay_v to_o the_o ambassador_n charge_n the_o transgress_a of_o his_o master_n manda_n 〈…〉_o think_v that_o the_o emperor_n see_v his_o dexterity_n in_o blame_v his_o minister_n that_o he_o may_v not_o break_v with_o his_o majesty_n will_v imitate_v he_o and_o proceed_v as_o if_o he_o have_v protest_v against_o those_o of_o bolonia_n acknowledge_v the_o pope_n for_o judge_n therefore_o on_o wednesday_n the_o first_o of_o february_n call_v mendoza_n into_o the_o consistory_n he_o make_v a_o very_a long_a answer_n and_o say_v in_o substance_n that_o to_o protest_v be_v a_o thing_n of_o bad_a example_n use_v by_o those_o who_o have_v shake_v off_o obedience_n or_o be_v not_o constant_a in_o it_o that_o himself_o and_o the_o college_n of_o cardinal_n be_v sorry_a for_o that_o unexpected_a action_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o fatherly_a love_n he_o have_v always_o bear_v the_o emperor_n and_o because_o it_o be_v do_v when_o it_o be_v least_o look_v for_o have_v make_v war_n and_o gain_v protestation_n the_o answer_n of_o his_o holiness_n to_o the_o protestation_n the_o victory_n against_o his_o own_o and_o the_o church_n enemy_n and_o be_v assist_v by_o the_o pope_n man_n maintain_v with_o his_o immense_a charge_n which_o succour_n be_v great_a and_o come_v in_o fit_a time_n and_o deserve_v not_o such_o a_o reward_n after_o victory_n that_o be_v that_o the_o end_n of_o the_o war_n shall_v be_v the_o beginning_n of_o protest_v against_o he_o but_o he_o do_v ●itigate_v his_o grief_n because_o the_o ambassador_n have_v exceed_v the_o bound_n of_o the_o emperor_n commission_n in_o which_o he_o ha●●_n command_v his_o proctor_n at_o bolonia_n to_o protest_v to_o the_o legate_n and_o to_o he_o to_o protest_v against_o the_o council_n of_o bolonia_n in_o presence_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o cardinal_n but_o not_o against_o the_o pope_n that_o the_o emperor_n have_v do_v the_o office_n of_o a_o modest_a prince_n know_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v the_o only_a lawful_a judge_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o translation_n which_o if_o he_o shall_v refuse_v to_o determine_v than_o the_o protestation_n against_o he_o shall_v take_v place_n and_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v more_o fit_a that_o if_o the_o father_n remain_v in_o trent_n have_v cause_n of_o complaint_n against_o those_o of_o bolonia_n they_o shall_v make_v the_o process_n before_o he_o but_o the_o ambassador_n have_v pervert_v the_o order_n leave_v the_o petition_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v make_v and_o require_v a_o undue_a proiudi●e_n against_o the_o council_n so_o that_o the_o act_n of_o the_o protestation_n fall_v of_o itself_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o answer_n yet_o to_o clear_v all_o man_n mind_n he_o will_v make_v one_o and_o first_o for_o that_o he_o tax_v he_o as_o negligent_a and_o commend_v the_o emperor_n as_o industrious_a he_o say_v he_o will_v not_o detract_v from_o the_o good_a meaning_n and_o action_n of_o his_o maiostie_a but_o yet_o that_o he_o do_v precede_v he_o as_o in_o age_n so_o in_o diligence_n he_o say_v he_o have_v ever_o desire_v the_o council_n and_o show_v it_o by_o effect_n and_o here_o he_o discourse_v of_o all_o his_o action_n do_v to_o this_o end_n and_o how_o other_o do_v cross_v he_o and_o sometime_o the_o emperor_n himself_o with_o diverse_a war_n he_o add_v that_o to_o judge_v whether_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o translation_n be_v lawful_a or_o no_o be_v reserve_v to_o himself_o that_o to_o praise_v those_o of_o trent_n be_v to_o praise_v those_o who_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n that_o he_o refuse_v not_o nor_o ever_o do_v that_o they_o shall_v return_v to_o trent_n so_o that_o it_o may_v be_v do_v lawful_o and_o without_o offence_n of_o other_o nation_n that_o to_o think_v only_a trent_n fit_a to_o celebrate_v the_o council_n be_v to_o wrong_v the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v worship_v and_o present_a in_o all_o place_n neither_o ought_v regard_v to_o be_v have_v that_o germany_n have_v need_n of_o a_o medicine_n fo●_n by_o that_o reason_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o general_a council_n hold_v in_o england_n and_o also_o where_o that_o a_o commodious_a place_n be_v not_o seek_v for_o those_o for_o who_o the_o law_n be_v make_v but_o for_o those_o who_o make_v they_o which_o be_v the_o bishop_n that_o often_o time_n counsel_n have_v be_v make_v out_o of_o the_o province_n where_o the_o heresy_n have_v reign_v that_o he_o know_v why_o he_o be_v
successor_n of_o s._n peter_n give_v they_o his_o benediction_n the_o archbishop_n of_o mentz_n answer_v the_o legate_n oration_n by_o order_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o be_v answer_v by_o the_o archbishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d emperor_n and_o the_o diet_n that_o caesar_n as_o supreme_a advocate_n of_o the_o church_n will_v use_v all_o mean_n to_o compose_v the_o disorder_n will_v employ_v all_o his_o force_n in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d against_o the_o turk_n and_o that_o all_o the_o prince_n will_v join_v themselves_o 〈…〉_o that_o their_o action_n shall_v be_v approve_v by_o god_n and_o the_o pope_n after_o this_o many_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v hear_v the_o elector_n of_o sacco_n 〈…〉_o and_o protestant_n city_n soyn_v with_o he_o present_v to_o the_o emperor_n she_o confession_n of_o their_o faith_n write_v latin_a and_o dutch_a 〈…〉_o it_o may_v be_v read_v but_o the_o emperor_n refuse_v to_o have_v it_o zwinglians_n the_o lutheran_n do_v present_v a_o confession_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o so_o do_v the_o zwinglians_n 〈◊〉_d in_o public_a it_o be_v put_v off_o until_o the_o next_o day_n when_o the_o legate_n will_v not_o be_v present_a for_o fear_v of_o receive_v some_o prejudice_n but_o the_o prince_n be_v assemble_v before_o the_o emperor_n in_o a_o hall_n capable_a to_o receive_v about_o 〈◊〉_d person_n it_o be_v read_v with_o aloud_o voice_n and_o the_o city_n which_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la present_v apart_o the_o confession_n of_o their_o faith_n not_o differ_v from_o the_o former_a but_o only_o in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o eucharist_n the_o confession_n of_o the_o prince_n which_o afterward_o from_o this_o place_n where_o it_o be_v read_v be_v call_v augustana_n contain_v two_o part_n in_o the_o first_o be_v 〈…〉_o the_o name_n of_o the_o augustan_n confession_n bega_fw-la 〈…〉_o expound_v 〈…〉_o de_fw-fr of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n of_o original_a sin_n of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o justification_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n of_o the_o eucharist_n of_o confession_n of_o penance_n of_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o ecclesiastical_a order_n of_o the_o rite_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o civil_a commonwealth_n of_o the_o last_o ●udgement_n of_o free_a will_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o sin_n of_o faith_n of_o good_a work_n and_o worship_v of_o saint_n in_o the_o second_o be_v expound_v the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v different_a from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n &_o the_o abuse_n which_o the_o confessionist_n reproove_v and_o these_o be_v declare_v at_o large_a in_o seven_o article_n of_o the_o holy_a communion_n marriage_n of_o priest_n of_o the_o mass_n of_o confession_n of_o the_o distinction_n of_o meat_n of_o monastical_a vow_n and_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n in_o conclusion_n they_o offer_v in_o case_n it_o be_v needful_a a_o more_o full_a information_n but_o in_o the_o proheme_n thereof_o they_o deliver_v that_o they_o have_v put_v their_o confession_n in_o writing_n to_o obey_v the_o propose_v of_o his_o majesty_n that_o all_o man_n ought_v to_o present_v their_o opinion_n and_o therefore_o if_o the_o other_o prince_n will_v give_v up_o they_o in_o writing_n they_o be_v ready_a to_o confer_v peaceable_o with_o they_o that_o they_o may_v come_v to_o a_o agreement_n whereunto_o in_o case_n they_o can_v not_o come_v his_o majesty_n have_v give_v they_o to_o understand_v in_o all_o the_o former_a diet_n that_o he_o can_v not_o determine_v or_o conclude_v any_o matter_n of_o religion_n for_o diverse_a respect_n then_o allege_v but_o that_o he_o will_v persuade_v the_o pope_n to_o call_v a_o general_a council_n and_o final_o have_v cause_v it_o to_o be_v say_v in_o the_o diet_n of_o spira_n that_o the_o difference_n between_o his_o majesty_n and_o the_o pope_n be_v ready_a to_o be_v compose_v there_o can_v be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o will_v give_v consent_n unto_o it_o they_o offer_v to_o app_z 〈…〉_o and_o to_o give_v a_o reason_n and_o make_v a_o defence_n of_o their_o cause_n in_o such_o a_o general_a free_a and_o christian_a assembly_n of_o which_o it_o have_v always_o be_v treat_v in_o all_o the_o diet_n celebrate_v during_o the_o time_n of_o his_o empire_n unto_o which_o council_n and_o to_o his_o majesty_n they_o have_v former_o in_o due_a form_n and_o upon_o good_a cause_n appeal_v unto_o which_o appeal_n they_o do_v yet_o adhere_v not_o intend_v to_o abandon_v it_o neither_o by_o this_o treaty_n nor_o by_o any_o other_o if_o the_o difference_n be_v not_o charitable_o reduce_v first_o to_o a_o christian_a concord_n this_o be_v the_o only_a act_n of_o the_o first_o day_n but_o the_o emperor_n before_o he_o make_v any_o resolution_n will_v have_v the_o legate_n advice_n who_o have_v read_v confession_n the_o legate_n will_v not_o censure_v the_o confession_n and_o consider_v the_o confession_n together_o with_o the_o divine_n which_o he_o bring_v out_o of_o italy_n though_o he_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v oppose_v and_o a_o censure_n publish_v under_o his_o name_n yet_o foresee_v that_o it_o will_v give_v occasion_n of_o great_a tumult_n and_o say_v plain_o that_o the_o difference_n for_o the_o most_o part_n seem_v verbal_a and_o that_o it_o import_v not_o much_o whether_o one_o speak_v after_o one_o manner_n or_o after_o another_o and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o reasonable_a that_o the_o apostolical_a sea_n shall_v take_v part_n in_o the_o disputation_n of_o the_o school_n he_o con●ented_v not_o to_o have_v his_o name_n use_v in_o the_o contention_n and_o he_o answer_v the_o emperor_n that_o for_o the_o present_a there_o be_v no_o cause_n to_o make_v any_o 〈◊〉_d examination_n of_o the_o doctrine_n but_o to_o consider_v the_o example_n which_o will_v be_v give_v to_o all_o unquiet_a and_o subtle_a wit_n who_o will_v not_o have_v want_v infinite_a other_o novity_n to_o propose_v with_o no_o less_o probability_n which_o will_v have_v be_v hear_v with_o greediness_n because_o of_o the_o itch_a of_o care_n which_o they_o stir_v up_o in_o the_o world_n and_o that_o by_o correct_v the_o abuse_n that_o be_v note_v great_a inconueniency_n will_v be_v raise_v then_o those_o which_o one_o seek_v to_o remedy_n that_o his_o opinion_n be_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o lutheran_n be_v read_v to_o remove_v all_o prejudice_n a_o confutation_n thereof_o shall_v be_v read_v likewise_o which_o shall_v not_o be_v give_v but_o give_v order_n that_o a_o confutation_n thereof_o shall_v be_v read_v and_o no_o copy_n give_v publish_v in_o copy_n for_o fear_n of_o open_v a_o way_n to_o disputation_n but_o mean_n shall_v be_v use_v that_o the_o protestant_n shall_v 〈◊〉_d from_o go_v further_o on_o by_o propose_v favour_n and_o threat_n but_o the_o confession_n be_v 〈…〉_o it_o wrought_v diverse_a effect_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o catholic_n who_o hear_v it_o some_o think_v the_o protestant_n more_o wicked_a than_o they_o be_v persuade_v before_o they_o be_v inform_v of_o their_o particular_a opinion_n other_o on_o the_o contrary_a remit_v much_o of_o the_o bad_a conceit_n they_o have_v against_o they_o esteem_v their_o opinion_n not_o to_o absurd_a as_o before_o they_o do_v yea_o for_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o abuse_n they_o confess_v they_o be_v just_o reprehend_v it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v omit_v that_o cardinal_n mattheo_n langi_n archbishop_n of_o salzburg_n tell_v every_o one_o that_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o mass_n monk_n the_o archbishop_n of_o salzburg_n will_v not_o have_v the_o world_n reform_v by_o a_o monk_n be_v honest_a the_o liberty_n of_o meat_n convenient_a and_o the_o demand_v just_a to_o be_v disburden_v of_o so_o many_o commandment_n of_o man_n but_o that_o a_o poor_a monk_n shall_v reform_v all_o be_v not_o to_o be_v endure_v and_o cornelius_n scoperus_fw-la the_o emperor_n secretary_n say_v that_o if_o the_o protestant_a preacher_n have_v money_n they_o will_v easy_o buy_v of_o the_o italian_n what_o religion_n please_v they_o best_o but_o without_o gold_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o make_v they_o shine_n in_o the_o world_n the_o emperor_n according_a to_o the_o legate_n advice_n approve_v also_o by_o his_o own_o counsellor_n desirous_a to_o compose_v all_o by_o a_o negative_a go_v first_o about_o to_o separate_v the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o city_n from_o join_v with_o the_o prince_n which_o project_n not_o succeed_v he_o cause_v a_o confutation_n to_o be_v make_v of_o what_o the_o protestant_n put_v up_o in_o writing_n and_o another_o of_o that_o which_o be_v produce_v by_o the_o city_n and_o have_v call_v the_o whole_a diet_n together_o he_o tell_v the_o protestant_n that_o he_o have_v consider_v of_o the_o confession_n present_v unto_o he_o and_o give_v order_n to_o some_o pious_a and_o learned_a man_n to_o deliver_v their_o opinion_n thereof_o and_o here_o
which_o make_v a_o judicial_a process_n and_o say_v that_o none_o can_v accuse_v or_o condemn_v gods_n elect_n because_o god_n do_v iustifiethem_n where_o the_o judicial_a word_n to_o accuse_v and_o condemn_v do_v show_v that_o the_o word_n justify_v be_v judicial_a also_o but_o the_o franciscan_n approve_v habitual_a grace_n because_o charity_n itself_o be_v a_o habit_n and_o here_o be_v a_o sharp_a disputation_n between_o they_o and_o the_o dominican_n whether_o the_o habit_n of_o grace_n be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o habit_n of_o charity_n as_o scotus_n will_v or_o distinct_a as_o saint_n thomas_n and_o neither_o party_n yield_v they_o debate_v whether_o beside_o this_o grace_n or_o inherent_a justice_n the_o justice_n of_o christ_n also_o be_v impute_v to_o the_o justify_v as_o if_o it_o be_v his_o own_o which_o they_o do_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o opinion_n of_o alvertus_fw-la pighius_fw-la who_o confess_v the_o inherent_a add_v that_o we_o must_v not_o trust_v in_o that_o but_o in_o the_o impute_a justice_n of_o christ_n as_o if_o it_o be_v we_o none_o doubt_v that_o christ_n have_v merit_v for_o we_o but_o some_o blame_v the_o word_n to_o impute_v and_o will_v have_v it_o abolish_v because_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o father_n who_o content_v themselves_o with_o the_o word_n communication_n participation_n diffusion_n derivation_n application_n computation_n and_o conjunction_n other_o say_v that_o agree_v upon_o the_o thing_n they_o ought_v not_o to_o differ_v upon_o the_o word_n because_o it_o signify_v precise_o the_o same_o that_o the_o other_o do_v which_o though_o not_o by_o all_o and_o often_o yet_o sometime_o be_v use_v for_o this_o the_o 109._o epistle_n of_o saint_n barnard_n be_v bring_v and_o vega_n defend_v that_o though_o the_o word_n be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o scripture_n yet_o it_o be_v a_o most_o proper_a latin_a word_n to_o say_v that_o the_o justice_n of_o christ_n be_v impute_v to_o mankind_n for_o satisfaction_n and_o merit_n and_o that_o it_o be_v continual_o impute_v to_o all_o that_o be_v justify_v and_o do_v satisfy_v for_o their_o own_o sin_n but_o he_o will_v not_o have_v it_o say_v it_o be_v impute_v as_o if_o it_o be_v we_o whereunto_o it_o be_v oppose_v that_o saint_n thomas_n use_v to_o say_v that_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n be_v communicate_v to_o the_o baptize_v for_o remission_n as_o if_o himself_o have_v sustain_v it_o and_o die_v there_o be_v a_o long_a and_o great_a contention_n upon_o his_o word_n the_o eremite_n general_n hold_v a_o opinion_n that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n the_o justice_n of_o christ_n be_v impute_v because_o it_o be_v communicate_v whole_o and_o entire_o but_o not_o in_o penance_n when_o our_o satisfaction_n be_v also_o require_v but_o soto_n say_v the_o word_n imputation_n be_v most_o popular_a and_o plausible_a because_o it_o signify_v at_o the_o first_o sight_n that_o all_o shall_v be_v acknowledge_v from_o christ_n but_o yet_o that_o he_o do_v ever_o suspect_v it_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o bad_a consequence_n which_o the_o lutheran_n draw_v from_o thence_o that_o be_v that_o this_o only_a be_v sufficient_a without_o inherent_a righteousness_n that_o the_o sacrament_n do_v not_o confer_v grace_n that_o the_o punishment_n be_v abolish_v together_o with_o the_o guilt_n that_o there_o remain_v no_o place_n for_o satisfaction_n that_o all_o be_v equal_a in_o grace_n justice_n and_o glory_n whence_o they_o deduce_v also_o that_o abominable_a blasphemy_n that_o every_o just_a man_n be_v equal_a to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n this_o admonition_n beget_v such_o a_o suspicion_n in_o the_o hearer_n that_o there_o appear_v a_o manifest_a inclination_n to_o condemn_v the_o word_n for_o heretical_a though_o reason_n be_v effectual_o reply_v to_o the_o contrary_n the_o contention_n between_o the_o theologue_n do_v certain_o arise_v from_o the_o immoderate_a affection_n they_o bear_v to_o their_o own_o sect_n and_o be_v cherish_v by_o diverse_a for_o diverse_a end_n by_o the_o imperialist_n to_o constrain_v they_o to_o abandon_v justification_n by_o the_o courtier_n to_o find_v a_o way_n to_o separate_v the_o council_n and_o so_o to_o avoid_v the_o imminent_a reformation_n and_o by_o other_o to_o free_v themselves_o from_o incommodity_n which_o they_o fear_v will_v be_v great_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o dearth_n protestant_n contention_n in_o the_o council_n be_v cherish_v by_o diverse_a for_o diverse_a end_n a_o jubily_n be_v publish_v in_o rome_n in_o which_o religion_n be_v declare_v to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o war●e_n against_o the_o protestant_n and_o of_o the_o war_n which_o approach_v and_o the_o rather_o because_o they_o have_v little_a hope_n to_o do_v good_a but_o while_o they_o thus_o dispute_v in_o trent_n the_o pope_n publish_v a_o jubilee_n in_o rome_n the_o fifteen_o of_o july_n by_o which_o he_o ease_v the_o prince_n of_o germany_n of_o the_o pain_n to_o find_v out_o or_o persuade_v other_o the_o true_a cause_n of_o the_o war_n for_o have_v large_o declare_v in_o that_o bull_n his_o pastoral_a affection_n and_o care_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n relate_v the_o perdition_n of_o soul_n by_o the_o increase_n of_o heresy_n and_o that_o to_o root_v they_o out_o the_o council_n be_v already_o begin_v he_o bewail_v above_o measure_n the_o obstinacy_n of_o the_o heretic_n who_o contemn_v and_o refuse_v to_o obey_v it_o and_o to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o determination_n thereof_o for_o remedy_v whereof_o he_o have_v make_v a_o league_n with_o the_o emperor_n to_o reduce_v they_o to_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o church_n by_o force_n of_o arm_n he_o therefore_o wish_v they_o all_o to_o have_v recourse_n unto_o god_n by_o prayer_n fasting_n confession_n and_o communion_n that_o god_n of_o his_o divine_a majesty_n will_v give_v a_o good_a issue_n to_o this_o war_n undertake_v for_o his_o glory_n exaltation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o extirpation_n of_o heresy_n the_o emperor_n in_o conformity_n to_o his_o purpose_n of_o conceal_v the_o cause_n of_o landgrave_n the_o emperor_n band●_n against_o the_o sax_n on_o and_o landgrave_n religion_n the_o twenty_o of_o the_o same_o month_n publish_v a_o bando_n against_o the_o saxon_a and_o landgrave_n lay_v to_o their_o charge_n that_o they_o have_v always_o hinder_v his_o design_n have_v never_o obey_v he_o make_v conspiracy_n against_o he_o move_v war_n against_o other_o prince_n of_o the_o empire_n seize_v upon_o bishopricke_n and_o other_o government_n dispossess_v many_o of_o their_o good_n and_o cover_v all_o these_o thing_n with_o the_o glorious_a and_o sweet_a name_n of_o religion_n peace_n and_o liberty_n but_o have_v indeed_o rather_o any_o other_o end_n therefore_o he_o do_v prescribe_v they_o as_o perfidious_a rebel_n seditious_a guilty_a of_o high_a treason_n and_o enemy_n of_o the_o public_a peace_n and_o command_v that_o none_o do_v assist_v they_o or_o be_v link_v with_o they_o absolu_v the_o nobility_n and_o people_n of_o their_o dominion_n from_o their_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n include_v all_o those_o in_o the_o bando_n who_o persevere_v to_o obey_v they_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o war_n allege_v by_o the_o emperor_n grieve_v the_o pope_n and_o war_n the_o pope_n and_o the_o emperor_n be_v offend_v one_o with_o another_o for_o allege_v diverse_a cause_n of_o the_o war_n that_o of_o the_o pope_n grieve_v the_o emperor_n because_o both_o their_o end_n be_v hinder_v for_o though_o the_o pope_n pretend_v that_o he_o have_v publish_v this_o manifest_a that_o all_o the_o people_n of_o christendom_n may_v implore_v the_o aid_n of_o god_n to_o favour_v the_o emperor_n arm_n yet_o both_o he_o and_o every_o man_n of_o judgement_n know_v very_o well_o that_o it_o be_v to_o give_v notice_n to_o germany_n and_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o the_o war_n be_v for_o religion_n which_o the_o simple_a sort_n also_o do_v know_v a_o little_a after_o for_o his_o letter_n to_o the_o swiss_n before_o mention_v and_o a_o copy_n of_o the_o capitulation_n make_v with_o madruccio_n be_v publish_v the_o pope_n cross_v caesar_n in_o this_o because_o he_o desire_v the_o suppression_n of_o the_o protestant_n without_o the_o exaltation_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o therefore_o to_o balance_v they_o well_o he_o mean_v to_o constrain_v all_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n to_o unite_v against_o he_o and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o pope_n action_n hinder_v the_o emperor_n design_n for_o desire_v the_o swiss_n to_o continue_v their_o league_n with_o the_o house_n of_o austria_n and_o burgundy_n and_o not_o assist_v the_o rebel_n the_o euangelike_n answer_v that_o they_o will_v first_o be_v sure_a that_o the_o war_n be_v not_o for_o religion_n so_o it_o happen_v that_o the_o war_n be_v but_o new_o begin_v diseord_n be_v already_o sow_v between_o the_o prince_n late_o confederated_a the_o potentate_n of_o italy_n be_v amaze_v
place_n of_o the_o other_o epistle_n where_o he_o say_v we_o have_v nothing_o but_o what_o we_o have_v receive_v from_o god_n that_o we_o be_v not_o able_a of_o ourselves_o so_o much_o as_o to_o think_v well_o and_o where_o in_o give_v the_o cause_n why_o some_o have_v revolt_v from_o the_o faith_n and_o some_o stand_v firm_a he_o say_v it_o be_v because_o the_o foundation_n of_o god_n stand_v sure_a and_o have_v this_o seal_n the_o lord_n know_v who_o be_v he_o they_o add_v diverse_a passage_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o saint_n john_n and_o infinite_a authority_n of_o saint_n austin_n because_o that_o saint_n write_v nothing_o in_o his_o old_a age_n but_o in_o favour_n of_o this_o doctrine_n but_o some_o other_o though_o of_o less_o esteem_n oppose_v this_o opinion_n call_v it_o hard_o cruel_a inhuman_a horrible_a impious_a and_o that_o it_o show_v partiality_n in_o god_n if_o without_o any_o motive_n cause_n he_o elect_v one_o and_o reject_v another_o and_o unjust_a if_o he_o damn_a man_n for_o his_o own_o will_n and_o not_o for_o their_o fault_n and_o have_v create_v so_o great_a a_o multitude_n to_o condemneit_v they_o say_v it_o destroy_v free_a will_n because_o the_o elect_a can_v final_o do_v evil_a nor_o the_o reprobate_n good_a that_o it_o cast_v man_n into_o a_o gulf_n of_o desperation_n doubt_v that_o they_o be_v reprobate_n that_o it_o give_v occasion_n to_o the_o wicked_a of_o bad_a thought_n not_o care_v for_o penance_n but_o think_v that_o if_o they_o be_v elect_v they_o shall_v not_o perish_v if_o reprobate_n it_o be_v in_o vain_a to_o do_v well_o because_o it_o will_v not_o help_v they_o they_o confess_v that_o not_o only_a work_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o god_n election_n because_o that_o it_o be_v before_o they_o &_o eternal_a but_o that_o neither_o work_n foresee_v can_v move_v god_n to_o predestine_v who_o be_v willing_a for_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n that_o all_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o to_o this_o end_n prepare_v sufficient_a assistance_n for_o all_o which_o every_o man_n have_v freewill_n receive_v or_o refuse_v as_o please_v he_o and_o god_n in_o his_o eternity_n forsee_v those_o who_o will_v receive_v his_o help_n and_o use_v it_o to_o good_a and_o those_o who_o will_v refuse_v and_o reject_v these_o elect_v and_o predestinate_v those_o they_o add_v that_o otherwise_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n shall_v complain_v of_o sinner_n nor_o why_o he_o shall_v exhort_v all_o to_o repentance_n and_o conversion_n if_o they_o have_v not_o sufficient_a mean_n to_o get_v they_o that_o the_o sufficient_a assistance_n invent_v by_o the_o other_o be_v unsufficient_a because_o in_o their_o opinion_n it_o never_o have_v or_o shall_v have_v any_o effect_n the_o first_o opinion_n as_o it_o be_v mystical_a and_o hide_a keep_v the_o mind_n humble_a and_o rely_v on_o god_n without_o any_o confidence_n in_o itself_o know_v the_o deformity_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o excellency_n of_o divine_a grace_n so_o this_o second_o be_v plausible_a and_o popular_a cherish_v humane_a presumption_n and_o make_v a_o great_a show_n and_o it_o please_v more_o the_o preach_a friar_n than_o the_o understanding_n divine_n and_o the_o courtier_n think_v it_o probable_a as_o consonant_a to_o politic_a reason_n it_o be_v maintain_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o bitonto_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o salpi_n show_v himself_o very_o partial_a the_o defender_n of_o this_o use_v humane_a reason_n prevail_v against_o the_o other_o but_o come_v to_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n they_o be_v manifest_o overcome_v catarinus_n hold_v the_o same_o opinion_n to_o resolve_v the_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o trouble_v they_o all_o invent_v a_o middle_a way_n that_o god_n of_o his_o goodness_n have_v elect_v some_o few_o who_o he_o will_v save_v absolute_o for_o who_o he_o have_v prepare_v most_o potent_a effectual_a and_o infallible_a mean_n the_o rest_n he_o desire_v for_o his_o part_n they_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o to_o that_o end_n have_v provide_v sufficient_a mean_n for_o all_o leave_v it_o to_o their_o choice_n to_o accept_v they_o and_o be_v save_v or_o refuse_v they_o and_o be_v damn_v among_o these_o there_o be_v some_o who_o receive_v they_o &_o be_v save_v though_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o elect_a of_o which_o kind_n there_o be_v very_o many_o other_o refuse_v to_o cooperate_v with_o god_n who_o wish_v their_o salvation_n be_v damn_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o first_o be_v predestinate_v be_v only_o the_o will_n of_o god_n why_o the_o other_o be_v save_v be_v the_o acceptation_n good_a use_n and_o cooperation_n with_o the_o divine_a assistance_n foresee_v by_o god_n why_o the_o last_o be_v reprobate_v be_v the_o foresee_v of_o their_o perverse_a will_n in_o refuse_v or_o abuse_v it_o that_o saint_n john_n saint_n paul_n and_o all_o the_o place_n of_o scripture_n allege_v by_o the_o other_o part_n where_o all_o be_v give_v to_o god_n and_o which_o do_v show_v infallibility_n be_v understand_v only_o of_o the_o first_o who_o be_v particular_o privilege_v and_o in_o other_o for_o who_o the_o common_a way_n be_v leave_v the_o admonition_n exhortation_n and_o general_a assistance_n be_v verify_v unto_o which_o he_o that_o will_v give_v care_n and_o follow_v they_o be_v save_v and_o he_o that_o will_v not_o perish_v by_o his_o own_o fault_n of_o those_o few_o who_o be_v privilege_v above_o the_o common_a condition_n the_o number_n be_v determinate_a and_o certain_a with_o god_n but_o not_o of_o those_o who_o be_v save_v by_o the_o common_a way_n depend_v on_o humane_a liberty_n but_o only_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o foreknowledge_n of_o the_o work_n of_o every_o one_o catarinus_n say_v he_o wonder_v at_o the_o stupidity_n of_o those_o who_o say_v the_o number_n be_v certain_a and_o determine_v and_o yet_o they_o add_v that_o other_o may_v be_v save_v which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v that_o the_o number_n be_v certain_a and_o yet_o it_o may_v be_v enlarge_v and_o likewise_o of_o those_o who_o say_v that_o the_o reprobate_n have_v sufficient_a assistance_n for_o salvation_n though_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o he_o that_o be_v save_v to_o have_v a_o gratner_n which_o be_v to_o say_v a_o sufficient_a unsufsicient_a he_o add_v that_o saint_n augustine_n opinion_n be_v not_o hear_v of_o before_o his_o time_n and_o himself_o confess_v it_o can_v be_v find_v in_o the_o work_n of_o any_o who_o write_v before_o he_o neither_o do_v himself_o always_o think_v it_o true_a but_o ascribe_v the_o cause_n of_o god_n will_v to_o merit_n say_v god_n take_v compassion_n on_o &_o harden_v who_o he_o list_v but_o that_o will_v of_o god_n can_v be_v unjust_a because_o it_o be_v cause_v by_o most_o secret_a merit_n and_o that_o there_o be_v diversity_n of_o sinner_n some_o who_o though_o they_o be_v justify_v yet_o deserve_v justification_n but_o after_o the_o heat_n of_o disputation_n against_o the_o pelagian_n transport_v he_o to_o think_v and_o speak_v the_o contrary_n yet_o when_o his_o opinion_n be_v hear_v all_o the_o catholic_n be_v scandalize_v as_o s_n prosper_n write_v to_o he_o and_o genadius_fw-la of_o marscille_n 50._o year_n after_o in_o his_o judgement_n which_o he_o make_v of_o the_o famous_a writer_n say_v that_o it_o happen_v to_o he_o according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o salmon_n that_o in_o much_o speak_v one_o can_v avoid_v sin_n and_o that_o by_o his_o fault_n exaggerated_a by_o the_o enemy_n the_o question_n be_v not_o then_o rise_v which_o may_v afterward_o bring_v forth_o heresy_n whereby_o the_o good_a father_n do_v intimate_v his_o fear_n of_o that_o which_o now_o appear_v that_o be_v that_o by_o that_o opinion_n some_o sect_n and_o division_n may_v arise_v the_o censure_n of_o the_o second_o article_n be_v diverse_a according_a to_o the_o three_o relate_a opinion_n catarinus_n think_v the_o first_o part_n true_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o divine_a will_n towards_o those_o who_o be_v particular_o favour_v but_o the_o second_o false_a concern_v the_o suffiencie_n of_o god_n assistance_n unto_o all_o and_o man_n liberty_n in_o cooperate_n other_o ascribe_v the_o cause_n of_o predestination_n in_o all_o to_o humane_a consent_n condemn_v the_o whole_a article_n in_o both_o part_n but_o those_o that_o adhere_v to_o s._n austin_n and_o the_o common_a opinion_n of_o the_o theologue_n do_v distinguish_v it_o and_o say_v it_o be_v true_a in_o a_o compound_a sense_n but_o damnable_a in_o a_o divide_a a_o subtlety_n which_o confound_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o prelate_n and_o his_o own_o though_o he_o do_v exemplify_v it_o by_o say_v he_o that_o move_v can_v stand_v still_o it_o be_v true_a in_o a_o compound_n sense_n because_o it_o be_v understand_v while_o he_o move_v but_o in_o a_o divide_a sense_n it_o be_v
he_o have_v not_o be_v forbid_v then_o by_o any_o other_o diverse_a other_o opposition_n be_v make_v by_o those_o who_o more_o willing_o censure_v the_o action_n o●_n other_o when_o they_o proceed_v from_o eminent_a person_n which_o because_o they_o be_v of_o no_o great_a moment_n be_v not_o worthy_a of_o a_o history_n the_o pope_n be_v advise_v of_o the_o hold_n of_o the_o session_n and_o of_o that_o which_o happen_v in_o it_o be_v very_o glad_a as_o deliver_v from_o the_o fear_n he_o apprehend_v that_o in_o the_o contention_n about_o the_o cup_n his_o authority_n will_v be_v draw_v into_o disputation_n and_o because_o this_o way_n of_o compose_v difference_n by_o refer_v they_o unto_o he_o be_v open_v he_o hope_v the_o like_a may_v be_v do_v in_o the_o article_n of_o residence_n or_o in_o any_o other_o that_o shall_v be_v controversed_a by_o which_o mean_v the_o council_n will_v be_v end_v quick_o but_o he_o foresee_v two_o cause_n which_o may_v cross_v his_o design_n one_o the_o come_n of_o the_o card._n of_o lorraine_n with_o the_o french_a bishop_n which_o do_v much_o trouble_v he_o especial_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o vast_a thought_n of_o that_o prelate_n much_o contrary_n to_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o council_n the_o pope_n plot_v to_o make_v a_o mayor_n part_n in_o the_o council_n papacy_n so_o incorporate_v in_o he_o that_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o conceal_v they_o for_o which_o he_o see_v no_o remedy_n but_o by_o make_v the_o italian_n so_o far_o exceed_v the_o vltramontans_n that_o in_o their_o voice_n they_o shall_v not_o pass_v for_o a_o considerable_a number_n therefore_o he_o continual_o solicit_v all_o the_o bishop_n whether_o titular_a or_o other_o who_o have_v renounce_v to_o go_v to_o trent_n offer_v to_o bear_v their_o charge_n and_o load_v they_o with_o promise_n he_o think_v also_o to_o send_v a_o number_n of_o abbat_n as_o have_v be_v do_v in_o some_o counsel_n but_o be_v advise_v better_a he_o think_v it_o fit_v not_o to_o show_v so_o much_o affection_n nor_o to_o provoke_v other_o to_o do_v the_o like_a he_o fear_v another_o cross_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o purpose_n which_o he_o have_v discover_v in_o all_o prince_n to_o hold_v the_o council_n open_a with_o do_v of_o nothing_o in_o the_o emperor_n to_o gratify_v the_o dutchman_n and_o to_o gain_v their_o favour_n in_o the_o election_n of_o his_o son_n to_o be_v king_n of_o the_o roman_n in_o the_o french_a king_n to_o work_v his_o will_n with_o the_o same_o man_n and_o with_o the_o hugonot_n he_o consider_v much_o of_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o ambassador_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o council_n of_o secular_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o that_o of_o the_o bishop_n think_v that_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o prelate_n will_v be_v dangerous_a without_o the_o presence_n and_o presidence_n of_o the_o legate_n to_o keep_v they_o in_o order_n and_o therefore_o that_o the_o ambassador_n much_o more_o may_v handle_v thing_n prejudicial_a and_o that_o there_o be_v danger_n if_o they_o continue_v that_o they_o may_v bring_v in_o some_o prelate_n in_o regard_n there_o be_v ecclesiastique_n among_o they_o and_o so_o use_v licence_n under_o the_o name_n of_o liberty_n in_o this_o perplexity_n he_o conceive_v hope_n because_o he_o see_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o ambassador_n oppose_v the_o proposition_n and_o that_o none_o be_v combine_v but_o only_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o of_o the_o french_a king_n who_o have_v no_o prelate_n can_v prevail_v but_o little_a notwithstanding_o he_o think_v fit_a to_o solicit_v the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o council_n and_o to_o cherish_v the_o division_n which_o he_o see_v among_o the_o ambassador_n therefore_o he_o write_v immediate_o that_o they_o shall_v hold_v congregation_n often_o and_o digest_v and_o put_v in_o order_n the_o matter_n quick_o and_o because_o to_o give_v one_o thanks_n do_v oblige_v he_o to_o persevere_v he_o command_v that_o the_o ambassador_n of_o portugal_n &_o of_o the_o swiss_n and_o the_o secretary_n of_o the_o marquis_n of_o pescara_n shall_v be_v commend_v and_o hearty_o thank_v on_o his_o part_n for_o refuse_v to_o consent_v with_o other_o to_o a_o impertinent_a proposition_n he_o cause_v thanks_n to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o venetian_n and_o florentine_a for_o the_o good_a intention_n they_o show_v in_o deny_v to_o come_v to_o the_o congregation_n pray_v they_o not_o to_o refuse_v to_o come_v hereafter_o if_o they_o be_v call_v because_o he_o know_v their_o presence_n will_v ever_o be_v serviceable_a to_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o hinder_v the_o bad_a design_n of_o other_o neither_o be_v his_o holiness_n deceive_v in_o his_o opinion_n for_o it_o make_v they_o all_o say_v that_o they_o have_v do_v so_o because_o in_o those_o time_n the_o service_n of_o god_n do_v require_v that_o the_o pope_n authority_n shall_v be_v defend_v resolve_v to_o persevere_v in_o that_o resolution_n and_o they_o profess_v they_o be_v more_o oblige_v by_o the_o courteous_a thanks_n of_o his_o holiness_n for_o do_v that_o to_o which_o their_o duty_n do_v bind_v they_o the_o seven_o book_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n the_o custom_n of_o those_o who_o write_v history_n be_v history_n the_o form_n of_o this_o history_n to_o propose_v in_o the_o beginning_n a_o model_n of_o what_o they_o mean_v to_o handle_v which_o i_o have_v think_v fit_a to_o defer_v until_o this_o place_n make_v it_o a_o abstract_n of_o the_o which_o be_v relate_v already_o and_o a_o design_n of_o that_o which_o be_v to_o follow_v have_v resolve_v to_o give_v to_o the_o memorial_n which_o i_o have_v collect_v some_o form_n which_o may_v not_o exceed_v my_o power_n and_o yet_o best_a befit_v the_o matter_n i_o consider_v that_o of_o all_o the_o negotiation_n which_o have_v happen_v among_o christian_n in_o this_o world_n or_o perhaps_o will_v happen_v hereafter_o this_o be_v the_o most_o principal_a and_o that_o most_o man_n be_v desirous_a to_o know_v whatsoever_o do_v belong_v to_o that_o which_o they_o do_v esteem_v even_o the_o least_o thing_n of_o all_o therefore_o i_o think_v first_o that_o the_o form_n of_o a_o diary_n will_v best_o agree_v to_o this_o subject_n but_o two_o opposition_n do_v cross_v my_o opinion_n one_o that_o that_o form_n can_v not_o befit_v the_o occurrence_n of_o twenty_o nine_o year_n spend_v in_o make_v preparation_n for_o the_o birth_n of_o this_o council_n nor_o of_o the_o fourteen_o year_n which_o pass_v while_o it_o sleep_v it_o not_o be_v know_v whether_o it_o be_v alive_a or_o dead_a another_o that_o all_o the_o matter_n which_o a_o continuate_a diary_n do_v require_v can_v not_o possible_o be_v find_v therefore_o fit_v the_o form_n to_o the_o matter_n as_o nature_n do_v not_o the_o matter_n to_o the_o form_n as_o the_o school_n i_o think_v it_o not_o absurd_a to_o write_v the_o preparatory_a and_o interconciliary_a time_n by_o way_n of_o annal_n and_o in_o those_o of_o the_o celebration_n to_o make_v a_o diary_n of_o the_o occurrence_n of_o those_o day_n the_o knowledge_n whereof_o i_o be_v able_a to_o attain_v hope_v that_o whosoever_o shall_v read_v this_o treatise_n will_v excuse_v the_o omission_n of_o those_o which_o can_v not_o be_v know_v for_o if_o of_o thing_n the_o entire_a memory_n of_o which_o those_o who_o have_v interest_n do_v labour_n by_o all_o mean_n to_o preserve_v often_o time_n a_o great_a part_n be_v quick_o lose_v how_o much_o more_o will_v it_o happen_v in_o this_o which_o many_o man_n of_o great_a place_n and_o exact_a judgement_n have_v use_v all_o diligence_n and_o spare_v no_o pain_n whole_o to_o conceal_v it_o be_v true_a that_o matter_n of_o great_a weight_n ought_v to_o be_v hold_v in_o a_o mystery_n when_o it_o be_v for_o the_o common_a good_a but_o when_o it_o do_v damnify_v one_o and_o profit_v another_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o man_n who_o have_v contrary_a end_n do_v proceed_v in_o contrary_a course_n the_o common_a and_o famous_a say_n of_o the_o lawyer_n be_v true_a that_o his_o cause_n be_v more_o to_o be_v favour_v who_o labour_v to_o avoid_v loss_n then_o as_o who_o seek_v gain_v for_o these_o cause_v this_o treatise_n of_o i_o be_v subject_a to_o some_o disequalitie_n of_o narration_n and_o howbeit_o i_o may_v say_v that_o as_o much_o may_v be_v find_v in_o some_o famous_a writer_n yet_o this_o shall_v not_o be_v my_o defence_n but_o this_o that_o if_o other_o have_v avoid_v it_o they_o have_v not_o write_v the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n nor_o any_o other_o like_a unto_o it_o the_o ambassador_n of_o france_n so_o soon_o as_o the_o session_n be_v end_v receive_v ambassador_n the_o petition_n of_o the_o french_a ambassador_n letter_n from_o their_o king_n that_o they_o shall_v make_v instance_n
to_o hinder_v the_o desolation_n of_o germany_n and_o that_o not_o to_o speak_v of_o a_o council_n be_v willing_o to_o run_v into_o a_o civil_a war_n in_o the_o second_o place_n the_o king_n treat_v with_o they_o that_o they_o will_v be_v content_v with_o a_o council_n in_o italy_n but_o neither_o do_v the_o german_n agree_v unto_o this_o for_o they_o say_v that_o this_o match_n be_v worse_a than_o the_o first_o because_o that_o constrain_v they_o only_o to_o make_v war_n but_o this_o cast_v they_o into_o a_o servitude_n both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n whereunto_o resistance_n can_v not_o be_v make_v but_o by_o a_o council_n in_o a_o free_a place_n yet_o condescend_v for_o his_o majesty_n sake_n to_o whatsoever_o they_o be_v able_a they_o will_v cease_v to_o demand_v to_o have_v it_o celebrate_v in_o germany_n so_o that_o another_o free_a place_n be_v appoint_v out_o of_o italy_n though_o it_o be_v near_o unto_o it_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o year_n 1534._o the_o king_n give_v the_o pope_n a_o account_n 1534_o 1534_o of_o what_o he_o have_v do_v and_o offer_v to_o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o protestant_n shall_v be_v content_v with_o geneva_n the_o pope_n have_v receive_v the_o advice_n council_n the_o pope_n be_v displease_v with_o the_o propose_v of_o geneva_n for_o the_o 〈◊〉_d place_n of_o the_o council_n be_v uncertain_a whether_o the_o king_n though_o his_o confederate_a and_o kinsman_n will_v be_v glad_a to_o see_v he_o in_o trouble_n or_o if_o in_o this_o particular_a he_o want_v that_o discretion_n which_o he_o show_v in_o other_o affair_n but_o he_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v not_o good_a to_o use_v he_o in_o this_o matter_n and_o write_v unto_o he_o thank_v he_o for_o his_o pain_n without_o answer_v to_o the_o particular_a of_o geneva_n and_o he_o encourage_v many_o of_o the_o courtier_n who_o mind_n be_v trouble_v assure_v they_o that_o by_o no_o mean_n he_o will_v consent_v to_o such_o a_o folly_n but_o this_o year_n the_o pope_n in_o stead_n of_o regain_n germany_n lose_v the_o obedience_n england_n he_o lose_v the_o obedience_n of_o england_n of_o england_n by_o proceed_v rather_o with_o choler_n and_o passion_n then_o with_o wisdom_n necessary_a in_o so_o great_a negotiation_n the_o accident_n be_v of_o great_a importance_n and_o great_a consequence_n which_o to_o declare_v distinct_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o begin_v from_o the_o first_o cause_n whence_o it_o have_v its_o original_n catherine_n infanta_n of_o spain_n sister_n to_o the_o mother_n of_o charles_n the_o emperor_n be_v marry_v to_o henry_n the_o eight_o king_n of_o england_n and_o be_v before_o the_o wife_n of_o arthure_n prince_n of_o wall_n henry_n elder_a brother_n after_o who_o death_n their_o father_n give_v she_o in_o marriage_n to_o henry_n who_o remain_v successor_n by_o the_o dispensation_n cause_n the_o cause_n of_o pope_n julio_n the_o second_o this_o queen_n be_v with_o child_n often_o and_o always_o either_o miscarry_v or_o bring_v forth_o a_o creature_n of_o a_o short_a life_n except_o one_o only_a daughter_n king_n henry_n either_o for_o displeasure_n against_o the_o emperor_n or_o for_o desire_n of_o issue_n male_a or_o for_o some_o other_o cause_n conceive_v a_o scruple_n in_o his_o mind_n that_o the_o marriage_n be_v not_o good_a and_o take_v counsel_n of_o his_o bishop_n separate_v himself_o from_o her_o company_n the_o bishop_n treat_v with_o the_o queen_n that_o she_o will_v be_v content_v with_o a_o divorce_n say_v that_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n be_v neither_o good_a nor_o true_a the_o queen_n will_v not_o give_v ear_n to_o they_o but_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o pope_n to_o who_o the_o king_n also_o send_v to_o crave_v a_o divorce_n the_o pope_n who_o be_v still_o retire_v in_o oruieto_fw-la and_o hope_v for_o good_a condition_n in_o his_o affair_n if_o the_o favour_n of_o france_n and_o england_n which_o still_o they_o perform_v be_v continue_v by_o molest_v the_o emperor_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n send_v into_o england_n the_o cardinal_n campeggio_n delegate_a the_o cause_n unto_o he_o and_o the_o cardinal_n of_o york_n from_o these_o and_o from_o rome_n the_o king_n have_v hope_n give_v he_o that_o in_o the_o end_n the_o sentence_n shall_v be_v on_o his_o side_n yea_o to_o facilitate_v divorce_n the_o cardinal_n campeggio_n and_o wolsie_n be_v delegated_a by_o the_o pope_n to_o hear_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o king_n divorce_n the_o resolution_n that_o the_o solemnity_n of_o the_o judgement_n may_v not_o draw_v the_o cause_n in_o length_n a_o brief_a be_v frame_v in_o which_o he_o be_v declare_v free_a from_o that_o marriage_n with_o the_o most_o ample_a clause_n that_o ever_o be_v put_v into_o any_o pope_n bull_n and_o a_o cardinal_n send_v into_o england_n with_o order_n to_o present_v it_o after_o some_o few_o proof_n be_v pass_v which_o he_o be_v sure_a will_v easy_o be_v make_v and_o burn_v the_o pope_n cause_v his_o brief_n which_o he_o have_v make_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o divorce_n to_o be_v burn_v this_o happen_v in_o the_o year_n 1524._o but_o clement_n judge_v it_o fit_a for_o compass_v his_o design_n upon_o florence_n as_o have_v be_v declare_v in_o its_o proper_a place_n to_o join_v himself_o with_o the_o emperor_n then_o to_o continue_v in_o the_o friendship_n of_o france_n and_o england_n in_o the_o year_n 1529._o he_o send_v francis_n campana_n unto_o campeggio_n with_o order_n to_o burn_v the_o brief_a and_o to_o proceed_v slow_o in_o the_o cause_n campeggio_n begin_v first_o to_o draw_v the_o cause_n in_o length_n and_o after_o to_o make_v difficulty_n of_o perform_v the_o promise_n make_v to_o the_o king_n whereby_o be_v assure_v that_o the_o judge_n and_o his_o adversary_n do_v collude_v he_o send_v to_o the_o university_n of_o italy_n france_n and_o germany_n for_o a_o consultation_n in_o his_o cause_n where_o among_o divorce_n a_o consultation_n about_o the_o cause_n of_o divorce_n the_o divine_n some_o be_v contrary_a and_o some_o favourable_a to_o his_o pretention_n the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o parisian_n be_v on_o his_o side_n and_o some_o believe_v that_o the_o king_n gift_n more_o persuade_v they_o than_o reason_n but_o the_o pope_n either_o to_o gratify_v the_o emperor_n or_o for_o fear_n that_o in_o england_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o york_n something_o may_v happen_v not_o according_a campeggio_n the_o pope_n to_o gratify_v the_o emperor_n recall_v campeggio_n to_o his_o mind_n as_o also_o to_o give_v occasion_n to_o campeggio_n to_o part_v from_o thence_o call_v the_o cause_n to_o himself_o the_o king_n impatient_a of_o delay_n either_o because_o he_o know_v their_o cunning_n or_o for_o some_o other_o cause_n publish_v the_o divorce_n with_o his_o wife_n and_z matryed_z anne_z bullen_z in_o the_o year_n 1533._o yet_o still_o the_o cause_n depend_v before_o the_o pope_n in_o which_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o proceed_v slow_o to_o bulle●_n the_o king_n in_o 〈…〉_o yes_o 〈◊〉_d bulle●_n satisfy_v the_o emperor_n and_o not_o offend_v the_o king_n therefore_o some_o by_o point_n rather_o be_v handle_v than_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o cause_n and_o the_o disputation_n grow_v upon_o the_o article_n of_o the_o attentat_n in_o which_o the_o pope_n give_v sentence_n against_o the_o king_n declare_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o he_o by_o his_o own_o authority_n without_o the_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n to_o separate_v himself_o from_o his_o wife_n for_o which_o cause_n the_o king_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o year_n 1534_o deny_v the_o pope_n obedience_n command_v all_o his_o subject_n not_o to_o carry_v any_o money_n to_o rome_n pope_n the_o king_n cause_v the_o peter-pence_n to_o be_v deny_v the_o pope_n nor_o to_o pay_v the_o ordinary_a peter-pence_n this_o infinite_o trouble_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o daily_o they_o consult_v of_o a_o remedy_n they_o think_v to_o proceed_v against_o the_o king_n with_o censure_n and_o to_o interdict_v all_o christian_a nation_n all_o commerce_n with_o england_n but_o the_o moderate_a counsel_n please_v best_a to_o temporize_v with_o he_o and_o to_o mediate_v a_o composition_n by_o the_o french_a king_n king_n francis_n accept_v the_o charge_n and_o send_v the_o bishop_n of_o paris_n to_o rome_n to_o negotiate_v a_o pacification_n with_o the_o pope_n where_o they_o still_o proceed_v in_o the_o cause_n but_o gentle_o and_o with_o resolution_n not_o to_o come_v to_o censure_n if_o the_o emperor_n do_v not_o proceed_v first_o or_o at_o the_o same_o time_n with_o his_o force_n they_o have_v divide_v the_o cause_n into_o three_o and_o twenty_o article_n and_o then_o they_o handle_v whether_o prince_n arthure_n have_v have_v carnal_a conjunction_n with_o queen_n catherine_n in_o this_o they_o spend_v time_n until_o midlent_a be_v pass_v when_o the_o nineteenth_o of_o march_n news_n come_v that_o a_o
patience_n because_o another_o be_v in_o fault_n and_o not_o himself_o and_o because_o he_o can_v not_o resolve_v so_o sudden_o upon_o a_o convenient_a city_n he_o deser_v the_o celebration_n thereof_o until_o the_o first_o of_o november_n the_o same_o year_n at_o that_o time_n the_o king_n of_o england_n publish_v a_o manifest_a in_o his_o own_o name_n and_o of_o his_o nobility_n against_o the_o pope_n convocation_n as_o by_o a_o person_n that_o have_v no_o power_n in_o a_o time_n when_o italy_n be_v set_v a_o fire_n with_o war_n and_o in_o a_o place_n not_o secure_a add_v that_o he_o much_o desire_v a_o christian_a council_n but_o that_o to_o manifest_a the_o king_n of_o england_n oppose_v the_o council_n by_o a_o public_a manifest_a the_o pope_n he_o will_v neither_o go_v nor_o send_v ambassador_n have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o his_o edict_n more_o than_o with_o the_o edict_n of_o any_o other_o bishop_n that_o the_o ancient_a counsel_n be_v call_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o king_n which_o custom_n ought_v now_o the_o rather_o to_o be_v renew_v because_o the_o defect_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n be_v call_v into_o question_n that_o it_o be_v not_o usual_a with_o pope_n to_o break_v their_o faith_n which_o himself_o have_v more_o cause_n to_o consider_v then_o other_o be_v most_o bitter_o hate_v by_o he_o for_o have_v deny_v he_o authority_n in_o his_o kingdom_n and_o the_o revenue_n which_o be_v pay_v he_o that_o to_o blame_v the_o prince_n of_o mantua_n because_o he_o will_v not_o receive_v so_o many_o people_n into_o his_o city_n without_o a_o garrison_n be_v to_o mock_v the_o world_n as_o also_o to_o prorogue_v the_o council_n unto_o november_n not_o say_v in_o what_o place_n it_o shall_v be_v celebrate_v and_o if_o the_o pope_n choose_v the_o place_n without_o doubt_n it_o will_v be_v in_o his_o own_o state_n or_o of_o some_o prince_n that_o be_v oblige_v to_o he_o therefore_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o any_o man_n of_o judgement_n shall_v hope_v for_o a_o true_a council_n the_o best_a way_n be_v for_o every_o prince_n to_o reform_v religion_n at_o home_n conclude_v in_o the_o end_n that_o if_o any_o man_n can_v give_v he_o better_o direction_n he_o will_v not_o refuse_v to_o follow_v they_o action_n the_o care_n of_o reform_v the_o court_n be_v commit_v to_o 4._o cardinal_n but_o nothing_o be_v do_v which_o make_v the_o italian_n suspect_v the_o pope_n action_n in_o italy_n also_o there_o be_v a_o general_a disposition_n to_o interpret_v the_o pope_n action_n in_o the_o worse_a sense_n and_o it_o be_v speak_v free_o that_o though_o the_o duke_n of_o mantua_n be_v blame_v yet_o he_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n why_o the_o council_n be_v not_o call_v whereof_o there_o be_v a_o manifest_a argument_n because_o the_o pope_n have_v publish_v a_o bull_n for_o reformation_n of_o the_o court_n and_o commit_v the_o care_n thereof_o to_o four_o cardinal_n at_o the_o same_o time_n which_o notwithstanding_o be_v bury_v in_o silence_n though_o neither_o the_o duke_n nor_o any_o body_n else_o hinder_v it_o from_o be_v in_o his_o power_n and_o have_v propose_v it_o immediate_o after_o it_o be_v assume_v to_o the_o papacy_n it_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o speak_v of_o for_o three_o year_n after_o the_o again_o the_o reformation_n be_v set_v on_o foot_n again_o pope_n to_o withstand_v these_o defamation_n resolve_v to_o set_v the_o business_n on_o foot_n again_o first_o reform_v himself_o the_o cardinal_n and_o the_o court_n that_o none_o may_v object_v against_o he_o nor_o make_v bad_a construction_n of_o his_o action_n and_o he_o elect_v four_o cardinal_n and_o five_o other_o prelate_n who_o he_o so_o much_o esteem_v that_o the_o year_n follow_v he_o make_v four_o of_o they_o cardinal_n give_v charge_n to_o those_o nine_o to_o collect_v the_o abuse_n which_o deserve_v amendment_n and_o withal_o to_o add_v the_o remedy_n by_o which_o they_o may_v quick_o and_o easy_o be_v remoove_v and_o to_o reduce_v all_o to_o a_o good_a reformation_n the_o prelate_n make_v the_o collection_n as_o the_o pope_n command_v and_o commit_v it_o to_o writing_n court._n the_o fountain●_n of_o the_o abuse_n of_o the_o court._n in_o the_o beginning_n they_o propose_v for_o the_o fountain_n and_o source_n of_o all_o the_o abuse_n the_o pope_n readiness_n in_o give_v ear_n to_o flatterer_n and_o his_o facility_n in_o dispense_n with_o law_n with_o neglect_n of_o the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n not_o to_o receive_v gain_n for_o spiritual_a thing_n and_o descend_v to_o particular_n they_o note_v twenty_o four_o abuse_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n and_o four_o in_o the_o special_a government_n of_o rome_n they_o touch_v the_o ordination_n of_o abuse_n the_o particular_a abuse_n clergy_n man_n collation_n of_o benefice_n pension_n permutation_n regress_n 1_o 1538_o paul_n 3._o charles_n 5._o henry_n 8._o francis_z 1_o reservation_n plurality_n of_o benefice_n commendoe_n exemption_n deformation_n of_o the_o regular_a order_n ignorance_n of_o preacher_n and_o confessor_n liberty_n of_o print_v pernicious_a book_n the_o read_n of_o they_o toleration_n of_o apostate_n pardoner_n and_o pass_v to_o dispensation_n first_o they_o touch_v that_o for_o marriage_n of_o those_o that_o be_v in_o order_n for_o marriage_n in_o degree_n forbid_v dispensation_n grant_v to_o symoniacall_a person_n facility_n of_o grant_v confessionals_n and_o indulgence_n dispensation_n of_o vow_n licence_n to_o bequeath_v by_o will_n the_o church-goods_a commutation_n of_o will_n and_o testament_n toleration_n of_o harlot_n negligence_n of_o the_o government_n of_o hospital_n and_o such_o other_o thing_n which_o they_o exact_o handle_v expound_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o abuse_n the_o cause_n and_o original_a of_o they_o the_o consequence_n of_o the_o evil_n which_o they_o carry_v with_o they_o the_o mean_n to_o redress_v they_o and_o to_o keep_v hence_o forward_o the_o body_n of_o sleidan_n these_o thing_n be_v set_v down_o at_o large_a in_o the_o 12._o book_n of_o sleidan_n the_o court_n in_o christian_a life_n a_o work_n worthy_a to_o be_v read_v and_o which_o deserve_v to_o be_v set_v down_o word_n by_o word_n if_o it_o have_v not_o be_v too_o long_o the_o pope_n have_v receive_v the_o relation_n of_o these_o prelate_n cause_v many_o cardinal_n to_o consider_v of_o it_o and_o after_o that_o he_o may_v resolve_v what_o to_o do_v propose_v it_o in_o the_o consistory_n friar_n nicholas_n scomberg_n a_o dominican_n cardinal_n of_o s._n sistus_n alias_o of_o capua_n show_v in_o a_o long_a discourse_n that_o that_o time_n comport_v make_v the_o cudinall_n of_o s._n sistus_n will_v have_v no_o reformaton_fw-gr at_o all_o make_v not_o any_o reformation_n at_o all_o first_o he_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o the_o malice_n of_o man_n which_o be_v stop_v in_o one_o course_n findeth_z a_o worse_o and_o that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o tolerate_v a_o know_v evil_a which_o because_o it_o be_v in_o use_n be_v not_o so_o much_o marueyl_v at_o then_o by_o redress_v that_o to_o fall_v into_o another_o which_o be_v new_a will_v appear_v great_a and_o be_v more_o reprehend_v he_o add_v that_o it_o will_v give_v occasion_n to_o the_o lutheran_n to_o brag_v that_o they_o have_v enforce_v the_o pope_n to_o make_v that_o reformation_n and_o above_o all_o he_o consider_v that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o beginning_n to_o take_v away_o not_o only_o the_o abuse_n but_o the_o good_a use_n also_o and_o to_o endanger_v the_o whole_a state_n of_o religion_n for_o by_o the_o reformation_n it_o will_v be_v confess_v that_o the_o thing_n provide_v against_o be_v deserve_o reprehend_v by_o the_o lutheran_n which_o will_v be_v a_o great_a abet_v to_o their_o whole_a reformation_n cardinal_n caraffa_n desire_v the_o reformation_n doctrine_n on_o the_o other_o side_n john_n peter_n caraffa_n cardinal_n theatino_n show_v that_o the_o reformation_n be_v necessary_a and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a offence_n to_o god_n to_o leave_v it_o and_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v a_o rule_n in_o christian_a action_n that_o as_o evil_n be_v not_o to_o be_v do_v that_o good_a may_v follow_v so_o no_o good_a of_o obligation_n be_v to_o be_v omit_v for_o fear_v that_o evil_n may_v ensue_v the_o opinion_n deliver_v be_v diverse_a protestant_n the_o pope_n comand_v the_o remonstrance_n of_o the_o prelate_n to_o be_v conceal_v but_o a_o copy_n of_o it_o be_v send_v into_o germany_n by_o cardinal_n scomberg_n the_o king_n of_o denmark_n become_v a_o protestant_n and_o the_o final_a conclusion_n be_v not_o to_o speak_v any_o more_o of_o it_o until_o another_o time_n and_o the_o pope_n command_v that_o the_o remonstrance_n of_o the_o prelate_n shall_v be_v conceal_v but_o cardinal_n scomberg_n send_v a_o copy_n thereof_o into_o germany_n which_o some_o thought_n be_v do_v
it_o without_o great_a danger_n if_o the_o emperor_n consent_v not_o because_o he_o may_v find_v pretence_n either_o for_o that_o those_o city_n be_v former_o member_n of_o the_o duchy_n of_o milan_n or_o may_v say_v the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v damnify_v whereof_o he_o be_v advocate_n to_o dispatch_v these_o business_n he_o send_v cardinal_n farnese_n into_o germany_n with_o instruction_n necessary_a but_o the_o legate_n in_o trent_n have_v commission_n from_o the_o pope_n to_o open_v the_o council_n with_o those_o few_o prelate_n that_o be_v there_o without_o expect_v a_o great_a number_n in_o case_n they_o understand_v that_o they_o will_v treat_v of_o religion_n in_o the_o dier_n but_o if_o not_o to_o govern_v themselves_o as_o other_o respect_n shall_v advise_v they_o see_v that_o the_o propose_v of_o the_o diet_n do_v not_o bind_v they_o but_z on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o the_o small_a number_n of_o prelate_n who_o then_o be_v not_o more_o than_o four_o persuade_v a_o prorogation_n notwithstanding_o they_o be_v in_o doubt_n that_o the_o danger_n of_o the_o turkish_a arm_n will_v constrain_v ferdinand_n to_o make_v the_o recess_n and_o council_n the_o legate_n know_v not_o what_o to_o resolve_v about_o the_o open_n of_o the_o council_n according_a to_o promise_v to_o intimate_v another_o diet_n in_o which_o religion_n shall_v be_v treat_v of_o cast_v the_o blame_n upon_o they_o by_o say_v that_o notice_n be_v give_v they_o of_o the_o proposition_n that_o know_v what_o be_v promise_v with_o good_a intention_n they_o may_v have_v hinder_v the_o execution_n of_o it_o by_o open_v the_o council_n for_o this_o cause_n they_o send_v in_o diligence_n to_o the_o pope_n to_o receive_v order_n from_o he_o what_o to_o do_v in_o this_o doubtful_a consultation_n see_v themselves_o on_o the_o one_o side_n constrain_v by_o a_o potent_a respect_n to_o make_v haste_n and_o on_o the_o other_o enforce_v to_o desist_v because_o they_o be_v almost_o alone_o in_o trent_n they_o declare_v to_o the_o pope_n that_o they_o have_v many_o conjecture_n and_o sign_n that_o the_o emperor_n regard_v not_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o council_n that_o don_n diego_n after_o his_o first_o comparition_n have_v never_o speak_v so_o much_o as_o one_o word_n and_o do_v show_v as_o it_o be_v in_o his_o countenance_n that_o he_o be_v please_v with_o that_o leisure_n and_o spend_v of_o time_n for_o his_o appearance_n only_o be_v sufficient_a to_o excuse_v and_o justify_v his_o master_n that_o have_v by_o himself_o and_o his_o ambassador_n continual_o desire_v and_o solicit_v the_o council_n and_o bring_v the_o business_n to_o that_o pass_n and_o not_o see_v a_o convenient_a progress_n he_o may_v and_o ought_v to_o intimate_v another_o diet_n to_o determine_v the_o cause_n of_o religion_n as_o by_o reason_n devolue_v unto_o he_o by_o his_o own_o diligence_n and_o negligence_n of_o the_o pope_n they_o resolve_v to_o take_v a_o ghost_n it_o be_v resolve_v that_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v open_v only_o by_o sing_v a_o mass_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n middle_a course_n that_o be_v to_o sing_v a_o mass_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n before_o the_o emperor_n arrive_v in_o the_o diet_n which_o may_v stand_v for_o a_o beginning_n of_o the_o council_n and_o prevent_v whatsoever_o the_o emperor_n can_v do_v in_o the_o recess_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n remove_v all_o occasion_n of_o say_v that_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o council_n be_v begin_v to_o be_v handle_v with_o four_o person_n remain_v in_o liberty_n to_o enjoy_v the_o benefit_n of_o time_n and_o to_o be_v able_a to_o go_v on_o or_o desist_v or_o transfer_v or_o shut_v up_o the_o council_n as_o the_o occurrence_n shall_v advise_v they_o wish_v he_o to_o consider_v that_o if_o the_o council_n be_v open_v after_o that_o cardinal_n farnese_n have_v speak_v with_o the_o emperor_n one_o may_v think_v that_o cardinal_n be_v send_v to_o entreat_v that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v open_v and_o can_v not_o obtain_v it_o beside_o the_o fame_n of_o the_o turkish_a army_n increase_v it_o will_v be_v say_v it_o be_v open_v when_o necessity_n compel_v to_o think_v of_o other_o matter_n and_o when_o it_o be_v know_v it_o can_v not_o be_v do_v the_o cardinal_n santa_n croce_n desire_v much_o that_o sign_n of_o devotion_n croce_n the_o desire_n of_o the_o cardinal_n santa_n croce_n shall_v be_v show_v and_o the_o people_n make_v to_o run_v together_o with_o the_o usual_a ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o persuade_v that_o all_o shall_v write_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o demand_v a_o brief_a with_o authority_n to_o give_v indulgence_n date_v from_o the_o time_n of_o their_o part_n that_o the_o indulgence_n which_o they_o grant_v at_o their_o entry_n may_v be_v make_v good_a that_o cardinal_n be_v serupulous_a that_o the_o people_n which_o be_v present_a at_o that_o entry_n shall_v not_o be_v defraud_v of_o those_o three_o year_n and_o thrice_o forty_o day_n which_o they_o grant_v and_o will_v supply_v it_o by_o this_o not_o consider_v that_o a_o difficulty_n do_v arise_v whether_o he_o that_o have_v authority_n to_o grant_v indulgence_n can_v make_v good_a those_o which_o another_o have_v grant_v without_o authority_n the_o cardinal_n bishop_n and_o lord_n of_o trent_n consider_v that_o that_o city_n little_a in_o itself_o and_o not_o much_o inhabit_v will_v remain_v at_o the_o discretion_n of_o stranger_n and_o in_o danger_n of_o sedition_n in_o case_n the_o council_n proceed_v give_v the_o pope_n to_o understand_v that_o there_o be_v need_n of_o a_o garrison_n of_o at_o the_o least_o a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o footman_n especial_o if_o the_o lutheran_n come_v which_o expense_n himself_o be_v not_o able_a to_o bear_v be_v exhaust_v by_o pay_v his_o predecessor_n garrison_n the_o cardinal_n et_fw-fr trent●esir●●h_n ●esir●●h_z a_o garrison_n debt_n the_o pope_n answer_v that_o if_o he_o put_v a_o garrison_n into_o the_o town_n the_o lutheran_n will_v have_v a_o pretence_n to_o publish_v that_o the_o council_n be_v not_o free_a that_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a to_o make_v doubt_n so_o long_o as_o none_o but_o italian_n be_v in_o trent_n and_o that_o he_o have_v no_o less_o care_n of_o the_o quiet_a of_o the_o city_n than_o the_o cardinal_n himself_o because_o the_o security_n of_o the_o council_n more_o import_v the_o pope_n than_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o place_n therefore_o that_o he_o shall_v leave_v the_o care_n thereof_o unto_o he_o and_o assure_v himself_o that_o he_o will_v be_v vigilant_a to_o provide_v against_o danger_n for_o his_o own_o interest_n and_o will_v not_o burden_n he_o with_o any_o expense_n have_v well_o consider_v all_o the_o reason_n which_o persuade_v and_o dissuade_v to_o begin_v the_o council_n for_o dissuasion_n he_o see_v no_o weighty_a reason_n but_o this_o that_o when_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v open_v he_o will_v be_v entreat_v to_o leave_v it_o so_o until_o the_o impediment_n of_o the_o turkish_a war_n and_o other_o do_v cease_v which_o be_v to_o put_v a_o bridle_n in_o his_o mouth_n which_o will_v turn_v he_o whither_o he_o please_v that_o hold_v the_o reins_n a_o thing_n dangerous_a to_o his_o affair_n this_o make_v he_o resolve_v firm_o in_o himself_o by_o no_o mean_n to_o let_v the_o council_n stand_v idle_o open_a and_o not_o to_o depart_v from_o this_o disiunctive_a either_o to_o celebrate_v the_o council_n if_o he_o can_v or_o if_o he_o can_v not_o to_o shut_v it_o up_o or_o suspend_v it_o until_o he_o have_v publish_v another_o day_n trent_n the_o pope_n give_v commission_n to_o open_v the_o council_n on_o holiroode_n day_n card._n farnese_n pass_v by_o trent_n to_o reassume_v it_o have_v establish_v this_o point_n he_o write_v to_o the_o legate_n to_o open_v it_o upon_o holiroode_n day_n which_o order_n they_o publish_v to_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n and_o the_o rest_n without_o name_v the_o particular_a time_n a_o little_a after_o cardinal_n farnese_n in_o his_o journey_n towards_o worm_n arrive_v in_o trent_n and_o bring_v the_o same_o commission_n and_o all_o be_v consult_v of_o between_o he_o and_o the_o legate_n they_o resolve_v to_o continue_v notify_v unto_o all_o the_o commission_n to_o open_v the_o conncell_n in_o general_a without_o descend_v to_o the_o particular_a day_n more_o than_o this_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v when_o he_o have_v speak_v with_o the_o emperor_n in_o worm_n and_o they_o conceive_v good_a hope_n because_o they_o understand_v that_o his_o majesty_n know_v the_o dispatch_n of_o the_o legation_n be_v much_o satisfy_v with_o the_o pope_n and_o declare_v that_o he_o will_v joint_o proceed_v with_o he_o and_o therefore_o they_o will_v not_o go_v on_o to_o any_o new_a action_n without_o his_o knowledge_n for_o fear_n of_o disturb_v he_o and_o the_o rather_o because_o don_n diego_n and_o the_o cardinal_n of_o
the_o sea_n of_o rome_n with_o a_o diverse_a doctrine_n and_o rite_n very_o imperfect_a and_o rude_a these_o man_n after_o the_o reformation_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la enlarge_v their_o doctrine_n by_o he_o and_o reduce_v their_o rite_n unto_o some_o form_n at_o the_o same_o time_n when_o geneva_n embrace_v the_o reformation_n sentence_n be_v pronounce_v against_o these_o many_o year_n before_o by_o the_o parliament_n of_o aix_n which_o have_v never_o be_v execute_v the_o king_n now_o command_v to_o execute_v the_o sentence_n the_o precedent_n muster_v together_o as_o many_o soldier_n as_o he_o can_v in_o the_o place_n border_v upon_o they_o and_o in_o the_o pope_n state_n of_o autgnion_n and_o go_v with_o man_n a_o miserable_a slaughter_n of_o the_o waldense_n make_v by_o the_o french_a man_n a_o army_n against_o those_o poor_a creature_n who_o neither_o have_v weapon_n nor_o thought_n otherwise_o then_o by_o flight_n to_o defend_v themselves_o those_o that_o can_v they_o go_v not_o about_o to_o teach_v they_o or_o by_o threat_n to_o make_v they_o leave_v their_o opinion_n and_o rite_n but_o first_o of_o all_o fill_v all_o the_o country_n with_o rape_n slay_v asmany_a as_o stand_v to_o their_o mercy_n because_o they_o can_v not_o fly_v without_o spare_v old_a or_o young_a of_o what_o age_n or_o condition_n soever_o they_o destroy_v or_o rather_o raze_v the_o country_n of_o carrier_n in_o provence_n and_o of_o mernidolo_n in_o the_o county_n of_o viinoisin_n belong_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o other_o place_n in_o those_o precinct_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o more_o than_o 4000_o person_n be_v slay_v who_o without_o make_v defence_n desire_a mercy_n but_o in_o germany_n the_o emperor_n arrive_v in_o worm_n the_o 16._o of_o may_n and_o cardinal_n farnese_n the_o day_n follow_v who_o treat_v with_o he_o and_o with_o the_o worm_n cardinal_n farnese_n his_o negotiation_n with_o the_o emperor_n in_o worm_n king_n of_o the_o roman_n apart_o he_o deliver_v his_o commission_n particular_o concern_v the_o council_n declare_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v give_v the_o legate_n power_n to_o open_v it_o which_o they_o mean_v to_o do_v when_o they_o shall_v understand_v from_o he_o what_o be_v do_v in_o the_o diet._n he_o tell_v the_o emperor_n that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o regard_v the_o opposition_n of_o the_o protestant_n see_v that_o the_o impediment_n allege_v by_o they_o be_v not_o new_a but_o be_v foresee_v from_o the_o day_n the_o council_n be_v first_o speak_v of_o that_o he_o may_v assure_v himself_o that_o they_o have_v cast_v off_o the_o yoke_n of_o obedience_n the_o principal_a foundation_n of_o religion_n and_o proceed_v to_o so_o impious_a &_o wicked_a innovation_n against_o the_o rite_n observe_v many_o hundred_o of_o year_n by_o the_o approbation_n of_o so_o many_o famous_a counsel_n they_o will_v with_o the_o same_o boldness_n spurn_v against_o the_o council_n which_o be_v to_o begin_v though_o lawful_a general_a and_o christian_n assure_v themselves_o to_o be_v condemn_v by_o it_o therefore_o that_o nothing_o remain_v but_o that_o his_o majesty_n shall_v induce_v they_o to_o obedience_n by_o authority_n or_o constrain_v they_o by_o force_n which_o in_o case_n it_o be_v not_o do_v and_o they_o so_o much_o regard_v as_o not_o to_o be_v condemn_v or_o after_o condemnation_n not_o constrain_v to_o lay_v aside_o their_o error_n all_o the_o world_n will_v know_v that_o the_o heretic_n command_v and_o the_o pope_n and_o emperor_n obey_v that_o his_o holiness_n as_o he_o think_v fit_a to_o use_v mildness_n at_o the_o first_o so_o he_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o show_v real_o that_o after_o it_o will_v follow_v force_n of_o arm_n that_o he_o offer_v he_o a_o grant_n of_o part_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a revenue_n of_o spain_n and_o power_n to_o sell_v the_o plate_n of_o those_o church_n to_o assist_v he_o with_o his_o own_o money_n and_o to_o send_v he_o out_o of_o italy_n 12000._o foot_n and_o 500_o horse_n pay_v and_o to_o endeavour_n that_o he_o may_v likewise_o be_v assist_v by_o other_o prince_n of_o italy_n and_o to_o proceed_v during_o the_o time_n of_o the_o war_n with_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a arm_n against_o whosoever_o shall_v molest_v his_o territory_n farnese_n declare_v also_o to_o the_o emperor_n the_o attempt_n of_o the_o vice_n roy_fw-fr of_o naples_n he_o complain_v of_o the_o vice_n roy_fw-fr of_o naples_n naples_n who_o will_v have_v send_v four_o proctor_n in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o kingdom_n show_v it_o be_v neither_o reasonable_a nor_o lawful_a and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o dishonour_n to_o the_o council_n for_o if_o bishop_n dwell_v so_o near_o and_o be_v so_o many_o may_v be_v excuse_v by_o send_v four_o france_n and_o spain_n may_v do_v it_o much_o rather_o and_o so_o a_o general_n council_n shall_v be_v hold_v with_o twenty_o bishop_n and_o he_o pray_v the_o emperor_n not_o to_o tolerate_v a_o thing_n so_o contrary_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o dignity_n of_o the_o council_n whereof_o himself_o be_v protector_n desire_v he_o to_o give_v some_o remedy_n herein_o the_o cardinal_n also_o treat_v with_o he_o concern_v the_o promise_n make_v in_o his_o majesty_n name_n in_o the_o proposition_n send_v to_o the_o diet_n that_o be_v that_o to_o determine_v the_o controversy_n of_o religion_n in_o case_n the_o council_n do_v not_o proceed_v another_o diet_n shall_v be_v hold_v and_o desire_v he_o to_o consider_v that_o if_o neither_o his_o holiness_n nor_o his_o legate_n and_o minister_n nor_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n be_v in_o fault_n that_o the_o council_n be_v not_o celebrate_v nor_o proceed_v he_o can_v not_o by_o any_o mean_n intimate_v in_o the_o recess_n another_o diet_n under_o this_o colour_n and_o he_o inculcate_v this_o point_n exceed_o because_o he_o have_v strait_a commission_n therein_o from_o rome_n and_o because_o the_o cardinal_n of_o monte_n a_o man_n very_o free_a not_o only_o speak_v but_o also_o write_v unto_o he_o thereof_o in_o his_o own_o name_n and_o his_o colleague_n after_o that_o he_o part_v from_o trent_n say_v in_o plain_a term_n that_o this_o be_v the_o most_o important_a point_n at_o which_o he_o shall_v ever_o aim_v without_o forget_v it_o in_o his_o whole_a negotiation_n take_v care_n not_o to_o admit_v any_o excuse_n because_o this_o only_a will_v produce_v any_o other_o good_a agreement_n and_o for_o his_o own_o part_n he_o will_v put_v his_o holiness_n in_o mind_n rather_o to_o abandon_v the_o sea_n and_o restore_v the_o key_n to_o saint_n peter_n then_o suffer_v the_o secular_a power_n to_o arrogate_v authority_n to_o determine_v cause_n of_o religion_n under_o pretence_n and_o colour_n that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a have_v fail_v in_o celebrate_v a_o council_n or_o otherwise_o concern_v the_o attempt_n of_o the_o viceroy_n the_o emperor_n say_v it_o proceed_v from_o his_o own_o proper_a motion_n from_o which_o in_o case_n he_o have_v not_o great_a reason_n to_o the_o contrary_a he_o will_v be_v remoove_v for_o open_v the_o council_n he_o legat._n the_o emperor_n answer_n to_o the_o legat._n give_v no_o resolute_a answer_n but_o speak_v diverse_o sometime_o that_o it_o will_v be_v good_a to_o begin_v it_o in_o a_o more_o fit_a place_n sometime_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o make_v sundry_a provision_n first_o whereby_o the_o cardinal_n see_v plain_o that_o his_o aim_n be_v only_o to_o hold_v the_o matter_n in_o suspense_n and_o to_o govern_v himself_o as_o occasion_n serve_v either_o open_n or_o dissolve_v it_o for_o not_o intimate_v another_o diet_n to_o treat_v of_o religion_n he_o give_v a_o general_a and_o unconclude_a answer_n that_o he_o will_v always_o make_v as_o much_o esteem_v as_o be_v possible_a of_o the_o pope_n authority_n but_o to_o the_o proposition_n of_o make_v war_n against_o the_o lutheran_n he_o answer_v that_o the_o pope_n counsel_n be_v the_o best_a and_o that_o the_o only_a way_n be_v propose_v by_o he_o which_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o embrace_v yet_o that_o he_o will_v proceed_v with_o due_a caution_n and_o first_o conclude_v a_o truce_n with_o the_o turk_n which_o he_o then_o do_v mediate_v diligent_o and_o most_o secret_o by_o the_o french_a king_n and_o that_o he_o know_v well_o that_o the_o number_n and_o power_n of_o the_o protestant_n be_v great_a and_o insuperable_a and_o that_o in_o case_n they_o be_v not_o divide_v or_o surprise_v at_o unaware_o the_o war_n will_v prove_v doubtful_a and_o dangerous_a that_o his_o design_n be_v to_o conceal_v his_o purpose_n until_o opportunity_n serve_v and_o then_o to_o treat_v with_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o mean_a while_o he_o accept_v the_o offer_v make_v unto_o he_o beside_o these_o public_a business_n the_o cardinal_n have_v one_o private_a for_o his_o family_n the_o legate_n private_a negotiation_n concern_v his_o own_o
and_o withal_o to_o have_v show_v that_o they_o hold_v the_o prelate_n in_o esteem_n the_o next_o congregation_n be_v spend_v in_o read_v many_o letter_n and_o dispute_v congregation_n a_o congregation_n what_o seal_n to_o use_v some_o propose_v they_o shall_v be_v seal_v in_o lead_n with_o a_o bull_n proper_a to_o the_o synod_n in_o which_o some_o will_v have_v on_o the_o one_o side_n the_o image_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o dove_n and_o the_o name_n of_o the_o synod_n on_o the_o other_o and_o some_o desire_v other_o form_n all_o which_o be_v glorious_a but_o the_o legate_n who_o have_v another_o order_n from_o rome_n suffer_v the_o father_n to_o dispute_v hereon_o divert_v the_o proposition_n by_o say_v it_o savor_v of_o pride_n and_o protract_v the_o time_n because_o they_o must_v send_v to_o venice_n to_o make_v the_o form_n of_o it_o in_o regard_n no_o artisan_n in_o trent_n be_v able_a to_o do_v it_o add_v that_o it_o may_v be_v better_o think_v of_o afterward_o and_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o dispatch_v the_o letter_n now_o which_o may_v be_v do_v by_o the_o name_n and_o seal_v of_o the_o prime_a legat._n that_o which_o remain_v be_v put_v off_o until_o the_o next_o congregation_n in_o the_o which_o the_o two_o point_n before_o propose_v be_v discuss_v and_o concern_v congregation_n a_o congregation_n the_o first_o there_o be_v two_o opinion_n one_o that_o the_o decree_n shall_v be_v frame_v and_o publish_v the_o other_o that_o it_o be_v not_o good_a to_o tie_v themselves_o with_o a_o decree_n but_o to_o keep_v their_o liberty_n and_o resolve_v as_o occasion_n shall_v serve_v they_o take_v a_o middle_a course_n to_o make_v mention_n only_o that_o the_o synod_n be_v principal_o assemble_v for_o these_o two_o cause_n without_o go_v any_o further_o but_o for_o the_o second_o point_n the_o mayor_n part_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o they_o be_v assemble_v to_o condemn_v the_o lutheran_n heresy_n they_o shall_v follow_v the_o order_n of_o their_o confession_n which_o other_o contradict_v because_o it_o be_v a_o imitation_n of_o the_o colloquy_n in_o germany_n which_o will_v debase_v the_o dignity_n of_o the_o council_n and_o the_o two_o first_o head_n of_o the_o augustan_n confession_n be_v of_o the_o trinity_n and_o incarnation_n in_o which_o there_o be_v no_o substantial_a difference_n though_o they_o be_v express_v after_o a_o new_a manner_n and_o unusual_a in_o the_o school_n if_o they_o shall_v be_v approve_v reputation_n will_v be_v give_v they_o and_o they_o can_v not_o so_o well_o condemn_v the_o rest_n and_o in_o case_n they_o will_v neither_o approve_v nor_o condemn_v they_o and_o speak_v of_o they_o not_o with_o the_o term_n of_o that_o confession_n but_o of_o the_o school_n or_o other_o there_o be_v danger_n to_o raise_v new_a dispute_n and_o new_a schism_n the_o legate_n who_o aim_v at_o nothing_o but_o to_o drive_v out_o the_o time_n be_v glad_a to_o hear_v the_o difficulty_n and_o do_v careful_o cherish_v they_o sometime_o encourage_v one_o and_o sometime_o another_o the_o time_n prefix_v for_o the_o session_n approach_v the_o legate_n have_v receive_v instruction_n the_o legate_n be_v perplex_v for_o want_v of_o instruction_n no_o instruction_n from_o rome_n be_v much_o perplex_v for_o to_o pass_v that_o session_n as_o the_o former_a in_o ceremony_n only_o be_v to_o loose_v all_o reputation_n and_o to_o handle_v any_o matter_n be_v dangerous_a because_o they_o have_v not_o their_o mark_n prefix_v whereat_o to_o aim_v that_o which_o seem_v to_o have_v least_o peril_n be_v to_o frame_v a_o decree_n upon_o the_o resolution_n take_v in_o the_o congregation_n to_o handle_v the_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o reformation_n together_o whereunto_o opposition_n be_v make_v that_o it_o be_v to_o bind_v themselves_o and_o to_o determine_v that_o in_o the_o congregation_n which_o be_v undecided_a by_o the_o pope_n in_o this_o ambiguity_n it_o be_v propose_v that_o they_o shall_v make_v a_o delatory_a decree_n under_o pretence_n that_o many_o prelate_n be_v in_o their_o journey_n and_o will_v short_o come_v thither_o cardinal_n poole_n tell_v they_o that_o in_o regard_n a_o confession_n of_o faith_n have_v be_v make_v in_o all_o the_o ancient_a cauncel_n the_o same_o shall_v be_v do_v in_o that_o session_n publish_v that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n at_o the_o last_o it_o be_v resolve_v to_o make_v the_o decree_n with_o a_o simple_a title_n and_o to_o make_v mention_n therein_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o treat_v of_o religion_n and_o reformation_n but_o in_o such_o general_a term_n that_o the_o creed_n may_v be_v recite_v and_o pass_v over_o make_v another_o decree_n to_o defer_v the_o material_a point_n until_o another_o session_n allege_v for_o a_o reason_n that_o some_o prelate_n be_v ready_a to_o set_v forward_o and_o some_o in_o their_o journey_n already_o and_o to_o prolong_v the_o term_n of_o the_o next_o session_n as_o long_o as_o they_o can_v for_o fear_n of_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o like_a strait_n yet_o so_o as_o not_o to_o put_v it_o off_o until_o after_o easter_n when_o this_o be_v frame_v they_o impart_v it_o to_o the_o prelate_n they_o trust_v most_o among_o who_o the_o bishop_n of_o bitonto_n put_v to_o their_o consideration_n that_o to_o make_v a_o session_n to_o establish_v a_o creed_n make_v 1200._o year_n before_o and_o continual_o believe_v and_o now_o absolute_o accept_v by_o all_o may_v be_v laugh_v at_o by_o those_o that_o be_v envious_a and_o ill_o expound_v by_o other_o that_o they_o can_v say_v they_o follow_v the_o father_n example_n in_o this_o because_o they_o have_v either_o make_v aconfession_n against_o the_o heresy_n they_o do_v condemn_v or_o repeat_v the_o former_a make_v against_o the_o heresy_n already_o condemn_v to_o give_v they_o great_a authority_n add_v some_o thing_n for_o declaration_n or_o to_o reduce_v it_o into_o memory_n or_o to_o secure_v it_o against_o oblivion_n but_o now_o neither_o a_o new_a confession_n be_v compose_v nor_o a_o declaration_n adjoin_v to_o give_v they_o more_o authority_n belong_v not_o to_o they_o nor_o to_o that_o age_n to_o recall_v it_o into_o memory_n in_o regard_n it_o be_v repeat_v every_o week_n in_o all_o church_n and_o be_v in_o the_o fresh_a memory_n of_o every_o one_o be_v a_o thing_n superfluous_a and_o affect_v that_o the_o heretic_n ought_v to_o be_v convince_v by_o the_o confession_n be_v true_a of_o those_o who_o err_v against_o it_o but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o of_o the_o lutheran_n who_o believe_v it_o as_o the_o catholic_n if_o when_o this_o preparation_n shall_v be_v make_v the_o confession_n be_v never_o use_v to_o this_o purpose_n it_o will_v be_v think_v to_o be_v do_v to_o no_o other_o end_n then_o to_o entertain_v the_o time_n and_o to_o sprinkle_v court-holy-water_n not_o dare_v to_o touch_v the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n nor_o be_v willing_a to_o meddle_v with_o the_o reformation_n he_o think_v it_o better_a to_o interpose_v delay_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o expectation_n of_o the_o prelate_n and_o so_o to_o end_v the_o session_n the_o bishop_n of_o chioza_n add_v that_o the_o reason_n allege_v may_v serve_v the_o heretic_n turn_n by_o say_v that_o if_o the_o confession_n can_v serve_v to_o convert_v infidel_n overcome_v the_o heretic_n and_o confirm_v the_o faithful_a they_o can_v not_o enforce_v they_o to_o believe_v any_o thing_n beside_o the_o legate_n judge_v not_o these_o reason_n to_o be_v so_o strong_a as_o the_o contrary_a that_o not_o to_o make_v a_o decree_n be_v loss_n of_o reputation_n therefore_o they_o resolve_v on_o that_o side_n and_o fit_v some_o word_n better_o according_a to_o the_o advertisement_n of_o the_o prelate_n and_o propose_v the_o decree_n in_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o first_o of_o february_n of_o this_o many_o thing_n be_v say_v and_o though_o it_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o mayor_n part_n yet_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o congregation_n it_o give_v distaste_v and_o some_o of_o the_o prelate_n say_v reason_v among_o themselves_o it_o will_v be_v say_v that_o by_o a_o work_n of_o twenty_o year_n time_n it_o have_v be_v conclude_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v bring_v to_o hear_v the_o creed_n repeat_v the_o four_o day_n destinate_a for_o the_o session_n they_o go_v to_o church_n with_o session_n the_o session_n the_o same_o ceremony_n and_o company_n in_o which_o peter_n tragliania_n archbishop_n of_o palermo_n sang_fw-fr mass_n ambrose_n catarin_n of_o sienna_n a_o dominican_n friar_n archbishop_z of_o torre_n read_v the_o decree_n the_o substance_n whereof_o be_v that_o the_o synod_n read_v the_o decree_n be_v read_v consider_v the_o importance_n of_o the_o two_o point_n to_o be_v treat_v of_o that_o be_v the_o extirpation_n of_o heresy_n and_o reformation_n of_o manner_n exhort_v all_o to_o trust_v in_o god_n and_o arm_v
most_o clear_o for_o make_v concupiscence_n a_o sin_n in_o the_o baptise_a only_o antoninus_n marinarus_n a_o carmelite_n friar_n affirm_v as_o the_o other_o that_o sin_n be_v cancel_v by_o baptism_n and_o that_o concupiscence_n be_v before_o sin_n yet_o for_o condemn_v the_o contrary_a of_o heresy_n he_o consider_v that_o saint_n austin_n be_v old_a write_v here_o of_o to_o bonifacius_n say_v plain_o that_o concupiscence_n be_v not_o a_o sin_n but_o a_o cause_n and_o a_o effect_n of_o sin_n and_o write_v against_o julianus_n he_o say_v in_o as_o plain_a term_n that_o it_o be_v sin_n and_o the_o cause_n and_o effect_v thereof_o and_o yet_o in_o his_o retraction_n he_o never_o make_v mention_n of_o either_o of_o these_o two_o contrary_a proposition_n because_o he_o think_v he_o may_v speak_v both_o way_n of_o it_o in_o regard_n it_o be_v not_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n the_o difference_n be_v rather_o verbal_a than_o otherwise_o for_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o ask_v if_o a_o thing_n be_v a_o sin_n or_o if_o it_o be_v a_o sin_n to_o a_o person_n excuse_v as_o he_o that_o go_v forth_o to_o hunt_v for_o thing_n necessary_a for_o his_o sustenance_n if_o he_o think_v to_o kill_v a_o wild_a beast_n and_o by_o invincible_a ignorance_n slay_v a_o man_n the_o lawyer_n say_v that_o the_o action_n be_v murder_n and_o a_o sin_n but_o the_o hunter_n be_v excuse_v so_o that_o unto_o he_o it_o be_v not_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o ignorance_n so_o concupiscence_n be_v the_o same_o before_o and_o after_o baptism_n be_v sin_n in_o itself_o and_o saint_n paul_n say_v that_o it_o resist_v the_o law_n of_o god_n even_o in_o the_o regenerate_a and_o whatsoever_o do_v that_o be_v sin_n but_o he_o that_o be_v baptize_v be_v excuse_v because_o he_o be_v clothe_v with_o christ_n so_o that_o the_o article_n be_v true_a one_o way_n and_o false_a another_o and_o it_o be_v not_o just_a to_o condemn_v a_o proposition_n which_o be_v true_a in_o one_o sense_n without_o distinguish_v it_o first_o this_o opinion_n be_v reject_v by_o all_o and_o it_o be_v say_v that_o saint_n austin_n make_v two_o sort_n of_o concupiscence_n one_o before_o baptism_n which_o be_v a_o repugnancy_n of_o the_o will_n to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n which_o he_o say_v be_v sin_n and_o abolish_v in_o baptism_n another_o which_o be_v the_o repugnancy_n of_o the_o sense_n to_o reason_n which_o remain_v after_o baptism_n which_o s._n austin_n call_v the_o cause_n and_o effect_n but_o never_o sin_n and_o when_o he_o seem_v to_o say_v otherwise_o it_o must_v be_v defend_v that_o his_o mind_n be_v that_o concupiscence_n be_v a_o sin_n which_o by_o baptism_n leave_v to_o be_v so_o and_o become_v a_o exercise_n of_o virtue_n and_o good_a work_n to_o this_o opinion_n of_o soto_n they_o join_v what_o he_o have_v say_v in_o his_o sermon_n make_v in_o the_o mass_n on_o the_o four_o sunday_n of_o the_o last_o advent_n and_o in_o that_o of_o the_o lent_n exhort_v to_o repose_v all_o confidence_n in_o god_n condemn_v all_o trust_n in_o work_n and_o affirm_v that_o the_o heroical_a act_n of_o the_o ancient_n so_o renown_v by_o man_n be_v true_o sin_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n not_o as_o of_o two_o time_n but_o as_o if_o the_o gospel_n have_v be_v ever_o and_o the_o law_n ought_v to_o be_v ever_o and_o also_o of_o the_o certainty_n of_o grace_n though_o with_o ambiguous_a and_o doubtful_a clause_n for_o fear_v they_o may_v so_o reprehend_v he_o that_o he_o can_v not_o be_v defend_v this_o make_v the_o friar_n suspect_v by_o some_o that_o he_o be_v not_o whole_o lutheranisme_n soto_n be_v suspect_v of_o lutheranisme_n averse_a from_o the_o protestant_n doctrine_n when_o they_o come_v to_o the_o article_n of_o the_o punishment_n though_o saint_n austin_n ground_v himself_o upon_o saint_n paul_n hold_v express_o that_o the_o pain_n of_o hell_n fire_n belong_v unto_o it_o even_o in_o little_a child_n whereunto_o none_o of_o the_o holy_a father_n contradict_v yet_o the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n with_o the_o schoolman_n who_o follow_v most_o of_o all_o philosophical_a reason_n distinguish_v two_o kind_n of_o eternal_a punishment_n one_o the_o privation_n only_o of_o celestial_a blessedness_n the_o other_o a_o chastisement_n and_o they_o assign_v the_o first_o only_o to_o original_a sin_n only_o gregory_n of_o arimini_fw-la forsake_v the_o general_a opinion_n of_o the_o schoolman_n who_o by_o that_o mean_v gain_v the_o name_n of_o tormenter_n of_o child_n but_o neither_o he_o nor_o saint_n austin_n be_v defend_v by_o the_o theologue_n in_o the_o congregation_n yet_o there_o be_v another_o division_n among_o they_o for_o the_o dominican_n limbo_n a_o difference_n between_o the_o franciscan_n and_o dominican_n about_o limbo_n say_v that_o child_n dead_a without_o baptism_n before_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n remain_v after_o the_o resurrection_n in_o a_o limbo_n and_o darkness_n under_o the_o earth_n but_o without_o fire_n the_o franciscan_n say_v they_o be_v to_o remain_v upon_o the_o earth_n and_o in_o light_n some_o affirm_v also_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v philosopher_n busy_v themselves_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o natural_a thing_n not_o without_o that_o great_a pleasure_n which_o happen_v when_o curiosity_n be_v satisfy_v by_o invention_n catarinus_n say_v further_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v visit_v and_o comfort_v by_o the_o holy_a angel_n and_o saint_n and_o in_o this_o so_o many_o vanity_n be_v deliver_v that_o they_o may_v give_v great_a matter_n of_o entertainment_n but_o for_o reverence_n of_o austin_n and_o not_o to_o condemn_v gregory_n of_o arimini_fw-la the_o augustinian_n make_v great_a mean_n that_o the_o article_n though_o false_a as_o they_o think_v may_v not_o be_v condemn_v for_o heretical_a though_o catarinus_n employ_v all_o his_o force_n to_o the_o contrary_a to_o repress_v as_o he_o say_v the_o boldness_n and_o ignorance_n of_o some_o preacher_n who_o to_o the_o great_a scandal_n of_o the_o people_n publish_v that_o doctrine_n affirm_v that_o saint_n austin_n have_v say_v so_o only_o in_o heat_n of_o disputation_n against_o the_o pelagian_n and_o not_o because_o he_o be_v clear_a in_o that_o opinion_n whereupon_o since_o the_o truth_n be_v declare_v to_o the_o contrary_a by_o common_a consent_n of_o the_o school_n and_o that_o the_o lutheran_n have_v raise_v the_o same_o error_n and_o the_o catholic_n themselves_o fall_v into_o it_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o synod_n be_v necessary_a the_o censure_n of_o the_o divine_n be_v end_v and_o the_o point_v treat_v of_o by_o the_o divine_n the_o prelate_n do_v scarce_o understand_v the_o discourse_n of_o the_o divine_n father_n to_o resolve_v upon_o the_o form_n of_o the_o decree_n the_o bishop_n among_o who_o very_o few_o have_v knowledge_n in_o theology_n but_o be_v either_o lawyer_n or_o learned_a man_n of_o the_o court_n be_v confound_v with_o this_o scholastical_a and_o crabbed_a manner_n of_o handle_v the_o article_n and_o among_o so-many_a opinion_n know_v not_o what_o to_o think_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o original_a sin_n that_o of_o catarinus_n be_v best_o understand_v because_o it_o be_v express_v by_o a_o political_a conceit_n of_o a_o bargain_n make_v by_o one_o for_o his_o posterity_n which_o be_v transgress_v they_o be_v all_o undoubted_o bind_v and_o many_o of_o the_o father_n do_v favour_v that_o but_o perceive_v the_o contradiction_n of_o the_o other_o divine_n they_o dare_v not_o receive_v it_o for_o remission_n of_o the_o sin_n this_o only_a they_o hold_v to_o be_v clear_a that_o every_o one_o have_v original_a sin_n before_o baptism_n and_o be_v perfect_o purge_v of_o it_o by_o baptism_n therefore_o they_o conclude_v that_o this_o shall_v be_v establish_v for_o faith_n and_o the_o contrary_n condemn_v for_o heresy_n together_o with_o all_o those_o opinion_n which_o deny_v original_a sin_n in_o what_o sort_n soever_o but_o what_o that_o sin_n be_v there_o be_v so_o many_o difference_n among_o the_o divine_n they_o say_v it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o set_v down_o so_o circumspect_o that_o it_o may_v satisfy_v all_o and_o not_o condemn_v some_o opinion_n which_o may_v cause_v a_o schism_n marcus_n viguerius_n bishop_n of_o sinigaglia_n friar_n jerom_n general_n of_o s._n austin_n catholic_n andrea_n vega_n a_o franciscan_a oppose_v the_o common_a inclination_n to_o condemn_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o lutheran_n without_o declare_v the_o opinion_n of_o t_o 〈…〉_o catholic_n and_o andreas_n vega_n a_o franciscan_a divine_a be_v opposite_a to_o this_o general_a inclination_n this_o last_o show_v more_o than_o the_o other_o that_o it_o be_v not_o convenient_a nor_o ever_o use_v by_o any_o council_n to_o condemn_v a_o opinion_n for_o heretical_a without_o declare_v first_o which_o be_v catholic_a that_o no_o true_a negative_a have_v in_o itself_o
not_o it_o shall_v be_v say_v that_o faith_n be_v form_v with_o charity_n because_o that_o kind_a of_o speech_n be_v not_o use_v by_o saint_n paul_n but_o only_o that_o faith_n work_v by_o charity_n other_o understand_v that_o justify_v faith_n be_v faith_n in_o general_a not_o say_v it_o be_v either_o lively_a or_o dead_a because_o they_o do_v both_o justify_v after_o diverse_a manner_n either_o complete_o as_o the_o lively_a or_o as_o a_o beginning_n or_o foundation_n as_o the_o historical_a faith_n and_o of_o this_o saint_n paul_n speak_v when_o he_o attribute_v justice_n unto_o it_o no_o otherwise_o then_o as_o philosophy_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o alphabet_n that_o be_v as_o in_o a_o basis_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v nothing_o the_o principal_a remain_v that_o be_v to_o set_v the_o statue_n upon_o it_o this_o second_o opinion_n be_v joint_o maintain_v by_o the_o dominican_n and_o franciscan_n the_o other_o by_o marinarus_n and_o his_o adherent_n but_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o difficulty_n be_v not_o touch_v that_o be_v whether_o a_o man_n be_v just_a and_o then_o do_v just_o or_o by_o do_v just_o become_v just_a they_o all_o agree_v in_o one_o opinion_n that_o to_o say_v only_a faith_n do_v justify_v be_v a_o proposition_n of_o many_o fence_n and_o all_o absurd_a for_o god_n and_o the_o sacrament_n do_v justify_v as_o cause_n in_o their_o several_a kind_n so_o that_o the_o proposition_n have_v that_o and_o many_o other_o exception_n the_o preparation_n also_o of_o the_o soul_n to_o receive_v grace_n be_v a_o cause_n in_o its_o kind_n so_o that_o faith_n can_v exclude_v that_o sort_n of_o work_n but_o the_o article_n concern_v work_n that_o go_v before_o grace_n all_o which_o luther_n condemn_v for_o sin_n the_o divine_n censure_v for_o heretical_a rather_o by_o way_n of_o invective_n then_o otherwise_o condemn_v likewise_o of_o heresy_n the_o opinion_n take_v in_o general_a that_o humane_a work_n without_o faith_n be_v sin_n think_v it_o a_o clear_a case_n that_o many_o action_n of_o man_n be_v indifferent_a neither_o good_a nor_o evil_a and_o that_o other_o there_o be_v which_o though_o they_o be_v not_o acceptable_a to_o god_n yet_o be_v moral_o good_a as_o the_o honest_a action_n of_o infidel_n and_o christian_n which_o be_v sinner_n which_o to_o call_v honest_a and_o sin_n impli_v a_o contradiction_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o in_o this_o rank_n be_v include_v the_o heroical_a action_n so_o much_o commend_v by_o antiquity_n but_o catarinus_n maintain_v that_o man_n without_o the_o special_a help_n of_o god_n can_v do_v no_o work_n which_o may_v true_o be_v good_a though_o moral_o but_o sin_v work_n catarinus_n his_o opinion_n concern_v the_o value_n of_o work_n still_o therefore_o the_o work_n of_o the_o infidel_n who_o be_v not_o excite_v by_o god_n to_o believe_v and_o of_o the_o faithful_a who_o be_v sinner_n before_o god_n stir_v they_o up_o to_o conversion_n though_o they_o seem_v honest_a to_o man_n even_o heroical_a yet_o be_v true_o sin_n and_o he_o that_o commend_v they_o do_v consider_v they_o in_o general_a and_o according_a to_o external_a appearance_n but_o he_o that_o shall_v examine_v the_o circumstance_n of_o every_o one_o shall_v find_v they_o be_v perverse_a and_o that_o for_o this_o luther_n be_v not_o to_o be_v condemn_v notwithstanding_o he_o say_v that_o the_o article_n ought_v to_o be_v censure_v as_o they_o speak_v of_o work_n that_o follow_v prevent_v grace_n which_o be_v a_o preparation_n to_o justification_n as_o a_o abomination_n of_o sin_n fear_v of_o hell_n and_o other_o terror_n of_o conscience_n for_o confirmation_n of_o his_o opinion_n he_o bring_v the_o doctrine_n of_o saint_n thomas_n that_o to_o do_v a_o good_a work_n the_o concurrence_n of_o all_o circumstance_n be_v necessary_a but_o the_o want_n of_o one_o only_o be_v sufficient_a for_o a_o ill_a so_o that_o howsoever_o among_o the_o work_n consider_v in_o general_a some_o be_v indifferent_a yet_o in_o the_o singular_a there_o be_v no_o medium_n between_o have_v all_o the_o circumstance_n and_o want_v some_o therefore_o every_o particular_a action_n be_v good_a or_o evil_n neither_o be_v there_o to_o be_v find_v any_o one_o indifferent_a and_o because_o among_o the_o circumstance_n the_o end_n be_v one_o all_o work_v refer_v to_o a_o bad_a end_n be_v infect_v so_o that_o the_o infidel_n refer_v all_o to_o a_o bad_a end_n their_o action_n be_v sin_n though_o they_o seem_v heroical_a to_o he_o that_o know_v not_o their_o intention_n neither_o do_v it_o make_v any_o difference_n whether_o the_o relation_n to_o a_o bad_a end_n be_v actual_a or_o habitual_a because_o the_o just_a do_v merit_n though_o he_o refer_v not_o the_o work_n actual_o to_o god_n but_o habitual_o only_a he_o say_v further_o allege_v saint_n austin_n that_o it_o be_v sin_n not_o only_o to_o refer_v the_o action_n to_o a_o bad_a end_n but_o also_o not_o to_o refer_v it_o to_o a_o good_a and_o because_o he_o defend_v that_o without_o the_o special_a prevent_a assistance_n of_o god_n a_o man_n can_v refer_v any_o thing_n to_o god_n he_o conclude_v that_o no_o good_a moral_a work_n can_v be_v before_o for_o this_o he_o allege_v many_o place_n of_o saint_n austin_n to_o show_v that_o he_o be_v of_o this_o opinion_n he_o allege_v also_o place_n of_o saint_n ambrose_n saint_n prosper_n s._n anselmus_n and_o of_o other_o father_n he_o produce_v gregory_n of_o arimini_fw-la the_o cardinal_n of_o rochester_n who_o in_o his_o book_n against_o luther_n be_v clear_o of_o the_o same_o opinion_n say_v it_o be_v better_a to_o follow_v the_o father_n than_o the_o schoolman_n who_o be_v divide_v and_o rather_o to_o take_v the_o scripture_n for_o a_o ground_n from_o whence_o true_a theology_n be_v take_v than_o the_o subtlety_n of_o philosophy_n which_o the_o school_n have_v use_v that_o himself_o also_o be_v of_o that_o opinion_n but_o have_v study_v the_o scripture_n and_o father_n have_v find_v the_o truth_n he_o allege_v the_o passage_n of_o the_o gospel_n a_o bad_a tree_n can_v bear_v good_a fruit_n with_o the_o amplification_n which_o our_o saviour_n add_v say_v either_o make_v the_o tree_n good_a and_o the_o fruit_n good_a or_o the_o tree_n evil_a and_o the_o fruit_n evil_a he_o use_v also_o other_o argument_n and_o especial_o the_o place_n of_o saint_n paul_n that_o nothing_o can_v be_v clean_o to_o infidel_n because_o their_o mind_n and_o conscience_n be_v spot_v this_o opinion_n be_v very_o sharp_o impugn_a by_o soto_n proclaim_v it_o heretical_a heretical_a soto_n proclaym_v the_o opinion_n of_o catarinus_n to_o be_v heretical_a for_o infer_v that_o man_n have_v not_o liberty_n to_o do_v well_o nor_o can_v obtain_v his_o natural_a end_n which_o be_v to_o deny_v freewill_n with_o the_o lutheran_n he_o maintain_v a_o man_n may_v by_o that_o strength_n of_o nature_n observe_v every_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o work_n though_o not_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o end_n which_o be_v enough_o to_o avoid_v sin_n he_o say_v there_o be_v three_o sort_n of_o humane_a action_n one_o the_o transgression_n of_o the_o law_n which_o be_v sin_n another_o the_o observation_n thereof_o have_v charity_n for_o the_o end_n which_o be_v meritorious_a and_o acceptable_a to_o god_n the_o three_o mix_v when_o the_o law_n be_v obey_v for_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o precept_n which_o work_n be_v moral_o good_a and_o perfect_a in_o its_o kind_n because_o it_o accomplish_v the_o law_n make_v every_o work_n good_a according_a to_o morality_n avoid_v by_o that_o mean_n all_o sin_n but_o he_o moderate_v this_o great_a perfection_n of_o our_o nature_n by_o add_v that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o take_v heed_n of_o any_o one_o particular_a sin_n and_o another_o to_o beware_v of_o all_o together_o and_o say_v that_o a_o man_n may_v avoid_v any_o one_o but_o not_o all_o by_o the_o example_n of_o he_o that_o have_v a_o vessel_n with_o three_o hole_n who_o can_v not_o stop_v they_o with_o two_o hand_n but_o can_v stop_v which_o two_o of_o they_o he_o will_v one_o remain_v open_a of_o necessity_n this_o doctrine_n do_v not_o satisfy_v some_o of_o the_o father_n for_o though_o it_o clear_o show_v that_o all_o work_n be_v not_o sin_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o whole_o salve_v freewill_n because_o it_o will_v necessary_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v not_o free_a in_o avoid_v all_o sin_n but_o soto_n give_v the_o title_n of_o good_a work_n unto_o these_o know_v not_o how_o to_o determine_v whether_o they_o be_v preparatory_a to_o justification_n it_o seem_v to_o he_o they_o be_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o goodness_n of_o they_o and_o it_o seem_v they_o be_v not_o consider_v the_o doctrine_n of_o saint_n austin_n approve_v by_o saint_n thomas_n and_o other_o good_a divine_n
disputation_n and_o how_o far_o different_a that_o be_v which_o they_o print_v will_v not_o believe_v how_o much_o be_v speak_v upon_o this_o article_n and_o with_o how_o much_o heat_n not_o only_o by_o the_o divine_n but_o the_o bishop_n also_o all_o seem_a to_o understand_v the_o truth_n and_o to_o have_v it_o on_o their_o side_n so_o that_o santa_n croce_n see_v there_o be_v more_o need_n of_o a_o bridle_n than_o spur_n who_o desire_v to_o make_v a_o end_n of_o it_o by_o entreat_v they_o to_o pass_v to_o something_o else_o and_o to_o divert_v the_o controversy_n it_o be_v twice_o propose_v in_o congregation_n of_o the_o prelate_n to_o leave_v this_o question_n as_o ambiguous_a long_a and_o troublesome_a yet_o they_o return_v to_o it_o be_v draw_v by_o their_o affection_n at_o last_o the_o cardinal_n show_v they_o have_v say_v enough_o and_o that_o they_o shall_v consider_v again_o of_o the_o thing_n speak_v to_o resolve_v on_o they_o more_o mature_o obtain_v of_o they_o to_o speak_v of_o preparative_n work_v and_o observation_n of_o the_o law_n upon_o which_o occasion_n the_o matter_n of_o free_a will_n be_v bring_v in_o by_o many_o and_o not_o neglect_v by_o the_o cardinal_n &_o he_o propose_v whether_o they_o will_v have_v that_o particular_a also_o handle_v together_o with_o the_o rest_n because_o it_o do_v so_o cohere_v with_o they_o that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v handle_v several_o therefore_o prelate_n and_o divine_n be_v depute_a to_o collect_v article_n out_o of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o lutheran_n that_o they_o may_v be_v censure_v the_o article_n be_v 1._o god_n be_v the_o total_a cause_n of_o our_o work_n good_a and_o evil_n and_o the_o adultery_n of_o david_n the_o cruelty_n of_o manlius_n and_o the_o treason_n of_o judas_n be_v work_n of_o god_n as_o well_o as_o the_o vocation_n of_o saul_n 2._o no_o man_n have_v power_n to_o think_v well_o or_o ill_o but_o all_o come_v from_o absolute_a necessity_n and_o in_o we_o be_v no_o free_a will_n and_o to_o affirm_v it_o be_v a_o mere_a fiction_n 3._o free_a will_n article_n concern_v free_a will_n will_n since_o the_o sin_n of_o adam_n be_v lose_v and_o a_o thing_n only_o tirular_a and_o when_o one_o do_v what_o be_v in_o his_o power_n he_o sin_v mortal_o yea_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n feign_a and_o a_o title_n without_o reality_n 4._o free_a will_n be_v only_o in_o do_v ill_a and_o have_v no_o power_n to_o do_v good_a 5._o free_a will_n move_v by_o god_n do_v by_o no_o mean_n cooperate_v and_o follow_v as_o a_o instrument_n without_o life_n or_o as_o a_o unreasonable_a creature_n 6._o that_o god_n convert_v those_o only_a who_o he_o will_v though_o they_o will_v not_o and_o spurn_v against_o it_o upon_o the_o two_o first_o article_n they_o rather_o speak_v in_o a_o tragical_a manner_n then_o article_n the_o discussion_n of_o the_o article_n theological_a that_o the_o lutheran_n doctrine_n be_v a_o frantic_a wisdom_n that_o man_n will_n as_o they_o make_v it_o be_v prodigious_a that_o those_o word_n a_o thing_n of_o title_n only_o a_o title_n without_o reality_n be_v monstrous_a that_o the_o opinion_n be_v impious_a and_o blasphemous_a against_o god_n that_o the_o church_n have_v condemn_v it_o against_o the_o manichee_n priscillianist_n and_o last_o against_o aballardus_n and_o wigleffe_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o folly_n against_o common_a sense_n every_o one_o prove_v in_o himself_o his_o own_o liberty_n that_o it_o deserve_v not_o confutation_n but_o as_o aristotle_n say_v chastisement_n or_o experimental_a proof_n that_o luther_n scholar_n perceive_v the_o folly_n and_o to_o moderate_v the_o absurdity_n say_v after_o that_o man_n have_v liberty_n in_o external_a political_a and_o ecumenical_a action_n and_o in_o matter_n of_o civil_a justice_n that_o which_o every_o one_o but_o a_o fool_n know_v to_o proceed_v from_o counsel_n and_o election_n but_o deny_v liberty_n in_o matter_n of_o divine_a justice_n only_o marinarus_n say_v that_o as_o it_o be_v foolish_a to_o say_v no_o humane_a action_n be_v in_o our_o power_n so_o it_o be_v no_o less_o absurd_a to_o say_v that_o every_o one_o be_v every_o one_o find_v by_o experience_n that_o he_o have_v not_o his_o affection_n in_o his_o power_n that_o this_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o school_n which_o say_v that_o we_o be_v not_o free_a in_o the_o first_o motion_n which_o freedom_n because_o the_o saint_n have_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o some_o freedom_n be_v in_o they_o which_o be_v not_o in_o us._n catarinus_n according_a to_o his_o own_o opinion_n that_o without_o god_n special_a assistance_n a_o man_n can_v do_v a_o moral_a good_a say_v there_o be_v no_o liberty_n in_o this_o and_o therefore_o that_o the_o four_o article_n be_v not_o so_o easy_o to_o be_v condemn_v vega_n after_o he_o have_v speak_v with_o such_o ambiguity_n that_o he_o understand_v not_o himself_o conclude_v that_o between_o the_o divine_n and_o the_o protestant_n there_o be_v no_o difference_n of_o opinion_n for_o these_o conclude_v now_o that_o there_o be_v liberty_n in_o philosophical_a justice_n and_o not_o in_o supernatural_a in_o external_a work_n of_o the_o law_n not_o in_o internal_a and_o spiritual_a it_o be_v to_o say_v precise_o with_o the_o church_n that_o one_o can_v do_v spiritual_a work_n belong_v to_o religion_n without_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n and_o though_o he_o say_v that_o all_o endeavour_n be_v to_o be_v use_v for_o composition_n yet_o he_o be_v not_o grateful_o hear_v it_o seem_v in_o some_o sort_n a_o prejudice_n that_o any_o of_o the_o difference_n may_v be_v reconcile_v and_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o say_v that_o this_o be_v a_o point_n of_o the_o colloquy_n a_o word_n abhor_v as_o if_o by_o that_o the_o laity_n have_v usurp_v that_o authority_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o counsel_n a_o great_a disputation_n arise_v among_o they_o whether_o it_o be_v in_o man_n power_n to_o believe_v or_o not_o believe_v the_o franciscan_n follow_v scotus_n do_v deny_v it_o say_v that_o as_o knowledge_n do_v necessary_o follow_v demonstration_n so_o faith_n do_v arise_v necessary_o from_o persuasion_n and_o that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o understanding_n which_o be_v a_o natural_a agent_n and_o be_v natural_o move_v by_o the_o object_n they_o allege_v experience_n that_o no_o man_n can_v believe_v what_o he_o will_v but_o what_o seem_v true_a add_v that_o no_o man_n will_v feel_v any_o displeasure_n if_o he_o can_v believe_v he_o have_v it_o not_o the_o dominican_n say_v that_o nothing_o be_v more_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o will_v then_o to_o believe_v and_o by_o the_o determination_n and_o resolution_n of_o the_o will_v only_o one_o may_v believe_v the_o number_n of_o the_o star_n be_v even_o upon_o the_o three_o article_n whether_o free_a will_v be_v lose_v by_o sin_n very_o many_o authority_n of_o saint_n austin_n be_v allege_v which_o express_o say_v it_o soto_n do_v invent_v because_o he_o know_v no_o other_o mean_n to_o avoid_v they_o that_o true_a liberty_n be_v equivocal_a for_o either_o it_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o noun_n libertas_n freedom_n or_o from_o the_o verb_n liberare_fw-la to_o set_v free_a that_o in_o the_o first_o sense_n it_o be_v oppose_v to_o necessity_n in_o the_o second_o to_o servitude_n and_o that_o when_o saint_n austin_n say_v that_o freewill_n be_v lose_v he_o will_v infer_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o it_o be_v make_v slave_n to_o sin_n and_o satan_n this_o difference_n can_v not_o be_v understand_v because_o a_o servant_n be_v not_o free_a for_o that_o he_o can_v do_v his_o own_o will_n but_o be_v compel_v to_o follow_v his_o master_n and_o by_o this_o opinion_n luther_n can_v not_o be_v blame_v for_o intitle_v a_o book_n of_o servile_a will_n many_o think_v the_o four_o article_n absurd_a say_v that_o liberty_n be_v understand_v to_o be_v a_o power_n to_o both_o the_o contrary_n therefore_o that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o liberty_n to_o evil_a if_o it_o be_v not_o also_o to_o good_a but_o they_o be_v make_v to_o acknowledge_v their_o error_n when_o they_o be_v tell_v that_o the_o saint_n and_o bless_a angel_n in_o heaven_n be_v free_a to_o do_v good_a and_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v no_o inconvenience_n that_o some_o shall_v be_v free_a only_o to_o do_v evil_a in_o examine_v the_o five_o and_o sixth_o article_n of_o the_o consent_n which_o freewill_n give_v to_o divine_a inspiration_n or_o prevent_v grace_n the_o franciscan_n and_o dominican_n be_v of_o diverse_a opinion_n the_o franciscan_n contend_v that_o the_o will_n be_v able_a to_o prepare_v itself_o it_o have_v liberty_n much_o more_o to_o accept_v or_o refuse_v the_o divine_a prevention_n when_o god_n give_v assistance_n before_o it_o use_v the_o strength_n of_o nature_n the_o dominican_n deny_v that_o the_o work_n precede_v the_o
not_o absolute_o necessary_a there_o be_v another_o opinion_n also_o to_o be_v condemn_v which_o say_v that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o necessary_a in_o the_o church_n because_o it_o be_v certain_a they_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o every_o one_o yea_o that_o some_o be_v incompatible_a as_o order_n and_o matrimony_n yet_o the_o more_o common_a opinion_n be_v that_o the_o article_n shall_v be_v condemn_v absolute_o for_o two_o reason_n one_o because_o the_o necessity_n of_o one_o be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v the_o article_n false_a as_o it_o lie_v the_o other_o because_o they_o be_v all_o necessary_a in_o some_o sort_n some_o absolute_o some_o by_o supposition_n some_o by_o conveniency_n and_o some_o for_o great_a utility_n but_o many_o marvel_v that_o article_n of_o faith_n shall_v be_v establish_v in_o such_o multiplicity_n of_o equivocation_n for_o who_o satisfaction_n when_o the_o canon_n be_v compose_v there_o be_v add_v condemn_v he_o that_o hold_v the_o sacrament_n not_o to_o be_v necessary_a but_o superfluous_a enlarge_n by_o this_o last_o term_n the_o signification_n of_o the_o first_o many_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o article_n ought_v to_o be_v omit_v because_o it_o be_v define_v in_o the_o last_o session_n that_o faith_n only_o be_v not_o sufficient_a and_o marinarus_n say_v that_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o vow_n be_v use_v by_o the_o schoolman_n but_o be_v unknowen_a to_o antiquity_n and_o full_a of_o difficulty_n for_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n when_o cornelius_n the_o centurion_n be_v instruct_v the_o angel_n say_v his_o prayer_n be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n before_o he_o know_v the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n and_o other_o particular_n of_o faith_n and_o all_o his_o family_n hear_v the_o sermon_n of_o saint_n peter_n receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n before_o they_o have_v be_v instruct_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o after_o the_o holy_a ghost_n receive_v they_o be_v instruct_v concern_v baptism_n by_o saint_n peter_n so_o that_o have_v no_o knowledge_n of_o it_o they_o can_v not_o receive_v it_o in_o vow_n and_o the_o thief_n upon_o the_o cross_n then_o only_o illuminate_v by_o the_o virtue_n of_o christ_n know_v not_o the_o sacrament_n nor_o can_v make_v any_o vow_n of_o they_o and_o many_o holy_a martyr_n convert_v in_o the_o heat_n of_o persecution_n by_o see_v the_o constancy_n of_o other_o and_o present_o take_v and_o put_v to_o death_n one_o can_v say_v but_o by_o divination_n that_o they_o know_v the_o sacrament_n and_o can_v make_v a_o vow_n therefore_o it_o be_v better_a to_o leave_v that_o distinction_n to_o the_o school_n and_o to_o put_v it_o in_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n the_o common_a opinion_n be_v to_o the_o contrary_a say_v that_o although_o the_o word_n of_o the_o distinction_n be_v new_a and_o scholastical_a yet_o one_o must_v believe_v that_o the_o thing_n signify_v be_v teach_v by_o christ_n and_o be_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o for_o the_o example_n of_o cornelius_n the_o thief_n and_o martyr_n it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v that_o there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o vow_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o one_o explicit_a the_o other_o implicit_a and_o at_o the_o least_o this_o second_o be_v necessary_a that_o be_v that_o they_o have_v not_o the_o vow_n actual_o but_o will_v have_v have_v it_o if_o they_o have_v be_v inform_v these_o thing_n the_o other_o grant_v to_o be_v true_a but_o not_o obligatorie_n as_o article_n of_o faith_n the_o difficulty_n in_o which_o they_o can_v not_o agree_v where_o refer_v to_o the_o synod_n that_o be_v to_o the_o general_a congregation_n as_o it_o happen_v also_o in_o the_o three_o article_n which_o though_o every_o one_o think_v to_o be_v false_a yet_o all_o do_v agree_v that_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o necessity_n and_o utility_n baptism_n sacrament_n concern_v the_o dignity_n of_o the_o sacrament_n do_v proceed_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o signification_n matrimony_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o minister_n confirmation_n in_o regrad_v of_o divine_a worship_n the_o eucharist_n but_o because_o one_o can_v say_v without_o a_o distinction_n which_o be_v more_o worthy_a it_o be_v better_a to_o omit_v the_o article_n which_o can_v be_v understand_v without_o subtlety_n another_o opinion_n be_v that_o all_o the_o respect_n of_o dignity_n ought_v to_o be_v express_v and_o another_o that_o the_o clause_n shall_v be_v add_v to_o the_o article_n that_o be_v according_a to_o the_o diverse_a respect_n this_o opinion_n be_v most_o follow_v but_o do_v much_o displease_v those_o who_o can_v not_o endure_v that_o the_o synod_n shall_v abase_v itself_o to_o these_o scholastical_a foolery_n for_o so_o they_o call_v they_o and_o believe_v that_o christ_n will_v have_v these_o weak_a opinion_n bring_v into_o his_o faith_n although_o that_o the_o four_o article_n ought_v to_o be_v condemn_v yea_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o amplify_v it_o condemn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la in_o particular_a condemn_v the_o four_o article_n be_v general_o condemn_v who_o will_v have_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v but_o sign_n by_o which_o the_o faithful_a be_v discern_v from_o infidel_n or_o act_n and_o exercise_n of_o the_o profession_n of_o christian_a faith_n have_v no_o other_o relation_n to_o grace_n but_o as_o sign_n that_o one_o have_v receive_v it_o after_o they_o treat_v of_o condemn_v those_o who_o deny_v that_o sacrament_n do_v confer_v grace_n to_o he_o that_o put_v not_o a_o bar_n or_o do_v not_o confess_v that_o grace_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o confer_v not_o by_o virtue_n of_o faith_n but_o exit_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la but_o come_v to_o expound_v how_o they_o be_v contain_v and_o their_o causalitie_n every_o one_o do_v agree_v that_o grace_n be_v gain_v by_o all_o operato_fw-la whether_o the_o sacrament_n do_v confer_v grace_n exit_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la those_o action_n that_o excite_v devotion_n which_o proceed_v not_o from_o the_o force_n of_o the_o work_n itself_o but_o from_o the_o virtue_n of_o devotion_n which_o be_v in_o the_o worker_n and_o these_o be_v say_v in_o the_o school_n to_o cause_v grace_n exit_fw-la opere_fw-la operantis_fw-la there_o be_v other_o action_n which_o cause_n grace_n not_o by_o the_o devotion_n of_o he_o that_o work_v or_o of_o he_o that_o receive_v the_o work_n but_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o work_n itself_o such_o be_v the_o christian_a sacrament_n by_o which_o grace_n be_v receive_v so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o bar_n of_o mortal_a sin_n to_o exclude_v it_o though_o there_o be_v not_o any_o devotion_n so_o by_o the_o work_n of_o baptism_n grace_n be_v give_v to_o the_o infant_n who_o mind_n be_v not_o move_v towards_o it_o and_o to_o one_o bear_v a_o fool_n because_o there_o be_v no_o impediment_n of_o sin_n the_o sacrament_n of_o chrism_n do_v the_o like_a and_o that_o of_o extreme_a unction_n though_o the_o sick_a man_n have_v lose_v his_o memory_n but_o he_o that_o have_v mortal_a sin_n and_o do_v persevere_v actual_o or_o habitual_o can_v receive_v grace_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o contrariety_n not_o because_o the_o sacrament_n have_v not_o virtue_n to_o produce_v it_o exit_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la but_o because_o the_o receiver_n be_v not_o capable_a be_v possess_v with_o a_o contrary_a quality_n though_o they_o all_o agree_v in_o this_o yet_o they_o differ_v because_o the_o dominican_n do_v affirm_v that_o how_o be_v it_o grace_n be_v a_o spiritual_a quality_n create_v immediate_o by_o god_n yet_o it_o be_v a_o instrumental_a and_o effective_a virtue_n in_o the_o sacrament_n which_o cause_v a_o disposition_n in_o the_o soul_n to_o receive_v it_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v say_v that_o they_o contain_v grace_n not_o that_o it_o be_v in_o they_o as_o in_o a_o vessel_n but_o as_o the_o effect_n in_o the_o cause_n allege_v a_o subtle_a example_n as_o the_o chezill_n be_v active_a not_o only_o in_o scable_v the_o stone_n but_o in_o give_v form_n to_o the_o statue_n the_o franciscan_n grace_n the_o franciscan_n and_o dominican_n can_v agree_v about_o the_o manner_n ho_o 〈…〉_o the_o sacrament_n do_v contain_v grace_n say_v that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v conceive_v how_o god_n be_v a_o spiritual_a cause_n can_v use_v a_o corporal_a instrument_n for_o a_o spiritual_a effect_n as_o be_v grace_n they_o do_v absolute_o deny_v all_o effective_a or_o dispositive_a virtue_n in_o the_o sacrament_n say_v they_o have_v no_o virtue_n but_o by_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n that_o so_o often_o as_o they_o shall_v be_v administer_v he_o will_v give_v his_o grace_n to_o they_o therefore_o it_o be_v say_v they_o do_v contain_v it_o as_o in_o a_o effectual_a sign_n not_o by_o any_o virtue_n of_o their_o own_o but_o by_o a_o divine_a promise_n of_o infallible_a assistance_n to_o the_o ministry_n therefore_o
it_o be_v a_o cause_n for_o that_o the_o effect_n do_v follow_v not_o by_o any_o virtue_n of_o its_o own_o but_o by_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n to_o give_v grace_n at_o that_o time_n as_o the_o merit_n be_v cause_n of_o the_o reward_n without_o any_o activity_n this_o they_o prove_v not_o only_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o scotus_n and_o saint_n bonaventure_n their_o divine_n but_o by_o saint_n bernard_n also_o who_o say_v that_o grace_n be_v receive_v by_o the_o sacrament_n as_o a_o canon_n be_v invest_v by_o the_o book_n and_o a_o bishop_n by_o the_o ring_n the_o reason_n be_v expound_v on_o both_o side_n with_o great_a prolixity_n and_o sharpness_n and_o they_o censure_v one_o another_o the_o dominican_n say_v that_o the_o other_o opinion_n be_v near_o to_o lutheranisme_n and_o the_o other_o that_o they_o be_v impossible_a give_v occasion_n to_o the_o heretic_n to_o calumniate_v the_o church_n some_o good_a prelate_n desire_v though_o without_o effect_n to_o make_v peace_n say_v that_o in_o regard_n they_o agree_v in_o the_o conclusion_n that_o the_o sacrament_n contain_v and_o be_v cause_n of_o grace_n it_o do_v little_a import_n in_o what_o manner_n and_o that_o it_o be_v better_a not_o descend_v to_o particular_n to_o stand_v in_o the_o general_a but_o the_o friar_n reply_v that_o they_o speak_v not_o of_o word_n but_o of_o establish_v or_o annihilate_v the_o sacrament_n there_o will_v never_o have_v be_v a_o end_n if_o the_o legate_n sancta_fw-la croce_n have_v not_o give_v order_n that_o they_o shall_v pass_v to_o that_o which_o remain_v and_o that_o afterward_o they_o shall_v return_v to_o examine_v whether_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o decide_v the_o point_n or_o to_o leave_v it_o the_o legate_n call_v unto_o they_o the_o general_n of_o the_o order_n and_o pray_v friar_n the_o legate_n use_v mean_n to_o repress_v the_o dangerous_a liberty_n of_o the_o friar_n they_o to_o cause_v the_o friar_n to_o treat_v with_o modesty_n and_o charity_n without_o partiality_n to_o their_o own_o sect_n show_v they_o be_v call_v to_o speak_v against_o heresy_n and_o not_o to_o make_v new_o arise_v by_o dispute_n and_o they_o write_v thereof_o to_o rome_n show_v how_o dangerous_a the_o liberty_n be_v which_o the_o friar_n do_v assume_v and_o to_o what_o it_o may_v come_v and_o they_o tell_v the_o pope_n that_o a_o moderation_n be_v necessary_a for_o there_o be_v a_o fame_n spread_v of_o those_o dissension_n and_o censure_n which_o one_o party_n pronounce_v against_o the_o other_o it_o must_v needs_o raise_v scandal_n and_o small_a reputation_n of_o the_o council_n it_o be_v think_v fit_a to_o omit_v the_o five_o article_n as_o decide_v in_o the_o former_a session_n but_o friar_n bartholomew_n miranda_n call_v to_o mind_n that_o luther_n by_o that_o paradox_n of_o he_o that_o the_o sacrament_n do_v not_o confer_v grace_n but_o by_o exciting_a faith_n draw_v also_o a_o conclusion_n that_o those_o of_o the_o old_a and_o of_o the_o evangelicall_a law_n be_v of_o equal_a virtue_n which_o opinion_n be_v to_o be_v condemn_v as_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o church_n all_o have_v say_v that_o the_o old_a sacrament_n be_v only_a sign_n of_o grace_n but_o the_o new_a contain_v it_o and_o cause_n it_o no_o man_n do_v contradict_v the_o conclusion_n but_o the_o franciscan_n propose_v that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v say_v of_o the_o old_a law_n but_o of_o moses_n law_n in_o regard_n that_o circumcision_n itself_o do_v cause_n grace_n but_o it_o be_v not_o a_o mosaical_a sacrament_n for_o christ_n also_o say_v it_o be_v not_o of_o moses_n but_o of_o the_o father_n and_o also_o because_o other_o sacrifice_n before_o abraham_n do_v confer_v and_o cause_n grace_n the_o dominican_n reply_v that_o saint_n paul_n say_v plain_o that_o abraham_n have_v receive_v the_o circumcision_n only_o for_o a_o sign_n that_o he_o be_v the_o first_o unto_o who_o it_o be_v give_v it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v it_o be_v institute_v only_o for_o a_o sign_n and_o the_o question_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o contain_v and_o cause_v grace_n return_v into_o the_o field_n friar_z gregory_n of_o milan_n say_v hereupon_o that_o it_o be_v a_o clear_a case_n in_o logic_n that_o thing_n in_o the_o same_o kind_n have_v identity_n and_o difference_n among_o themselves_o if_o the_o old_a sacrament_n and_o we_o have_v only_o difference_n they_o will_v not_o all_o be_v sacrament_n but_o equivocal_o if_o only_a identity_n they_o will_v be_v absolute_o the_o same_o thing_n therefore_o they_o must_v beware_v to_o put_v difficulty_n in_o plain_a matter_n for_o some_o diversity_n of_o word_n and_o that_o saint_n augustine_n have_v say_v that_o these_o and_o those_o be_v diverse_a in_o the_o sign_n but_o equal_a in_o the_o thing_n signify_v and_o in_o another_o place_n that_o they_o be_v diverse_a in_o the_o visible_a species_n but_o the_o same_o in_o the_o intelligible_a signification_n and_o that_o else_o where_o he_o put_v a_o difference_n that_o those_o be_v promissive_a and_o these_o demonstrative_a which_o another_o do_v express_v in_o another_o term_n that_o those_o be_v prenunciative_a and_o these_o contestative_a whence_o it_o plain_o appear_v that_o they_o agree_v and_o differ_v in_o many_o thing_n which_o not_o sensible_a man_n can_v deny_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v wisdom_n not_o to_o put_v that_o article_n in_o the_o beginning_n neither_o be_v it_o to_o any_o purpose_n to_o touch_v it_o in_o the_o present_a decree_n another_o opinion_n come_v forth_o that_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o lutheran_n and_o zwinglians_n be_v to_o be_v condemn_v without_o descend_v to_o the_o particular_n for_o they_o say_v there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o the_o old_a and_o new_a sacrament_n but_o in_o the_o rite_n but_o it_o have_v be_v show_v that_o there_o be_v other_o difference_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v to_o be_v condemn_v for_o this_o only_a without_o descend_v to_o show_v what_o those_o difference_n be_v but_o the_o sixth_o be_v censure_v by_o the_o dominican_n who_o say_v it_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o evangelicall_a sacrament_n to_o give_v grace_n and_o that_o the_o old_a do_v not_o give_v it_o but_o only_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o devotion_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o saint_n thomas_n they_o allege_v for_o a_o principal_a ground_n the_o determination_n of_o the_o florentine_a council_n that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o old_a law_n do_v not_o cause_n grace_n but_o do_v figure_n that_o it_o must_v be_v give_v by_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n but_o because_o s._n bondaenture_n and_o sootus_fw-la do_v maintain_v that_o the_o circumcision_n do_v confer_v grace_n exit_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la scotus_n add_v that_o immediate_o after_o the_o sin_n of_o adam_n a_o sacrament_n be_v institute_v in_o which_o a_o grace_n be_v give_v to_o babe_n by_o virtue_n of_o it_o that_o be_v exit_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la the_o franciscan_n say_v the_o article_n be_v true_a and_o can_v not_o be_v censure_v and_o that_o if_o as_o saint_n thomas_n say_v child_n before_o christ_n be_v save_v by_o the_o father_n faith_n the_o state_n of_o christian_n be_v worse_a for_o now_o the_o father_n faith_n do_v not_o help_v the_o child_n without_o baptism_n and_o saint_n austin_n say_v that_o the_o child_n that_o be_v carry_v by_o the_o father_n to_o be_v baptize_v if_o he_o die_v in_o the_o way_n be_v damn_v so_o that_o if_o faith_n only_o do_v then_o suffice_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o son_n of_o christian_n be_v now_o worse_o in_o these_o difficulty_n many_o do_v propose_v that_o the_o article_n as_o probable_a shall_v be_v omit_v to_o leave_v out_o the_o seven_o and_o eight_o there_o be_v a_o great_a agreement_n but_o in_o sacrament_n concern_v the_o character_n imprint_v by_o the_o sacrament_n the_o nine_o of_o the_o chalacter_n friar_n dominicus_n soto_n endeavour_v to_o declare_v that_o it_o have_v foundation_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o have_v ever_o be_v hold_v in_o the_o church_n for_o a_o apostolicull_a tradition_n and_o though_o the_o name_n have_v not_o be_v use_v by_o the_o father_n yet_o the_o thing_n signify_v be_v most_o ancient_a other_o do_v not_o grant_v he_o so_o great_a a_o scope_n because_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o gratian_n or_o the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n have_v make_v any_o mention_n thereof_o yea_o john_n scotius_n say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o of_o the_o father_n to_o affirm_v it_o but_o only_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n a_o thing_n usual_a with_o that_o doctor_n to_o deny_v thing_n with_o a_o kind_n of_o courtesy_n it_o be_v worth_a the_o know_v what_o thing_n they_o mean_v it_o shall_v be_v and_o where_o situate_v in_o such_o multiplicity_n of_o schoole-opinion_n some_o
unknowen_a to_o the_o first_o age_n have_v not_o be_v bring_v in_o by_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n but_o by_o bishop_n and_o prince_n before_o the_o pope_n take_v upon_o they_o to_o regulate_v the_o matter_n of_o benefice_n throughout_o all_o christendom_n and_o but_o for_o the_o provision_n which_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n the_o disorder_n will_v have_v be_v already_o mount_v to_o the_o height_n some_o be_v please_v and_o some_o displease_v at_o 〈…〉_o be_v contention_n according_a to_o their_o affection_n but_o every_o one_o discover_v that_o the_o matter_n can_v not_o be_v handle_v without_o danger_n as_o the_o treaty_n of_o the_o next_o congregation_n do_v show_v but_o because_o this_o particular_a deserve_v to_o be_v well_o understand_v it_o u●ill_v be_v fit_a to_o show_v how_o the_o abuse_n begin_v &_o come_v to_o this_o growth_n yet_o i_o will_v not_o speak_v benefice_n a_o discourse_n of_o the_o author_n concern_v plurality_n of_o benefice_n of_o those_o happy_a time_n when_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o faithful_a unto_o which_o do_v belong_v the_o use_n &_o propriety_n of_o the_o good_n which_o be_v call_v ecclesiastical_a when_o the_o poor_a &_o their_o minister_n have_v their_o food_n and_o apparel_n from_o one_o common_a mass_n and_o those_o be_v more_o principal_o provide_v for_o then_o these_o neither_o will_v i_o mention_v the_o time_n when_o they_o do_v fall_v one_o degree_n and_o of_o one_o mass_n make_v ●4_n part_n put_v that_o of_o the_o poor_a in_o the_o low_a place_n which_o according_a to_o the_o former_a use_n aught_o to_o be_v in_o the_o first_o but_o i_o will_v begin_v from_o the_o time_n when_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n be_v appropriate_v to_o the_o clergy_n only_o all_o other_o christian_n be_v exclude_v when_o that_o be_v apply_v to_o few_o which_o belong_v to_o all_o and_o to_o the_o rich_a that_o which_o first_o serve_v for_o the_o poor_a i_o say_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o those_o time_n the_o clergy_n have_v divide_v among_o themselves_o all_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o church_n the_o charge_n which_o before_o be_v call_v ministery_n and_o office_n of_o spiritual_a care_n the_o temporality_n be_v now_o most_o esteem_v be_v name_v benefice_n and_o yet_o so_o long_o as_o the_o old_a canon_n remain_v that_o one_o man_n shall_v not_o be_v ordain_v unto_o two_o title_n none_o can_v have_v more_o than_o one_o benefice_n but_o the_o revenue_n be_v by_o war_n or_o inundation_n diminish_v and_o become_v not_o sufficient_a for_o their_o maintenance_n one_o man_n may_v hold_v two_o yet_o so_o as_o that_o he_o shall_v attend_v they_o both_o this_o be_v begin_v in_o favours_n not_o of_o the_o man_n benefice_v but_o of_o the_o church_n which_o because_o it_o can_v not_o have_v a_o proper_a minister_n may_v have_v at_o the_o least_o some_o other_o service_n upon_o pretence_n of_o the_o insufficiency_n of_o the_o benefice_n and_o that_o none_o can_v be_v find_v to_o serve_v in_o they_o they_o begin_v to_o grant_v more_o of_o they_o unto_o one_o though_o no_o necessity_n appear_v for_o the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o mask_n be_v take_v away_o by_o little_a and_o little_a they_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o do_v it_o in_o favour_n of_o the_o man_n benefice_v but_o the_o world_n be_v scandalize_v hereat_o there_o be_v a_o moderation_n use_v whereupon_o the_o distinction_n begin_v of_o man_n tie_v to_o residency_n and_o not_o tie_v and_o of_o benefice_n compatible_a and_o not_o compatible_a call_v those_o of_o residency_n incompatible_a one_o with_o another_o and_o the_o other_o compatible_a with_o these_o and_o with_o themselves_o yet_o the_o gloss_n of_o the_o canonist_n always_o declare_v begin_v how_o the_o distinction_n of_o benefice_n compatible_a &_o incompatible_a begin_v to_o make_v a_o show_n of_o honesty_n that_o many_o benefice_n shall_v not_o be_v give_v to_o one_o but_o when_o one_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o maintenance_n but_o they_o cut_v this_o sufficiency_n very_o large_a proportion_v it_o not_o to_o the_o person_n but_o to_o the_o quality_n not_o esteem_v it_o sufficient_a for_o a_o ordinary_a priest_n if_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o himself_o the_o family_n of_o his_o parent_n three_o servant_n and_o a_o horse_n and_o more_o if_o he_o be_v noble_a or_o learned_a and_o it_o be_v strange_a how_o much_o they_o allow_v for_o a_o bishop_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o decorum_n he_o be_v to_o keep_v for_o cardinal_n it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o note_v the_o common_a say_n of_o the_o court_n that_o they_o be_v equal_a unto_o king_n by_o which_o they_o conclude_v that_o no_o revenue_n be_v too_o much_o for_o they_o except_o it_o be_v more_o then_o enough_o for_o a_o king_n the_o custom_n be_v begin_v and_o neither_o the_o world_n nor_o equity_n be_v able_a to_o resist_v it_o the_o pope_n reserve_v to_o themselves_o power_n to_o dispense_v with_o the_o incompatible_a and_o to_o have_v more_o than_o two_o of_o the_o other_o but_o to_o find_v a_o colourble_n way_n to_o put_v this_o in_o practice_n they_o lay_v hold_v on_o commendaes_n a_o thing_n institute_v at_o the_o first_o to_o good_a purpose_n but_o after_o use_v to_o this_o end_n only_o for_o when_o by_o reason_n of_o war_n pestilence_n and_o other_o such_o cause_n the_o election_n or_o provision_n can_v not_o be_v make_v so_o soon_o the_o superior_a do_v recommend_v the_o vacant_a church_n to_o some_o honest_a and_o worthy_a man_n to_o govern_v begin_v how_o commendaes_n begin_v it_o beside_o the_o care_n of_o his_o own_o until_o a_o rector_n be_v provide_v who_o then_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o the_o revenue_n but_o to_o govern_v they_o and_o consign_v they_o to_o another_o in_o progress_n of_o time_n the_o commendatary_n by_o diverse_a pretence_n of_o honesty_n and_o necessity_n make_v use_v of_o the_o fruit_n and_o to_o enjoy_v they_o the_o long_o seek_v mean_n to_o hinder_v the_o provision_n for_o remedy_v whereof_o order_n be_v take_v that_o the_o commenda_fw-la shall_v not_o last_v long_o than_o six_o month_n but_o the_o pope_n by_o the_o plenitude_n of_o their_o power_n do_v pass_v these_o limit_n and_o commend_v for_o a_o long_a time_n and_o at_o the_o last_o for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o commendatarie_n give_v he_o power_n to_o use_v the_o fruit_n beside_o the_o necessary_a charge_n this_o good_a invention_n so_o degenerate_v be_v use_v in_o the_o corrupt_a time_n for_o a_o cloak_n of_o plurality_n observe_v the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n to_o give_v but_o one_o benefice_n to_o one_o man_n contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n in_o regard_n that_o a_o commendatarie_n for_o life_n be_v the_o same_o in_o reality_n with_o the_o titular_a great_a exorbitance_n be_v commit_v in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o benefice_n commend_v so_o that_o after_o the_o lutherane_n stir_v begin_v and_o all_o man_n demand_v reformation_n clement_n the_o seven_o in_o the_o year_n 1534._o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o commend_v unto_o his_o nephew_n hippolytus_n cardinal_n do_v medicis_n all_o the_o benefice_n of_o the_o world_n secular_a and_o regular_a dignity_n and_o parsonage_n simple_a and_o with_o cure_n be_v vacant_a for_o six_o month_n 7._o a_o large_a commenda_fw-la gaven_n to_o hippolytus_n cardinal_n de_fw-fr medicis_n clement_n the_o 7._o to_o begin_v from_o the_o first_o day_n of_o his_o possession_n with_o power_n to_o dispose_v of_o and_o convert_v to_o his_o use_n all_o the_o fruit_n this_o exorbitancy_n be_v the_o height_n of_o all_o which_o in_o former_a time_n the_o court_n dare_v not_o use_v though_o it_o give_v in_o commenda_fw-la a_o very_a great_a number_n unto_o one_o therefore_o the_o union_n former_o use_v for_o a_o good_a end_n be_v invent_v to_o palliate_v benefice_n of_o union_n 〈◊〉_d benefice_n plurality_n this_o be_v practise_v when_o a_o church_n be_v destroy_v or_o the_o revenue_n usurp_v that_o little_a which_o remain_v together_o with_o the_o charge_n be_v transfer_v to_o the_o next_o and_o all_o make_v one_o benefice_n the_o industry_n of_o the_o courtier_n find_v out_o that_o beside_o these_o respect_n benefice_n may_v be_v unite_v so_o that_o by_o collation_n thereof_o plurality_n be_v whole_o cover_v though_o in_o favour_n of_o some_o cardinal_n or_o great_a personage_n thirty_o or_o forty_o in_o diverse_a place_n of_o christendom_n be_v unite_v but_o a_o inconvenience_n do_v arise_v because_o the_o number_n of_o benefice_n do_v decrease_v and_o the_o favour_n do_v to_o one_o be_v do_v afterward_o to_o many_o without_o merit_n or_o demand_v to_o the_o great_a damage_n of_o the_o court_n and_o chancery_n and_o this_o be_v remedy_v with_o a_o subtle_a and_o witty_a invention_n to_o unite_v as_o many_o benefice_n as_o please_v the_o pope_n only_o during_o the_o life_n of_o
he_o upon_o who_o they_o be_v confer_v by_o who_o death_n the_o union_n be_v understand_v to_o be_v dissolve_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la and_o the_o benefice_n return_v to_o their_o first_o state_n so_o they_o show_v the_o world_n their_o excellent_a invention_n confer_v a_o benefice_n which_o be_v but_o one_o in_o show_n but_o many_o in_o deed_n as_o one_o confess_v he_o have_v steal_v a_o bridle_n conceal_v it_o be_v upon_o a_o horse_n head_n which_o he_o steal_v with_o it_o to_o remedy_v plurality_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o remove_v the_o abuse_n of_o these_o three_o pretence_n this_o the_o wise_a sort_n of_o prelate_n understanding_n agree_v uniform_o at_o the_o first_o propose_n to_o inhibit_v all_o of_o what_o condition_n soever_o to_o have_v more_o than_o three_o benefice_n and_o some_o add_v when_o two_o amount_v not_o to_o the_o value_n of_o four_o hundred_o ducat_n of_o gold_n and_o that_o if_o one_o be_v worth_a so_o much_o no_o man_n whatsoever_o shall_v have_v any_o more_o nor_o more_o than_o three_o though_o they_o be_v not_o worth_a so_o much_o of_o this_o there_o be_v much_o disputation_n and_o pluvalitie_n a_o dispute_n about_o the_o remedy_n of_o pluvalitie_n much_o more_o when_o aluise_n lipomano_n bishop_n of_o verona_n propose_v that_o this_o decree_n may_v touch_v they_o also_o who_o be_v now_o possessor_n of_o more_o who_o without_o exception_n of_o any_o shall_v be_v constrain_v to_o renounce_v those_o that_o be_v supernumerary_n within_o six_o month_n if_o they_o be_v in_o italy_n and_o within_o nine_o if_o in_o other_o place_n which_o if_o they_o do_v not_o they_o shall_v be_v deprive_v without_o any_o further_a declaration_n notwithstanding_o the_o benefice_n be_v unite_v or_o commend_v or_o possess_v by_o any_o othertitle_v to_o this_o opinion_n the_o bishop_n of_o feltre_n do_v adhere_v but_o do_v moderate_v it_o by_o distinguish_a dispensation_n commendaes_n and_o union_n say_v that_o some_o be_v make_v for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n and_o some_o in_o favour_n of_o the_o possessor_n desire_v that_o the_o former_a shall_v remain_v in_o force_n and_o the_o other_o shall_v be_v regulate_v the_o bishop_n of_o lanciano_n do_v not_o admit_v this_o distinction_n say_v that_o he_o that_o will_v make_v a_o last_a law_n must_v not_o put_v exception_n into_o the_o body_n of_o it_o in_o regard_n the_o malice_n of_o man_n be_v apt_a to_o invent_v they_o and_o to_o free_v themselves_o from_o the_o rule_n the_o bishop_n of_o albenga_n make_v a_o long_a oration_n to_o show_v that_o good_a law_n do_v regulate_v backward_o law_n ought_v to_o look_v forward_o only_o and_o not_o backward_o the_o future_a only_a and_o that_o he_o who_o not_o contain_v himself_o within_o the_o bound_n of_o reason_n will_v amend_v that_o which_o be_v past_a do_v ever_o raise_v tumult_n and_o in_o stead_n of_o reform_v make_v a_o great_a deformation_n that_o it_o be_v strange_a to_o deprive_v man_n of_o their_o possession_n and_o persuade_v they_o to_o be_v content_a he_o add_v that_o he_o foresee_v that_o if_o such_o a_o decree_n be_v make_v either_o it_o will_v not_o be_v receive_v or_o if_o it_o be_v will_v cause_v colourable_a and_o simoniacal_a resignation_n and_o great_a mischief_n than_o plurality_n can_v for_o hereafter_o the_o provision_n seem_v unto_o he_o superfluous_a for_o no_o man_n be_v to_o have_v more_o benefice_n but_o by_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n it_o suffice_v that_o he_o be_v resolve_v not_o to_o dispense_v in_o that_o congregation_n among_o many_o tragical_a exclamation_n make_v by_o diverse_a man_n bernardus_n dias_n bishop_n of_o calabora_n say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o vicenza_n be_v so_o disorder_v as_o all_o man_n know_v that_o it_o require_v rather_o a_o apostle_n than_o a_o bishop_n tax_v the_o cardinal_n ridolfi_n who_o possess_v that_o bishopric_n beside_o many_o other_o benefice_n not_o govern_v it_o nor_o have_v the_o episcopal_a order_n never_o see_v it_o nor_o know_v any_o thing_n but_o the_o rent_n and_o every_o one_o speak_v against_o the_o inconvenience_n that_o famous_a church_n shall_v never_o see_v their_o bishop_n because_o they_o be_v employ_v in_o other_o bishopricke_n or_o more_o beneficial_a dignity_n some_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n only_o may_v provide_v against_o this_o and_o be_v of_o the_o opinion_n of_o albenga_n that_o he_o alone_o may_v make_v the_o reformation_n this_o please_v the_o legate_n as_o well_o for_o the_o pope_n dignity_n as_o to_o free_v themselves_o from_o take_v pain_n in_o this_o matter_n which_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o variety_n of_o opinion_n and_o interest_n they_o think_v will_v be_v of_o a_o hard_a digestion_n hope_v that_o when_o they_o have_v go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o leave_v this_o reformation_n to_o the_o pope_n they_o shall_v easy_o leave_v also_o unto_o he_o the_o point_n of_o residency_n which_o be_v as_o hard_o to_o be_v concoct_v for_o that_o it_o be_v popular_a and_o draw_v with_o it_o the_o regain_n of_o the_o episcopal_a authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n therefore_o the_o legate_n be_v in_o hope_n that_o it_o may_v be_v obtain_v especial_o if_o it_o be_v propose_v as_o a_o thing_n do_v not_o to_o be_v do_v they_o present_o send_v the_o pope_n word_n of_o it_o who_o be_v glad_a of_o the_o news_n because_o both_o the_o court_n and_o himself_o be_v doubtful_a where_o the_o attempt_n and_o design_n of_o the_o prelate_n may_v end_v and_o think_v fit_a to_o strike_v the_o iron_n while_o it_o be_v hot_a he_o make_v a_o great_a stride_n than_o the_o legate_n will_v have_v have_v he_o and_o dispatch_v a_o bull_n by_o which_o he_o recall_v unto_o himself_o the_o whole_a business_n of_o the_o reformation_n but_o in_o trent_n whilst_o a_o answer_n be_v expect_v from_o rome_n they_o proceed_v in_o the_o treaty_n begin_v and_o make_v a_o draught_n of_o the_o decree_n that_o no_o man_n shall_v have_v more_o than_o one_o bishopric_n and_o he_o that_o have_v more_o shall_v quit_v the_o rest_n that_o hereafter_o whosoever_o shall_v obtain_v many_o inferior_a incompatible_a benefice_n shall_v be_v deprive_v without_o further_a declaration_n and_o he_o that_o former_o have_v possess_v more_o than_o one_o shall_v show_v his_o dispensation_n to_o the_o ordinary_a who_o shall_v proceed_v according_a to_o the_o decretal_a of_o innocentius_n 4._o ordinarij_fw-la in_o give_v their_o voice_n upon_o these_o point_n many_o desire_v to_o have_v dispensation_n forbid_v the_o show_v of_o the_o dispensation_n plurality_n of_o dispensation_n for_o plurality_n and_o the_o proceed_n according_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o innocentius_n please_v but_o few_o because_o it_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o approbation_n of_o they_o all_o and_o a_o increase_n of_o the_o mischief_n for_o innocentius_n say_v that_o if_o the_o dispensation_n be_v find_v good_a they_o shall_v be_v admit_v if_o there_o be_v any_o doubt_n recourse_n shall_v be_v have_v to_o rome_n in_o which_o case_n no_o man_n doubt_v but_o that_o any_o of_o they_o may_v be_v doubt_v of_o and_o receive_v a_o declaration_n at_o rome_n conformable_a to_o the_o grant_n many_o fear_v that_o when_o they_o be_v examine_v and_o approve_v there_o remain_v no_o doubt_n the_o abuse_n will_v be_v confirm_v and_o therefore_o will_v have_v have_v they_o prohibit_v absolute_o other_o say_v they_o have_v always_o be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o be_v necessary_a and_o that_o all_o be_v in_o use_v they_o well_o marcus_n vigerius_n bishop_n of_o sinigaglia_n be_v of_o a_o opinion_n which_o if_o it_o have_v be_v receive_v and_o believe_v will_v easy_o have_v reform_v the_o whole_a clergy_n he_o say_v the_o synod_n may_v remove_v all_o inconvenience_n by_o declare_v that_o a_o lawful_a cause_n be_v necessary_a for_o a_o dispensation_n and_o that_o whosoever_o do_v otherwise_o grant_v it_o do_v sin_n and_o can_v be_v absolve_v but_o by_o revoke_v it_o and_o that_o he_o who_o obtain_v it_o be_v not_o secure_a in_o his_o conscience_n notwithstanding_o the_o dispensation_n and_o continue_v in_o sin_n until_o he_o quit_v the_o benefice_n so_o get_v this_o opinion_n want_v not_o contradictor_n for_o some_o stand_v up_o and_o say_v that_o he_o who_o grant_v licence_n of_o plurality_n without_o a_o lawful_a cause_n do_v sin_n yet_o the_o dispensation_n be_v good_a and_o the_o dispense_v be_v secure_a in_o his_o conscience_n though_o he_o know_v the_o unlawfulnesse_n of_o the_o cause_n and_o the_o difference_n continue_v many_o day_n these_o say_n that_o it_o be_v to_o take_v all_o authority_n from_o the_o pope_n and_o those_o that_o the_o pope_n authority_n stretch_v not_o so_o far_o as_o to_o make_v that_o evil_n shall_v not_o be_v evil_a from_o this_o they_o go_v to_o another_o doubt_n whether_o plurality_n be_v forbid_v by_o the_o law_n of_o forbid_v a_o doubt_n move_v by_o what_o law_n plurality_n be_v forbid_v god_n or_o of_o man_n those_o
cardinal_n theatinus_n archbishop_n of_o that_o city_n promise_v they_o the_o adherence_n of_o all_o his_o kindred_n who_o be_v many_o and_o potent_a and_o his_o own_o pain_n also_o who_o to_o that_o purpose_n will_v go_v in_o person_n do_v effectual_o exhort_v they_o not_o to_o let_v slip_v a_o occasion_n so_o profitable_a for_o the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n gain_v unto_o it_o so_o great_a a_o kingdom_n the_o spaniard_n call_v succour_n from_o diverse_a part_n become_v more_o potent_a and_o letter_n come_v from_o the_o emperor_n that_o he_o be_v content_a there_o shall_v be_v no_o inquisition_n and_o pardon_v the_o city_n except_o nineteen_o all_o which_o he_o name_v but_o one_o who_o he_o will_v discover_v when_o time_n serve_v yet_o the_o city_n pay_v for_o a_o fine_a a_o hundred_o thousand_o crown_n these_o condition_n be_v of_o necessity_n receive_v and_o those_o few_o of_o the_o nineteen_o who_o can_v be_v find_v be_v put_v emperor_n but_o appease_v by_o the_o emperor_n to_o death_n and_o so_o the_o tumult_n be_v appease_v in_o bolonia_n the_o legate_n do_v not_o well_o know_v as_o yet_o what_o to_o do_v and_o the_o pope_n slow_o the_o council_n in_o bolonia_n proceed_v slow_o have_v command_v they_o not_o to_o proceed_v to_o any_o action_n which_o may_v be_v oppose_v or_o make_v a_o division_n but_o to_o go_v on_o slow_o defer_v the_o session_n and_o make_v some_o congregation_n to_o show_v they_o be_v not_o idle_a but_o it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o make_v they_o in_o a_o good_a form_n to_o discuss_v the_o point_n of_o the_o eucharist_n in_o regard_n the_o principal_a divine_n accustom_v to_o handle_v matter_n of_o faith_n in_o forget_v the_o reformation_n be_v whole_o forget_v trent_n be_v want_v yet_o some_o congregation_n be_v hold_v and_o diverse_a divine_n do_v speak_v but_o no_o decree_n be_v frame_v there_o be_v no_o cause_n to_o speak_v any_o more_o of_o the_o reformation_n because_o it_o be_v then_o bury_v in_o deep_a silence_n the_o second_o of_o july_n be_v come_v the_o session_n be_v celebrate_v with_o the_o same_o do_v the_o second_o session_n be_v hold_v and_o nothing_o do_v ceremony_n where_o they_o do_v nothing_o but_o prorogue_v it_o with_o a_o decree_n like_o to_o that_o of_o the_o form_n show_v that_o the_o synod_n have_v defer_v it_o until_o that_o day_n because_o the_o father_n be_v absent_a and_o expect_a whereupon_o be_v desirous_a to_o deal_v love_o with_o they_o they_o add_v another_o prorogation_n until_o the_o fifteen_o of_o september_n not_o cease_v in_o the_o mean_a space_n to_o examine_v the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n and_o reformation_n reserve_v to_o themselves_o power_n to_o abbreviate_v or_o prolong_v that_o term_n though_o in_o a_o private_a congregation_n in_o france_n it_o be_v not_o hard_a for_o the_o legate_n to_o obtain_v of_o the_o king_n whatsoever_o king_n a_o strong_a alliance_n be_v make_v between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o french_a king_n the_o pope_n desire_v for_o he_o also_o be_v no_o less_o jealous_a of_o the_o emperor_n fortune_n and_o there_o be_v good_a intelligence_n between_o they_o and_o very_o secret_a proposition_n do_v pass_v among_o the_o public_a one_o be_v that_o the_o king_n shall_v send_v to_o the_o council_n of_o bolonia_n as_o soon_o as_o may_v be_v as_o many_o prelate_n as_o be_v possible_a marriage_n be_v contract_v between_o horatius_n farnese_n the_o pope_n nephew_n and_o diana_n the_o king_n bastard_n daughter_n of_o the_o age_n of_o nine_o year_n the_o king_n send_v nine_o french_a cardinal_n to_o remain_v in_o the_o court_n to_o give_v the_o pope_n reputation_n and_o to_o nourish_v friendship_n between_o they_o the_o pope_n create_v instance_n two_o cardinal_n be_v create_v at_o the_o king_n instance_n cardinal_n the_o six_o and_o twenty_o of_o july_n at_o the_o king_n instance_n charles_n di_fw-fr guisa_n archbishop_n of_o reins_n and_o charles_n of_o vandosme_n of_o the_o blood_n royal_a in_o the_o end_n of_o august_n caesar_n go_v to_o ausburg_n to_o celebrate_v the_o diet_n there_o austburg_n the_o emperor_n hold_v a_o diet_n in_o austburg_n have_v about_o the_o city_n the_o whole_a army_n of_o spaniard_n and_o italian_n and_o some_o company_n of_o foot_n within_o the_o city_n it_o begin_v the_o first_o of_o september_n where_o the_o emperor_n desire_v principal_o to_o pacific_a germany_n do_v impart_v what_o he_o have_v former_o do_v in_o diverse_a diet_n to_o reconcile_v it_o and_o how_o for_o this_o end_n he_o have_v cause_v the_o counsel_n to_o be_v call_v and_o to_o begin_v in_o trent_n but_o that_o his_o pain_n avail_v nothing_o he_o be_v constrain_v to_o pass_v to_o another_o remedy_n and_o because_o it_o please_v god_n to_o give_v a_o happy_a issue_n to_o his_o resolution_n reduce_v germany_n to_o those_o term_n that_o he_o be_v assure_v to_o reform_v it_o he_o have_v assemble_v the_o prince_n for_o that_o end_n but_o for_o that_o the_o difference_n of_o religion_n be_v cause_n of_o all_o those_o trouble_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o begin_v there_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o prince_n in_o that_o diet_n be_v diverse_a for_o among_o the_o elector_n the_o ecclesiastiques_n desire_v and_o urge_v that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n shall_v be_v hold_v and_o demand_v no_o condition_n the_o secular_o adhere_v to_o the_o lutheran_n be_v content_a with_o these_o condition_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v free_a pious_a that_o the_o pope_n shall_v not_o preside_v neither_o in_o person_n nor_o by_o his_o minister_n shall_v release_v the_o oath_n by_o which_o the_o bishop_n opinion_n in_o which_o the_o prince_n differ_v in_o opinion_n be_v bind_v unto_o he_o that_o the_o protestant_n divine_n shall_v have_v a_o decide_n voice_n and_o that_o the_o decree_n already_o make_v shall_v be_v reexamined_a the_o other_o catholic_n demand_v that_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v continue_v and_o the_o protestant_n have_v safe_a conduct_n to_o go_v thither_o and_o speak_v free_o and_o be_v enforce_v to_o obey_v the_o decree_n while_o the_o pope_n be_v in_o expectation_n of_o the_o success_n of_o the_o diet_n in_o germany_n milan_n the_o pope_n son_n be_v murder_v in_o his_o own_o palace_n and_o his_o city_n piacenza_n possess_v by_o the_o governor_n of_o milan_n the_o 10._o of_o september_n his_o son_n petras_n aloisius_n duke_n of_o piacenza_n be_v slay_v in_o his_o own_o palace_n by_o conspiracy_n and_o his_o body_n ignominious_o expose_v and_o some_o few_o hour_n after_o soldier_n come_v from_o milan_n send_v by_o the_o vice-duke_n fernandus_n gonzaga_n who_o make_v themselves_o lord_n of_o the_o city_n this_o afflict_a the_o pope_n above_o measure_n not_o so_o much_o for_o the_o death_n of_o his_o son_n and_o the_o ignominy_n as_o for_o the_o loss_n of_o the_o city_n and_o because_o he_o see_v plain_o that_o all_o be_v do_v with_o the_o emperor_n knowledge_n but_o the_o legate_n in_o bolonia_n think_v that_o in_o this_o affliction_n and_o business_n of_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o write_v two_o letter_n every_o week_n of_o what_o do_v pass_v in_o the_o council_n as_o they_o be_v wont_a and_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v convenient_a to_o prorogue_v the_o session_n for_o a_o long_a time_n and_o to_o intermit_v all_o act_n of_o the_o council_n which_o will_v be_v do_v with_o honour_n enough_o if_o the_o session_n intimate_v for_o the_o fifteen_o be_v celebrate_v and_o the_o next_o defer_v yet_o the_o public_a grief_n for_o the_o duke_n death_n require_v that_o no_o solemnity_n shall_v be_v make_v they_o deem_v it_o be_v better_a to_o anticipate_v and_o defer_v it_o in_o a_o congregation_n therefore_o the_o fourteen_o the_o prelate_n be_v all_o call_v into_o the_o house_n where_o the_o cardinal_n of_o monte_n be_v lodge_v he_o speak_v unto_o they_o thus_o in_o substance_n session_n c._n monte_n make_v a_o speech_n to_o the_o father_n in_o his_o own_o lodging_n for_o prorogation_n of_o the_o session_n that_o the_o morrow_n be_v appoint_v for_o the_o session_n but_o every_o one_o see_v in_o what_o stait_v the_o synod_n be_v that_o not_o many_o prelate_n be_v arrive_v who_o be_v in_o their_o journey_n especial_o the_o frenchman_n and_o those_o who_o be_v late_o come_v be_v not_o well_o inform_v yea_o even_o those_o who_o have_v be_v present_a the_o whole_a summer_n at_o the_o disputation_n of_o the_o lesser_a divine_n be_v not_o well_o in_o order_n whereunto_o be_v to_o be_v add_v the_o cruel_a murder_n of_o the_o duke_n which_o hold_v every_o one_o in_o suspense_n and_o themselves_o busy_v in_o provide_v for_o the_o security_n of_o the_o city_n belong_v to_o the_o church_n that_o he_o be_v glad_a he_o have_v reserve_v power_n to_o prorogue_v the_o session_n that_o they_o may_v be_v free_v from_o the_o pain_n of_o go_v to_o the_o church_n to_o celebrate_v it_o that_o his_o advice_n be_v yea_o that_o
the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o see_v not_o why_o they_o shall_v depart_v with_o the_o legate_n who_o promise_v in_o the_o general_a congregation_n and_o in_o the_o public_a session_n to_o return_v to_o trent_n so_o soon_o as_o the_o suspicion_n of_o the_o sickness_n do_v cease_v especial_o if_o germany_n will_v submit_v to_o the_o council_n that_o they_o remain_v there_o believe_v they_o will_v return_v especial_o when_o they_o understand_v that_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o emperor_n germany_n do_v submit_v itself_o and_o that_o some_o have_v receive_v scandal_n by_o their_o abide_n in_o trent_n as_o his_o holiness_n say_v it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o they_o that_o they_o have_v not_o give_v it_o and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o departure_n of_o other_o have_v trouble_v many_o that_o the_o successor_n of_o saint_n peter_n have_v ever_o be_v very_o venerable_a to_o their_o nation_n wherein_o themselves_o have_v not_o be_v defectuous_a they_o pray_v his_o holiness_n that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v blame_v for_o what_o they_o have_v do_v to_o a_o good_a end_n and_o do_v humble_o beseech_v he_o not_o to_o consent_v they_o shall_v be_v put_v into_o a_o suit_n in_o regard_n the_o cause_n be_v not_o they_o but_o god_n saying_n that_o if_o it_o be_v they_o they_o will_v be_v content_a to_o endure_v any_o wrong_n but_o be_v god_n and_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v it_o belong_v more_o to_o none_o then_o to_o his_o vicar_n in_o fine_a they_o pray_v his_o holiness_n to_o set_v the_o interrupt_a council_n on_o its_o foot_n again_o and_o cause_v the_o legate_n and_o father_n to_o return_v to_o the_o same_o place_n and_o to_o do_v this_o by_o a_o brief_a without_o treat_v of_o translation_n they_o pray_v he_o to_o take_v their_o word_n in_o good_a part_n not_o speak_v to_o signify_v what_o the_o duty_n of_o his_o holiness_n be_v but_o what_o they_o hope_v from_o he_o the_o spaniard_n answer_v be_v receive_v by_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v send_v to_o the_o answer_n the_o reply_n of_o the_o proctor_n of_o the_o father_n of_o bolonia_n the_o spaniard_n answer_n cardinal_n to_o who_o the_o cause_n be_v commit_v by_o who_o it_o be_v communicate_v to_o the_o proctor_n of_o those_o of_o bolonia_n that_o they_o may_v proceed_v these_o answer_v that_o they_o be_v glad_a that_o the_o spaniard_n do_v acknowledge_v the_o judgement_n and_o the_o judge_n and_o that_o they_o will_v not_o be_v a_o party_n yet_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o retort_v some_o thing_n deliver_v in_o their_o answer_n to_o make_v the_o truth_n appear_v in_o that_o they_o say_v his_o holiness_n shall_v first_o have_v be_v advise_v with_o it_o be_v superfluous_a in_o regard_n a_o special_a bull_n be_v then_o read_v that_o the_o emperor_n have_v be_v neglect_v it_o can_v be_v say_v because_o so_o great_a esteem_n have_v be_v hold_v of_o his_o majesty_n as_o of_o the_o pope_n the_o cause_n itself_o not_o comport_v any_o delay_n see_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o dissolve_v or_o translate_v the_o council_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o progress_n which_o the_o pestilent_a sickness_n make_v in_o the_o city_n and_o border_n of_o the_o actual_a and_o eminent_a departure_n of_o many_o father_n of_o the_o doctor_n oath_n especial_o of_o fracastorius_fw-la who_o have_v a_o public_a stipend_n and_o of_o the_o fear_n that_o the_o commerce_n of_o the_o neighbour_n city_n will_v be_v take_v away_o all_o which_o appear_v in_o the_o act_n transport_v to_o rome_n by_o his_o holiness_n commandment_n that_o the_o legate_n after_o the_o decree_n exhort_v they_o to_o go_v to_o bolonia_n and_o be_v arrive_v there_o do_v admonish_v they_o by_o letter_n so_o that_o they_o can_v say_v they_o ought_v not_o to_o follow_v the_o legate_n because_o they_o confent_v not_o to_o the_o translation_n for_o the_o suffrage_n of_o all_o in_o the_o council_n be_v free_a they_o may_v dissent_v with_o a_o safe_a conscience_n but_o the_o mayor_n part_n have_v make_v a_o decree_n it_o be_v meet_v the_o lesser_a part_n shall_v yield_v or_o else_o never_o any_o thing_n will_v be_v determine_v that_o the_o return_n have_v be_v promise_v be_v true_a but_o it_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o decree_n in_o what_o form_n the_o promise_n be_v make_v if_o they_o tarry_v believe_v that_o the_o other_o will_v return_v why_o do_v they_o not_o answer_v the_o legate_n letter_n who_o admonish_v they_o to_o go_v to_o bolonia_n but_o when_o they_o say_v the_o suspicion_n of_o the_o pestilence_n be_v pretend_v it_o be_v probable_a they_o speak_v it_o by_o chance_n otherwise_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v against_o the_o translation_n and_o not_o send_v according_a to_o the_o pope_n decree_n they_o shall_v incur_v the_o censure_n neither_o be_v that_o division_n ought_v worth_n if_o the_o cause_n be_v they_o or_o of_o god_n for_o as_o it_o belong_v to_o they_o no_o man_n will_v do_v they_o wrong_n as_o unto_o christ_n see_v the_o question_n be_v of_o the_o fact_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o clear_v that_o which_o be_v not_o manifest_a in_o the_o fact_n whereupon_o the_o emperor_n have_v call_v the_o legate_n pretend_v and_o the_o father_n of_o bolonia_n not_o a_o council_n but_o a_o private_a assembly_n and_o utter_v many_o opprobrious_a term_n against_o the_o translation_n it_o be_v reasonable_a the_o pope_n shall_v assume_v the_o cause_n not_o to_o cherish_v but_o to_o appease_v contention_n whether_o scandal_n have_v rise_v by_o the_o translation_n or_o by_o their_o remain_v in_o trent_n may_v be_v see_v by_o this_o only_a that_o their_o remain_v be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o return_n can_v be_v and_o when_o they_o pray_v his_o holiness_n to_o cause_v the_o interrupt_a council_n to_o return_v if_o they_o understand_v it_o of_o the_o usual_a congregation_n they_o have_v never_o be_v intermit_v if_o of_o the_o publication_n of_o the_o decree_n this_o have_v be_v refer_v for_o their_o sake_n and_o so_o many_o thing_n be_v already_o discuss_v in_o bolonia_n as_o well_o of_o faith_n as_o reformation_n that_o a_o long_a session_n may_v be_v make_v thereof_o therefore_o they_o pray_v his_o holiness_n to_o give_v sentence_n consider_v that_o no_o council_n but_o in_o time_n of_o schism_n have_v last_v so_o long_o as_o this_o so_o that_o the_o bishop_n be_v desire_v by_o their_o church_n unto_o which_o it_o be_v fit_a they_o shall_v be_v restore_v this_o writing_n be_v present_v in_o the_o end_n of_o april_n after_o which_o there_o be_v no_o further_a proceed_n in_o the_o cause_n for_o that_o the_o depute_a cardinal_n know_v not_o how_o to_o conclude_v to_o pronounce_v the_o translation_n proceed_v the_o cardinal_n depute_v in_o this_o cause_n know_v not_o how_o to_o proceed_v lawful_a in_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o contradictor_n be_v to_o make_v a_o schism_n have_v no_o mean_n to_o enforce_v they_o to_o receive_v the_o sentence_n and_o they_o see_v less_o mean_n to_o force_v they_o to_o assist_v in_o the_o cause_n the_o pope_n be_v much_o trouble_v see_v no_o way_n to_o compose_v the_o difficulty_n without_o form_n of_o judgement_n while_o these_o thing_n be_v in_o question_n after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o duke_n his_o son_n the_o pope_n do_v continual_o demand_v the_o restitution_n of_o piacenza_n and_o of_o other_o place_n usurp_v in_o the_o district_n of_o parma_n make_v use_n of_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o emperor_n daughter_n wife_n to_o duke_n octavius_n son_n of_o he_o that_o be_v dead_a but_o the_o emperor_n purpose_v to_o join_v that_o city_n to_o the_o dukedom_n of_o milan_n and_o to_o recompense_v his_o son_n in_o law_n in_o something_o else_o delay_v the_o time_n with_o diverse_a answer_n and_o offer_v hope_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v eighty_o year_n of_o age_n and_o grieve_v for_o his_o son_n death_n and_o have_v many_o other_o distaste_v will_v end_v all_o the_o controversy_n by_o his_o death_n but_o the_o pope_n see_v he_o piacenza_n difference_n between_o the_o pope_n &_o emperor_n about_o the_o restitution_n of_o piacenza_n be_v delude_v with_o delay_n molest_v with_o request_n for_o the_o return_n of_o the_o council_n to_o trent_n and_o offend_v by_o the_o remain_a of_o the_o spaniard_n in_o the_o city_n to_o make_v a_o diversion_n at_o the_o least_o he_o let_v the_o emperor_n know_v that_o the_o usurper_n of_o piacenza_n a_o town_n belong_v to_o the_o church_n have_v incur_v the_o censure_n to_o the_o declaration_n of_o which_o he_o will_v proceed_v fulminate_v also_o more_o of_o they_o if_o within_o a_o certain_a time_n prefix_v it_o be_v not_o restore_v to_o he_o the_o emperor_n write_v back_o a_o sharp_a letter_n advise_v the_o pope_n not_o to_o cherish_v the_o fugitive_n of_o naples_n show_v that_o all_o the_o practice_n be_v know_v unto_o he_o and_o that_o he_o do_v understand_v the_o
fable_n to_o let_v the_o body_n fall_v to_o get_v the_o shadow_n it_o seem_v hard_a to_o persuade_v that_o king_n and_o to_o take_v from_o he_o all_o suspicion_n if_o the_o council_n be_v celebrate_v in_o a_o place_n subject_n unto_o the_o emperor_n and_o near_o unto_o his_o army_n but_o examine_v what_o those_o suspicion_n may_v be_v they_o can_v find_v none_o but_o that_o the_o council_n may_v determine_v something_o in_o prejudice_n of_o the_o government_n of_o that_o kingdom_n or_o against_o the_o privilege_n of_o that_o crown_n or_o against_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o french_a church_n in_o which_o if_o he_o be_v secure_a it_o can_v not_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o for_o the_o hereditary_a obligation_n to_o protect_v and_o favour_v the_o apostolic_a sea_n he_o will_v assist_v and_o send_v his_o prelate_n the_o second_o difficulty_n be_v that_o the_o italian_a prelate_n be_v poor_a can_v not_o bear_v the_o charge_n of_o that_o place_n and_o the_o apostolic_a chamber_n be_v exhaust_v can_v ill_o supply_v as_o much_o as_o be_v needful_a beside_o the_o charge_n of_o maintain_v the_o legate_n and_o officer_n of_o the_o council_n and_o other_o extraordinary_n whereof_o think_v often_o they_o can_v find_v no_o way_n to_o hold_v the_o council_n without_o expense_n and_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o drink_v of_o this_o cup_n but_o superfluity_n may_v well_o be_v cut_v off_o by_o dispatch_v the_o council_n quick_o and_o not_o tarry_v there_o long_o than_o be_v necessary_a the_o three_o difficulty_n be_v that_o the_o protestant_n will_v call_v into_o question_n the_o thing_n determine_v wherein_o all_o the_o congregation_n resolve_v ready_o that_o they_o shall_v make_v their_o meaning_n plain_a that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v esteem_v as_o infallible_a and_o not_o suffer_v they_o to_o be_v dispute_v on_o and_o to_o declare_v this_o before_o the_o council_n not_o defer_v to_o make_v themselves_o understand_v until_o then_o the_o four_o and_o most_o important_a difficulty_n of_o all_o be_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o which_o the_o great_a be_v the_o danger_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n apostolic_a sea_n as_o well_o in_o the_o council_n as_o out_o of_o it_o and_o over_o it_o which_o not_o the_o protestant_n only_o do_v impugn_v but_o many_o prince_n also_o will_v restrain_v and_o many_o bishop_n do_v think_v to_o moderate_v this_o be_v the_o chief_a cause_n why_o the_o former_a pope_n will_v not_o be_v persuade_v to_o call_v a_o council_n and_o paul_n who_o be_v bring_v to_o it_o do_v perceive_v it_o in_o the_o end_n and_o provide_v against_o it_o by_o the_o translation_n this_o danger_n be_v see_v by_o all_o but_o none_o can_v set_v down_o a_o way_n to_o escape_v it_o but_o by_o say_v that_o god_n who_o have_v found_v the_o roman_a church_n and_o place_v it_o above_o other_o will_v dissipate_v all_o counsel_n take_v against_o it_o this_o some_o believe_v for_o simplicity_n some_o for_o their_o interest_n some_o because_o they_o know_v not_o what_o else_o to_o say_v seem_v not_o sufficient_a but_o cardinal_n crescentius_n ground_v himself_o much_o upon_o this_o confidence_n say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o humane_a action_n in_o which_o there_o be_v not_o some_o danger_n that_o the_o war_n do_v show_v as_o much_o which_o be_v the_o chief_a which_o be_v never_o enterprise_v though_o with_o never_o so_o much_o assurance_n of_o victory_n but_o there_o be_v danger_n of_o loss_n and_o total_a destruction_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o business_n remove_v the_o fear_n whereof_o cardinal_n crescentius_n remove_v undertake_v with_o so_o much_o certainty_n of_o a_o good_a issue_n which_o may_v not_o sudden_o fall_v into_o great_a inconvenience_n for_o unknowen_a or_o light_o esteem_v cause_n but_o he_o that_o be_v force_v for_o avoid_v other_o evil_n to_o yield_v to_o some_o resolution_n must_v not_o care_v for_o it_o thing_n be_v in_o such_o a_o state_n that_o if_o the_o council_n be_v not_o hold_v there_o be_v more_o danger_n that_o the_o world_n and_o the_o prince_n be_v scandalize_v will_v alien_n themselves_n from_o the_o pope_n and_o do_v more_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la then_o in_o the_o council_n by_o disputation_n and_o decree_n danger_n be_v to_o be_v incur_v either_o way_n and_o it_o be_v best_o to_o take_v the_o most_o honourable_a and_o least_o dangerous_a part_n but_o many_o provision_n may_v be_v make_v to_o divert_v it_o as_o to_o keep_v the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n busy_v as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v in_o other_o matter_n and_o so_o to_o hold_v they_o in_o exercise_n that_o they_o may_v not_o have_v time_n to_o think_v of_o this_o to_o keep_v many_o in_o amity_n especial_o the_o italian_n with_o persuasion_n and_o hope_n and_o by_o other_o mean_v use_v heretofore_o to_o hold_v the_o prince_n counterpoyse_v nourish_v some_o difference_n of_o interest_n between_o they_o that_o they_o may_v not_o joint_o undertake_v such_o a_o enterprise_n and_o if_o one_o do_v it_o alone_o the_o other_o will_v oppose_v it_o and_o a_o wise_a man_n will_v find_v other_o remedy_n in_o the_o very_a fact_n by_o which_o he_o will_v be_v able_a to_o carry_v matter_n along_o and_o make_v they_o vanish_v this_o opinion_n be_v approve_v and_o a_o resolution_n take_v that_o no_o demonstration_n of_o fear_n shall_v be_v make_v but_o only_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v intimate_v to_o the_o emperor_n that_o this_o be_v foresee_v but_o that_o no_o man_n care_v for_o it_o because_o there_o be_v a_o remedy_n prepare_v this_o consultation_n be_v mature_o make_v and_o a_o resolution_n take_v to_o restore_v resolution_n the_o pope_n send_v nuncij_fw-la to_o the_o emperor_n and_o french_a king_n to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o his_o resolution_n the_o council_n in_o trent_n the_o pope_n give_v a_o account_n thereof_o to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o ferrara_n and_o the_o french_a ambassador_n and_o dispatch_v a_o express_a currier_n to_o the_o french_a king_n to_o signify_v his_o purpose_n unto_o he_o say_v he_o will_v send_v a_o nuncio_n unto_o he_o to_o relate_v more_o particular_o the_o reason_n which_o move_v he_o and_o in_o the_o end_n of_o june_n he_o dispatch_v two_o nuncij_fw-la at_o once_o sebastianus_n pighinus_fw-la archbishop_n of_o siponto_n to_o the_o emperor_n and_o triulcius_n bishop_n of_o tolone_n to_o the_o french_a king_n to_o the_o first_o he_o give_v instruction_n to_o speak_v in_o conformity_n of_o the_o resolution_n take_v in_o the_o congregation_n he_o give_v order_n to_o triulcius_n to_o go_v by_o post_n that_o he_o may_v nuncio_n the_o instruction_n of_o the_o french_a nuncio_n advise_v what_o the_o king_n mind_n be_v which_o he_o desire_v to_o know_v before_o he_o proceed_v any_o further_a he_o give_v he_o instruction_n to_o give_v a_o particular_a account_n of_o the_o cause_n why_o he_o resolve_v to_o bring_v back_o the_o council_n to_o trent_n because_o germany_n do_v submit_v to_o it_o because_o the_o emperor_n do_v desire_v it_o because_o it_o can_v not_o continue_v in_o bolonia_n for_o the_o cause_n before_o relate_v and_o that_o the_o protestant_a affair_n may_v not_o be_v accommodate_v in_o some_o prejudicial_a manner_n lay_v the_o blame_n on_o the_o pope_n but_o that_o his_o first_o and_o principal_a ground_n be_v the_o assistance_n of_o his_o most_o christian_n majesty_n and_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o prelate_n of_o his_o kingdom_n which_o he_o hope_v to_o obtain_v because_o his_o majesty_n be_v protector_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o a_o imitator_n of_o his_o ancestor_n who_o never_o depart_v from_o the_o opinion_n and_o counsel_n of_o pope_n that_o in_o the_o council_n they_o will_v apply_v themselves_o to_o the_o declaration_n and_o purify_n of_o the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n and_o reformation_n of_o manner_n neither_o shall_v any_o thing_n concern_v the_o state_n dominion_n and_o particular_a privilege_n of_o the_o crown_n of_o france_n be_v handle_v that_o to_o the_o emperor_n request_n to_o understand_v whether_o the_o pope_n will_v prosecute_v the_o council_n in_o trent_n or_o not_o the_o pope_n have_v answer_v he_o will_v with_o the_o condition_n discuss_v in_o the_o congregation_n all_o which_o he_o give_v order_n to_o his_o nuncio_n to_o communicate_v to_o the_o king_n who_o mind_n he_o desire_v to_o know_v as_o soon_o as_o may_v be_v hope_v to_o find_v it_o conformable_a to_o the_o piety_n of_o his_o majesty_n to_o the_o love_n which_o he_o bear_v to_o he_o the_o pope_n and_o to_o the_o confidence_n which_o he_o have_v in_o he_o he_o also_o charge_v the_o nuncio_n to_o communicate_v all_o his_o instruction_n to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o guise_n and_o with_o he_o or_o otherwise_o as_o he_o think_v best_a to_o declare_v it_o to_o the_o king_n and_o to_o who_o else_o he_o think_v fit_a he_o give_v the_o like_a instruction_n to_o the_o other_o nuncio_n in_o particular_a to_o tell_v emperor_n ●he_v
a_o criminal_a cause_n against_o a_o bishop_n may_v not_o be_v receive_v by_o information_n but_o by_o witness_n and_o those_o of_o good_a fame_n chastize_v they_o grievous_o if_o they_o shall_v depose_v upon_o passion_n and_o the_o criminal_a cause_n of_o the_o bishop_n may_v not_o be_v determine_v but_o by_o the_o pope_n after_o this_o another_o decree_n be_v publish_v in_o which_o the_o synod_n say_v protestant_n the_o decree_n concern_v matter_n to_o be_v defer_v until_o the_o come_n of_o the_o protestant_n that_o desire_v to_o extirpate_v all_o error_n it_o have_v handle_v four_o article_n exact_o 1._o whether_o it_o be_v necessary_a and_o command_v by_o god_n that_o all_o the_o faithful_a shall_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n under_o both_o kind_n 2._o whether_o he_o that_o receive_v but_o one_o receive_v less_o than_o he_o that_o receive_v both_o 3._o whether_o the_o holy_a church_n have_v err_v in_o communicate_v the_o laique_n with_o the_o bread_n only_o and_o the_o priest_n who_o do_v not_o celebrate_v 4._o whether_o child_n ought_v to_o be_v communicate_v but_o because_o the_o protestant_n of_o germany_n do_v desire_n to_o be_v hear_v concern_v these_o article_n before_o the_o definition_n and_o therefore_o have_v demand_v a_o safe_a conduct_n to_o come_v remain_v speak_v free_o propose_v and_o depart_v the_o synod_n hope_v to_o reduce_v they_o into_o the_o concord_n of_o one_o faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n by_o yield_v to_o they_o have_v give_v they_o public_a faith_n that_o be_v safe_a conduct_n as_o far_o as_o it_o can_v according_a to_o the_o tenor_n under-written_a and_o have_v defer_v to_o define_v these_o article_n until_o the_o twenty_o five_o of_o january_n the_o next_o year_n ordain_v withal_o that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v handle_v in_o that_o session_n as_o a_o thing_n annex_v and_o that_o in_o the_o next_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n and_o extreme_a unction_n be_v discuss_v the_o tenor_n of_o the_o safe_a conduct_n be_v that_o the_o holy_a synod_n do_v as_o conduct_n the_o tenor_n of_o the_o safe_a conduct_n much_o as_o it_o can_v grant_v public_a faith_n full_a security_n that_o be_v safe_a conduct_n with_o all_o necessary_a and_o fit_a clause_n though_o they_o require_v a_o special_a expression_n to_o all_o ecclesiastical_a and_o secular_a person_n of_o germany_n of_o what_o degree_n state_n or_o quality_n soever_o who_o will_v come_v to_o this_o general_a council_n that_o they_o may_v with_o all_o liberty_n confer_v propose_v treat_v come_v remain_v present_a article_n by_o write_v or_o by_o word_n confer_v with_o the_o father_n depute_a by_o the_o synod_n and_o dispute_v without_o injury_n and_o ill_a word_n and_o depart_v when_o they_o please_v and_o the_o synod_n be_v further_o please_v to_o grant_v that_o if_o for_o their_o great_a liberty_n and_o security_n they_o shall_v desire_v that_o judge_n be_v depute_v for_o the_o offence_n which_o they_o have_v commit_v or_o shall_v commit_v though_o they_o be_v enormous_a and_o savour_n of_o heresy_n brandeburg_n the_o ambassage_n of_o the_o elector_n of_o brandeburg_n they_o may_v name_v those_o that_o they_o shall_v esteem_v favourable_a after_o this_o the_o mandate_n of_o i●achim_n elector_n of_o brandeburg_n be_v read_v in_o the_o person_n of_o christopher_n strassen_n a_o lawyer_n and_o john_n osman_n his_o ambassador_n send_v to_o the_o council_n the_o former_a make_v a_o long_a oration_n show_v the_o good_a affection_n and_o reverence_n of_o his_o prince_n toward_o the_o father_n without_o declare_v what_o his_o opinion_n be_v in_o point_n of_o religion_n the_o synod_n answer_v that_o be_v the_o speaker_n in_o its_o name_n that_o it_o hear_v with_o great_a content_n the_o ambassador_n discourse_n especial_o in_o that_o part_n where_o that_o prince_n do_v submit_v himself_o to_o the_o council_n and_o promise_v to_o observe_v the_o decree_n hope_v that_o his_o deed_n will_v be_v answerable_a to_o his_o word_n but_o the_o proposition_n of_o those_o of_o brandeburg_n be_v note_v by_o many_o because_o the_o electour_n be_v of_o the_o augustane_n confession_n and_o it_o be_v open_o know_v that_o his_o interest_n do_v move_v he_o to_o make_v such_o a_o fair_a show_n that_o his_o son_n frederick_n elect_a archbishop_n of_o magdeburg_n by_o the_o canon_n a_o benefice_n unto_o which_o a_o very_a great_a and_o rich_a principallitie_n be_v annex_v may_v not_o be_v hinder_v at_o rome_n and_o by_o the_o catholic_n in_o germany_n the_o answer_n which_o the_o council_n give_v be_v much_o matueil_v at_o in_o regard_n rome_n a_o artifice_n use_v by_o the_o council_n often_o practise_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n of_o the_o fair_a and_o advantageous_a manner_n of_o contract_v pretend_v ten_o thousand_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o promise_n when_o the_o bargain_n be_v but_o of_o ten_o for_o there_o be_v no_o more_o proportion_n between_o these_o two_o number_n than_o be_v between_o the_o reverence_n promise_v by_o the_o electour_n and_o the_o obedience_n receive_v by_o the_o synod_n it_o be_v reply_v for_o defence_n that_o the_o council_n do_v not_o regard_v what_o be_v but_o what_o shall_v have_v be_v say_v and_o that_o this_o be_v a_o usual_a and_o pious_a allurement_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o rome_n which_o yield_v to_o the_o infirmity_n of_o her_o child_n make_v show_v to_o believe_v that_o they_o have_v perform_v their_o duty_n so_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n write_v to_o innocentius_n the_o first_o to_o give_v he_o a_o account_n that_o they_o have_v condemn_v celestinus_fw-la and_o pelagius_n desire_v he_o to_o conform_v himself_o to_o their_o declaration_n he_o commend_v they_o in_o his_o answer_n that_o remember_v the_o old_a tradition_n and_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n they_o have_v refer_v all_o to_o his_o judgement_n whence_o all_o aught_o to_o learn_v who_o to_o absolve_v and_o who_o to_o condemn_v and_o indeed_o this_o be_v a_o fair_a gentle_a mean_n to_o make_v man_n speak_v that_o in_o silence_n which_o they_o will_v not_o in_o word_n afterward_o according_a to_o the_o intimation_n make_v to_o the_o abbot_n of_o bellosana_n to_o give_v he_o then_o a_o answer_n to_o the_o letter_n and_o protestation_n of_o his_o master_n they_o make_v the_o apparitor_n demand_v by_o proclamation_n at_o the_o church_n door_n whether_o any_o be_v there_o for_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n but_o no_o man_n appear_v because_o it_o be_v so_o conclude_v by_o the_o king_n counsel_n not_o to_o enter_v into_o the_o contestation_n of_o the_o cause_n especial_o for_o that_o they_o can_v expect_v no_o answer_n but_o make_v at_o rome_n by_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o spaniard_n the_o speaker_n do_v desire_v that_o the_o answer_v decree_v may_v be_v read_v public_o and_o so_o it_o be_v by_o consent_n of_o the_o precedent_n the_o substance_n of_o it_o be_v that_o the_o father_n conceive_v great_a hope_n of_o the_o favour_n of_o the_o king_n be_v exceed_o grieve_v for_o the_o bellosans_n the_o answer_n of_o the_o council_n make_v to_o the_o abbot_n of_o bellosans_n word_n of_o his_o minister_n which_o do_v much_o abate_v it_o yet_o they_o have_v not_o quite_o lose_v it_o in_o regard_n they_o be_v not_o conscious_a of_o have_v give_v he_o any_o cause_n of_o offence_n and_o for_o that_o he_o say_v the_o council_n be_v assemble_v for_o the_o profit_n of_o some_o few_o and_o for_o private_a end_n it_o have_v no_o place_n in_o they_o who_o be_v assemble_v not_o by_o the_o present_a pope_n only_o but_o by_o paulus_n the_o three_o to_o extirpate_v heresy_n and_o reform_v discipline_n than_o which_o cause_v none_o can_v be_v more_o common_a and_o pious_a pray_v he_o to_o let_v his_o bishop_n go_v to_o assist_v this_o holy_a work_n where_o they_o shall_v have_v all_o liberty_n and_o if_o his_o minister_n a_o private_a person_n who_o bring_v unto_o they_o thing_n distasteful_a be_v hear_v with_o patience_n and_o attention_n how_o much_o more_o welcome_a shall_v person_n be_v of_o so_o great_a dignity_n add_v withal_o that_o though_o they_o come_v not_o the_o council_n will_v not_o want_v reputation_n or_o authority_n have_v be_v lawful_o call_v and_o for_o just_a cause_n restore_v and_o for_o that_o his_o majesty_n do_v protest_v to_o use_v the_o wont_a remedy_n of_o his_o ancestor_n the_o synod_n have_v good_a hope_n that_o he_o will_v not_o restore_v the_o thing_n long_o since_o abrogate_a to_o the_o great_a benefit_n of_o that_o crown_n but_o look_v back_o upon_o his_o ancestor_n on_o the_o name_n of_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n and_o on_o his_o father_n francis_n who_o do_v honour_v that_o synod_n follow_v that_o example_n he_o will_v not_o be_v unthankful_a to_o god_n and_o the_o church_n his_o mother_n but_o will_v rather_o pardon_v private_a offence_n for_o public_a cause_n the_o decree_n of_o the_o session_n be_v immediate_o print_v which_o
habit_n which_o be_v not_o lawful_a because_o he_o be_v a_o monk_n of_o saint_n basil_n all_o which_o be_v do_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o october_n but_o this_o vain_a show_n of_o honour_n be_v not_o esteem_v by_o the_o bishop_n be_v not_o willing_a to_o prefer_v the_o interest_n of_o the_o house_n of_o austria_n before_o his_o country_n he_o be_v traitorous_o and_o cruel_o slay_v by_o ferdinand_n minister_n the_o eighteen_o of_o december_n upon_o pretence_n that_o he_o hold_v intelligence_n with_o the_o turk_n this_o accident_n do_v exceed_o move_v the_o cardinal_n who_o think_v themselves_o most_o sacred_a and_o inviolable_a they_o consider_v of_o what_o importance_n the_o example_n be_v that_o a_o cardinal_n shall_v be_v slay_v upon_o feign_a calumny_n or_o for_o suspicion_n and_o they_o incite_v the_o pope_n who_o be_v forward_o of_o himself_o show_v he_o that_o the_o cardinal_n be_v possessor_n of_o a_o great_a treasure_n to_o the_o value_n of_o a_o million_o which_o belong_v to_o the_o chamber_n be_v the_o good_n of_o a_o cardinal_n dead_a without_o a_o will._n for_o all_o these_o respect_v the_o pope_n depute_a cardinal_n to_o take_v knowledge_n of_o the_o crime_n and_o ferdinand_n and_o all_o his_o minister_n of_o transiluania_n be_v think_v to_o have_v incur_v the_o censure_n commissioner_n be_v send_v to_o vienna_n to_o make_v censure_n ferdinand_n &_o his_o minister_n be_v think_v to_o have_v incur_v the_o censure_n inquisition_n and_o not_o to_o return_v to_o speak_v of_o this_o again_o i_o will_v say_v here_o by_o way_n of_o anticipation_n that_o the_o heat_n be_v abate_v as_o the_o custom_n be_v because_o that_o which_o be_v do_v can_v not_o be_v undo_v not_o to_o raise_v any_o great_a stir_n the_o proceed_n be_v with_o much_o connivencie_n and_o though_o the_o process_n be_v make_v as_o ferdinand_n will_v yet_o nothing_o be_v prove_v against_o the_o dead_a man_n and_o the_o purpose_n to_o draw_v the_o inheritance_n to_o the_o chamber_n die_v because_o little_o be_v find_v in_o comparison_n of_o that_o which_o be_v think_v martinuccio_n a_o man_n bountiful_a have_v spend_v all_o in_o the_o public_a service_n and_o that_o which_o be_v find_v be_v divide_v among_o the_o soldier_n the_o pope_n declare_v ferdinand_n and_o all_o those_o who_o absolute_o ferdinand_n be_v absolve_v first_o conditional_o and_o then_o absolute_o be_v not_o present_a at_o his_o death_n to_o be_v absolve_v with_o this_o addition_n if_o the_o thing_n deduce_v in_o the_o process_n be_v true_a whereof_o the_o emperor_n minister_n complain_v as_o if_o the_o integrity_n of_o ferdinand_n be_v question_v the_o pope_n make_v the_o sentence_n absolute_a and_o those_o only_a who_o be_v author_n of_o the_o murder_n go_v to_o rome_n to_o be_v absolve_v but_o so_o as_o if_o they_o have_v do_v a_o good_a work_n and_o in_o hungary_n and_o rome_n it_o be_v hold_v that_o it_o be_v do_v by_o command_n from_o he_o who_o have_v interest_n according_a to_o the_o usual_a say_n that_o of_o every_o secret_a counsel_n he_o be_v author_n who_o receive_v profit_n by_o it_o yet_o this_o do_v ferdinand_n no_o good_a who_o short_o after_o for_o this_o and_o other_o cause_n be_v chase_v out_o of_o transiluania_n but_o because_o to_o speak_v thereof_o belong_v not_o to_o my_o purpose_n i_o return_v to_o the_o matter_n which_o i_o leave_v the_o seven_o day_n of_o february_n the_o next_o sunday_n before_o septuagesima_fw-la the_o gospel_n of_o the_o cockle_n be_v read_v ambrose_n cigogna_n or_o stork_n for_o so_o his_o dutch_a name_n pelargo_n be_v expound_v a_o dominican_n divine_a of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o trier_n preach_v who_o apply_v the_o name_n of_o cockle_n to_o the_o heretic_n say_v it_o be_v fit_a to_o tolerate_v they_o when_o without_o danger_n of_o great_a mischief_n they_o can_v not_o be_v noot_v our_o this_o be_v tell_v to_o the_o protestant_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a not_o to_o observe_v the_o faith_n give_v which_o raise_v a_o great_a tumult_n he_o defend_v himself_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o heretic_n in_o general_a and_o say_v no_o more_o than_o what_o the_o gospel_n itself_o do_v propose_v but_o if_o he_o have_v say_v that_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o extirpate_v they_o with_o fire_n bond_n and_o halter_n or_o any_o other_o way_n he_o shall_v have_v do_v that_o which_o the_o council_n in_o the_o second_o session_n do_v command_v that_o he_o have_v speak_v modest_o nor_o can_v a_o sermon_n be_v make_v upon_o that_o gospel_n without_o say_v as_o much_o the_o cardinal_n of_o trent_n and_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n do_v pacify_v the_o commotion_n but_o with_o difficulty_n though_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o friar_n speak_v not_o of_o keep_v faith_n not_o of_o the_o protestant_n particular_o but_o of_o heretic_n in_o general_n the_o elector_n make_v this_o his_o pretence_n to_o depart_v which_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o do_v before_o by_o reason_n of_o some_o secret_a intelligence_n which_o he_o hold_v with_o the_o french_a king_n as_o also_o to_o recover_v his_o health_n and_o so_o he_o depart_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o february_n leave_v trent_n the_o elector_n of_o trier_n depart_v from_o trent_n a_o opinion_n that_o it_o be_v with_o the_o good_a like_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o with_o promise_n to_o return_v quick_o yet_o he_o pass_v not_o by_o ispruc_n nor_o speak_v with_o the_o emperor_n the_o first_o day_n of_o lent_n the_o station_n be_v by_o affixion_n publish_v in_o trent_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o in_o rome_n by_o the_o pope_n grant_n to_o he_o that_o visit_v the_o church_n which_o give_v entertainment_n to_o the_o father_n and_o divine_n who_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o intermission_n of_o the_o congregation_n want_v business_n and_o before_o be_v almost_o idle_a they_o entertain_v themselves_o in_o private_a meeting_n discourse_v various_o sometime_o of_o dissolve_v sometime_o of_o continue_v the_o council_n according_a to_o the_o news_n which_o be_v bring_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o march_n letter_n come_v from_o the_o electour_n of_o saxony_n to_o his_o ambassador_n give_v they_o commission_n to_o prosecute_v their_o instance_n in_o the_o council_n and_o advise_v that_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o go_v to_o the_o emperor_n in_o person_n which_o put_v all_o man_n out_o of_o fear_n but_o not_o long_o after_o a_o general_a rumour_n be_v spread_v that_o the_o french_a king_n be_v confederate_a with_o the_o protestant_a prince_n to_o make_v war_n against_o the_o emperor_n the_o electour_n of_o mentz_n and_o collen_n depart_v trent_n the_o elector_n of_o collen_n and_o mentz_n depart_v from_o trent_n the_o eleven_o of_o march_n and_o pass_v by_o ispruc_n have_v very_o secret_a conference_n with_o caesar_n and_o the_o ambassador_n of_o maurice_n fear_v some_o danger_n go_v secret_o out_o of_o trent_n and_o return_v home_o by_o diverse_a way_n notwithstanding_o all_o this_o four_o divine_n of_o wittenberg_n and_o two_o of_o argentina_n come_v to_o trent_n afterward_o who_o with_o the_o ambassador_n of_o that_o duke_n synod_n the_o divine_n of_o wittenberg_n &_o argentina_n come_v to_o the_o synod_n do_v immediate_o desire_v the_o emperor_n ambassador_n that_o the_o synod_n may_v answer_v the_o proposition_n already_o make_v and_o begin_v the_o conference_n the_o legate_n answer_v that_o the_o nineteenth_o of_o march_n a_o day_n appoint_v for_o the_o session_n approach_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o give_v order_n for_o it_o and_o to_o handle_v many_o other_o thing_n of_o which_o one_o shall_v be_v to_o find_v a_o form_n how_o to_o treat_v therefore_o that_o day_n a_o congregation_n be_v make_v in_o the_o legate_n house_n and_o a_o congregation_n the_o ambassador_n of_o portugal_n be_v receive_v in_o congregation_n resolution_n take_v to_o prolong_v the_o session_n until_o the_o first_o of_o may._n in_o this_o congregation_n the_o ambassador_n of_o portugal_n be_v receive_v who_o present_v his_o mandate_n and_o make_v a_o speech_n and_o be_v answer_v in_o the_o usual_a form_n with_o praise_n and_o thanks_n to_o the_o king_n and_o word_n of_o compliment_n to_o the_o ambassador_n but_o those_o of_o wittenberg_n see_v no_o answer_n be_v make_v to_o their_o proposition_n and_o that_o the_o legate_n conceal_v the_o confession_n present_v by_o they_o which_o many_o desire_v to_o have_v and_o can_v not_o have_v bring_v many_o print_a copy_n distribute_v they_o unto_o diverse_a which_o raise_v much_o noise_n and_o some_o say_v the_o deserve_v confession_n the_o ambassador_n of_o wittenberg_n spread_v copy_n of_o their_o confession_n serve_v punishment_n for_o he_o unto_o who_o safe_a conduct_n be_v grant_v be_v bind_v to_o give_v none_o offence_n unto_o he_o that_o grant_v it_o and_o this_o be_v esteem_v a_o public_a offence_n yet_o in_o the_o end_n all_o be_v quiet_v the_o protestant_n together_o with_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n
it_o in_o a_o mercurial_a so_o they_o call_v the_o judicature_n institute_v to_o examine_v and_o correct_v the_o action_n of_o the_o counsellor_n of_o parliament_n and_o judge_n of_o the_o king_n hold_v in_o paris_n the_o 15._o of_o june_n where_o they_o be_v to_o treat_v of_o religion_n after_o the_o congregation_n be_v assemble_v enter_v in_o person_n he_o say_v he_o have_v establish_v peace_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n by_o the_o marriage_n of_o his_o sister_n and_o daughter_n that_o he_o may_v provide_v against_o the_o inconvenience_n breed_v in_o his_o kingdom_n about_o religion_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o principal_a care_n of_o prince_n therefore_o understanding_n they_o be_v to_o treat_v of_o this_o subject_n he_o exhort_v they_o to_o handle_v god_n cause_n with_o sincerity_n and_o have_v command_v they_o to_o prosecute_v the_o thing_n begin_v claude_n viol_n one_o of_o they_o speak_v much_o against_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o bad_a custom_n grow_v to_o be_v pernicious_a error_n which_o have_v cause_v the_o new_a sect_n therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o mitigate_v the_o severe_a punishment_n until_o the_o difference_n of_o religion_n be_v remoove_v and_o the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n amend_v by_o authority_n of_o a_o general_n council_n the_o only_a remedy_n for_o these_o evil_n as_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n have_v judge_v command_v that_o one_o shall_v be_v celebrate_v every_o ten_o year_n his_o opinion_n be_v follow_v by_o ludovicus_n faber_n and_o some_o other_o anne_n du_fw-fr bourg_n do_v add_v that_o many_o villainy_n be_v comit_v condemn_v by_o the_o law_n for_o punishment_n whereof_o the_o rope_n and_o fire_n be_v not_o sufficient_a as_o frequent_a blasphemy_n against_o god_n perjury_n adultery_n not_o only_o secret_a but_o even_o cherish_v with_o impudent_a licence_n make_v himself_o to_o be_v plain_o understand_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o only_o of_o the_o grandee_n of_o the_o court_n but_o of_o the_o king_n himself_o also_o add_v that_o while_o man_n live_v thus_o dissolute_o diverse_a torment_n be_v prepare_v against_o those_o who_o be_v guilty_a of_o nothing_o but_o of_o publish_v to_o the_o world_n the_o vice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o desire_v a_o amendment_n of_o they_o in_o opposition_n of_o all_o this_o egidius_n magister_n the_o prime_a precedent_n speak_v against_o the_o new_a sect_n conclude_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o remedy_n but_o that_o which_o be_v former_o use_v against_o the_o albigense_n of_o who_o philippus_n augustus_n put_v to_o death_n six_o hundred_o in_o one_o day_n and_o against_o the_o waldense_n who_o be_v choke_v in_o the_o cave_n whither_o they_o retire_v to_o hide_v themselves_o when_o all_o the_o voice_n be_v give_v the_o king_n say_v he_o have_v now_o hear_v with_o his_o own_o ear_n that_o which_o before_o be_v tell_v he_o that_o the_o contagion_n of_o the_o kingdom_n do_v hence_o arise_v imprison_v 1559_o pius_fw-la 4._o ferdinand_z philip_z 2._o elizabeth_n henry_n 2._o and_o command_v some_o of_o the_o counsellor_n of_o parliament_n to_o be_v imprison_v that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o parliament_n who_o do_v despise_v the_o pope_n authority_n and_o he_o that_o he_o well_o know_v they_o be_v but_o few_o but_o the_o cause_n of_o many_o evil_n therefore_o he_o exhort_v those_o who_o be_v good_a subject_n to_o continue_v in_o do_v their_o duty_n and_o immediate_o give_v order_n that_o faber_n and_o du_fw-fr bourg_n shall_v be_v imprison_v and_o afterward_o cause_v four_o more_o to_o be_v apprehend_v in_o their_o house_n which_o do_v much_o daunt_v those_o who_o embrace_v the_o new_a religion_n for_o the_o counsellor_n of_o parliament_n in_o france_n be_v repute_v most_o sacred_a and_o inviolable_a who_o notwithstanding_o be_v put_v into_o prison_n for_o deliver_v their_o opinion_n in_o public_a assembly_n they_o conclude_v that_o the_o king_n will_v pardon_v none_o but_o example_n of_o great_a fear_n be_v always_o join_v with_o other_o of_o equal_a boldness_n paris_n 15●9_n the_o reformatist_n hold_v a_o synod_n in_o paris_n for_o at_o the_o same_o time_n as_o if_o there_o have_v be_v no_o danger_n at_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o reform_a for_o so_o the_o protestant_n be_v call_v in_o france_n assemble_v in_o paris_n in_o the_o suburb_n of_o saint_n german_n make_v a_o synod_n in_o which_o franciscus_n morellus_n the_o chief_a man_n among_o they_o be_v precedent_n ordain_v diverse_a constitution_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o hold_v counsel_n of_o remove_v the_o domination_n in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o election_n and_o office_n of_o minister_n of_o censure_n of_o marriage_n of_o divorce_n of_o degree_n of_o consanguinity_n and_o affinity_n that_o throughout_o all_o france_n they_o may_v not_o only_o have_v a_o uniform_a faith_n but_o discipline_n also_o and_o their_o courage_n do_v increase_v because_o the_o fame_n of_o the_o severity_n use_v in_o france_n come_v into_o germany_n the_o three_o elector_n and_o germany_n and_o be_v encourage_v by_o the_o intercession_n of_o the_o protestant_a prince_n of_o germany_n other_o protestant_a prince_n send_v ambassador_n to_o the_o king_n pray_v he_o to_o proceed_v with_o piety_n and_o christian_a charity_n against_o the_o professor_n of_o their_o religion_n guilty_a of_o nothing_o but_o of_o accuse_v the_o corrupt_a manner_n and_o the_o discipline_n pervert_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o have_v be_v do_v more_o than_o a_o hundred_o year_n since_o by_o other_o godly_a doctor_n of_o france_n for_o that_o kingdom_n be_v now_o in_o quiet_a the_o difference_n of_o religion_n may_v easy_o be_v compose_v by_o the_o disputation_n of_o able_a man_n desirous_a of_o peace_n who_o may_v examine_v their_o confession_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n suspend_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o severity_n of_o the_o sentence_n which_o they_o will_v receive_v as_o a_o thing_n most_o grateful_a and_o remain_v much_o oblige_v to_o he_o for_o it_o the_o king_n give_v a_o courteous_a answer_n in_o general_a word_n promise_v good_a which_o do_v they_o no_o good_a to_o give_v they_o satisfaction_n and_o to_o send_v one_o express_o to_o signify_v so_o much_o unto_o they_o yet_o he_o remit_v nothing_o of_o the_o severity_n but_o after_o the_o ambassador_n be_v part_v he_o depute_v four_o judge_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o parliament_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o prisoner_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o paris_n and_o the_o inquisitor_n antony_n de_fw-fr mocares_fw-la command_v they_o to_o proceed_v with_o all_o expedition_n the_o pope_n unto_o who_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v know_v as_o he_o be_v much_o discontent_v with_o the_o progress_n of_o the_o new_a doctrine_n in_o the_o state_n of_o both_o the_o king_n so_o he_o be_v please_v that_o those_o prince_n do_v think_v of_o it_o and_o move_v they_o by_o his_o nuncij_fw-la and_o by_o their_o ambassador_n reside_v with_o he_o to_o do_v so_o still_o but_o he_o will_v not_o have_v any_o other_o mean_v then_o that_o of_o the_o inquisition_n which_o he_o think_v the_o only_a remedy_n as_o he_o say_v upon_o all_o occasion_n judge_v that_o the_o council_n will_v do_v as_o former_o it_o have_v do_v that_o be_v reduce_v all_o into_o a_o worse_a state_n while_o he_o be_v possess_v with_o these_o cogitation_n and_o weak_a of_o body_n the_o king_n of_o france_n die_v the_o second_o of_o july_n by_o a_o wound_n in_o the_o eye_n run_v at_o tilt_n for_o which_o he_o seem_v very_o sorrowful_a and_o be_v so_o indeed_o for_o although_o he_o suspect_v and_o with_o reason_n the_o intelligence_n between_o the_o july_n 1559._o paul_n 4._o ferdinand_z elizabeth_z francis_n 2._o henry_n the_o second_o die_v the_o second_o of_o july_n two_o king_n yet_o he_o have_v still_o hope_n to_o separate_v they_o but_o the_o one_o be_v dead_a he_o see_v he_o be_v at_o the_o discretion_n of_o the_o other_o alone_o who_o he_o more_o fear_v because_o he_o be_v more_o offend_v by_o he_o and_o be_v of_o a_o more_o close_a nature_n hard_o to_o be_v sound_v he_o fear_v also_o that_o in_o france_n a_o gate_n will_v be_v set_v wide_o open_a to_o let_v in_o sect_n which_o may_v be_v confirm_v before_o the_o new_a king_n can_v get_v so_o much_o wisdom_n and_o reputation_n as_o be_v necessary_a to_o oppose_v so_o great_a difficulty_n he_o live_v some_o few_o day_n afflict_v with_o these_o cogitation_n but_o now_o lay_v aside_o all_o hope_n which_o have_v until_o then_o keep_v he_o alive_a he_o die_v the_o eighteen_o inquisition_n the_o pope_n jy_v the_o 18._o of_o august_n recommend_v to_o the_o cardinal_n nothing_o but_o the_o office_n of_o the_o inquisition_n of_o august_n recommend_v to_o the_o cardinal_n nothing_o but_o the_o office_n of_o the_o inquisition_n the_o only_a mean_n as_o he_o say_v to_o
conspiracy_n so_o that_o they_o disarm_v within_o 24._o hour_n afterward_o the_o king_n by_o his_o edict_n pardon_v all_o the_o reformatist_n until_o they_o return_v to_o the_o church_n he_o forbid_v all_o assembly_n for_o religion_n and_o commit_v to_o the_o bishop_n the_o hear_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o heresy_n this_o displease_v the_o chancellor_n though_o he_o consent_v for_o fear_v the_o spanish_a inquisition_n will_v be_v bring_v in_o as_o the_o guisard_n desire_v the_o humour_n move_v be_v not_o quiet_v by_o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o conspirator_n and_o the_o pardon_n publish_v nor_o the_o hope_n lay_v aside_o which_o they_o have_v conceive_v to_o have_v liberty_n of_o religion_n yea_o great_a tumult_n of_o the_o people_n be_v raise_v in_o provence_n languedoc_n and_o poitou_n whether_o the_o preacher_n of_o geneva_n geneva_n the_o protestant_n do_v increase_v by_o mean_n of_o the_o preacher_n of_o geneva_n be_v call_v and_o come_v willing_o by_o who_o sermon_n the_o number_n of_o the_o protestant_n do_v increase_v this_o general_a and_o sudden_a combination_n make_v the_o governor_n of_o the_o kingdom_n resolute_a that_o there_o be_v need_n of_o a_o ecclesiastical_a remedy_n and_o that_o very_o quick_o and_o a_o nationall_n synod_n be_v propose_v by_o the_o whole_a council_n the_o cardinal_n of_o armignac_n say_v that_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v do_v without_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o alone_o be_v able_a to_o make_v provision_n that_o they_o shall_v write_v to_o rome_n and_o expect_v a_o answer_n to_o which_o opinion_n some_o few_o prelate_n do_v adhere_v but_o the_o bishop_n of_o valence_n say_v that_o a_o sudden_a remedy_n can_v not_o be_v expect_v from_o the_o pope_n because_o he_o be_v far_o distant_a nor_o a_o fit_a one_o because_o he_o be_v not_o inform_v of_o the_o particular_a necessity_n of_o the_o kingdom_n nor_o a_o charitable_a one_o because_o he_o be_v busy_v in_o make_v his_o nephew_n great_a that_o god_n have_v give_v to_o all_o kingdom_n all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o govern_v they_o that_o france_n have_v prelate_n of_o its_o own_o to_o regulate_v the_o cause_n of_o religion_n who_o better_a know_v the_o want_n of_o the_o kingdom_n that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o great_a absurdity_n to_o see_v paris_n burn_v have_v the_o river_n of_o some_o and_o marne_n full_a of_o water_n and_o to_o believe_v that_o water_n must_v be_v bring_v from_o tiber_n to_o quench_v the_o fire_n the_o resolution_n france_n a_o nationall_n synod_n be_v intimate_v in_o france_n of_o the_o council_n be_v that_o there_o be_v need_n of_o a_o strong_a and_o sudden_a remedy_n the_o prelate_n of_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v assemble_v to_o find_v a_o way_n to_o hinder_v the_o course_n of_o these_o great_a mischief_n and_o the_o eleven_o of_o april_n the_o synod_n be_v intimate_v for_o the_o ten_o of_o september_n but_o that_o the_o pope_n may_v not_o take_v it_o in_o ill_a part_n a_o curriet_n be_v dispatch_v to_o rome_n to_o give_v he_o a_o account_n of_o the_o resolution_n and_o to_o inform_v he_o of_o the_o necessity_n of_o that_o remedy_n and_o to_o pray_v he_o not_o to_o take_v it_o amiss_o the_o ambassador_n represent_v to_o his_o holiness_n the_o infection_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o danger_n and_o the_o hope_n which_o the_o king_n have_v of_o some_o good_a remedy_n by_o a_o general_a convocation_n of_o the_o prelate_n without_o which_o he_o see_v no_o mean_n to_o make_v a_o effectual_a povision_n therefore_o he_o be_v force_v not_o to_o defer_v long_o nor_o to_o expect_v remedy_n from_o place_n romote_v which_o be_v uncertain_a and_o long_o in_o come_v and_o to_o use_v that_o which_o be_v in_o his_o own_o power_n and_o he_o add_v that_o no_o constitution_n of_o that_o synod_n shall_v be_v of_o force_n before_o it_o be_v confirm_v by_o his_o holiness_n the_o pope_n on_o the_o contrary_a do_v grievous_o complain_v that_o the_o king_n have_v pardon_v the_o error_n commit_v against_o religion_n even_o of_o here●●kes_n the_o pope_n blame_v the_o french_a king_n for_o pardon_v here●●kes_n those_o who_o do_v not_o ask_v it_o wherein_o none_o have_v power_n but_o himself_o and_o what_o king_n be_v there_o he_o say_v who_o think_v he_o be_v able_a to_o pardon_v offence_n against_o god_n that_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o by_o the_o just_a wrath_n of_o god_n there_o be_v so_o many_o tumult_n in_o that_o kingdom_n where_o the_o sacred_a canon_n be_v disesteem_v and_o the_o pope_n authority_n usurp_v he_o say_v that_o the_o assemble_v of_o the_o prelate_n will_v do_v no_o good_a yea_o will_v cause_v a_o great_a division_n that_o he_o have_v propose_v a_o general_a council_n which_o be_v the_o only_a remedy_n that_o the_o cause_n why_o it_o be_v not_o essemble_v already_o proceed_v from_o they_o who_o will_v not_o have_v it_o that_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o celebrate_v it_o though_o it_o be_v desire_v by_o none_o but_o synod_n and_o will_v not_o approve_v the_o nationall_n synod_n will_v not_o by_o any_o mean_n consent_v to_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o prelate_n either_o in_o france_n or_o elsewhere_o that_o this_o be_v never_o tolerate_v by_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n that_o if_o every_o prince_n shall_v celebrate_v counsel_n of_o himself_o a_o confusion_n and_o separation_n of_o the_o church_n must_v needs_o follow_v he_o complain_v much_o that_o the_o assembly_n be_v first_o intimate_v and_o then_o his_o consent_n demand_v which_o he_o must_v needs_o think_v be_v do_v with_o small_a respect_n of_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n to_o who_o all_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n be_v to_o be_v refer_v not_o to_o give_v he_o a_o account_n when_o they_o be_v do_v but_o to_o receive_v from_o he_o authority_n to_o do_v they_o that_o the_o edict_n publish_v do_v infer_v a_o apostasy_n in_o that_o kingdom_n from_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n for_o remedy_n whereof_o he_o will_v send_v a_o express_a nuncio_n to_o make_v his_o will_n know_v to_o the_o king_n he_o send_v the_o bishop_n of_o viterbo_n with_o instruction_n to_o show_v he_o that_o a_o nationall_n it_o but_o send_v a_o nuncio_n into_o spain_n to_o dissuade_v it_o council_n of_o that_o kingdom_n will_v be_v a_o kind_n of_o schism_n from_o the_o universal_a church_n give_v a_o bad_a example_n to_o other_o nation_n and_o make_v his_o prelate_n proud_a assume_v great_a authority_n which_o diminution_n of_o his_o own_o that_o it_o be_v general_o know_v how_o earnest_o they_o desire_v the_o restitution_n of_o the_o pragmatique_a which_o they_o will_v first_o of_o all_o bring_v in_o by_o which_o mean_v the_o king_n will_v lose_v his_o whole_a collation_n of_o the_o regality_n and_o the_o presentation_n of_o the_o bishopricke_n and_o abbey_n whence_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o prelate_n not_o acknowledge_v the_o power_n of_o the_o king_n will_v refuse_v to_o obey_v he_o and_o yet_o with_o all_o these_o inconvenience_n the_o evil_n which_o do_v now_o press_v he_o will_v not_o be_v provide_v against_o for_o the_o heretic_n do_v profess_v already_o that_o they_o esteem_v not_o the_o prelate_n so_o that_o whatsoever_o they_o shall_v do_v will_v be_v oppose_v by_o the_o protestant_a minister_n if_o for_o no_o other_o cause_n because_o it_o be_v do_v by_o they_o that_o the_o true_a remedy_n be_v to_o make_v the_o prelate_n and_o other_o curate_n reside_v and_o keep_v their_o flock_n oppose_v the_o fury_n of_o the_o wolf_n and_o to_o proceed_v in_o justice_n against_o those_o who_o be_v judge_v to_o be_v heretic_n by_o the_o judge_n of_o faith_n and_o where_o it_o can_v be_v do_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o multitude_n to_o use_v force_n of_o arm_n to_o compel_v all_o to_o the_o performance_n of_o their_o duty_n before_o the_o contagion_n do_v increase_v that_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v now_o all_o difference_n may_v be_v complete_o endded_a by_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o general_a council_n which_o he_o will_v immediate_o intimate_v that_o if_o the_o king_n will_v resolve_v to_o reduce_v the_o contumacious_a to_o obedience_n before_o they_o do_v more_o increase_n in_o number_n and_o strength_n he_o promise_v to_o assist_v he_o with_o all_o his_o power_n and_o to_o labour_v that_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n and_o prince_n of_o italy_n shall_v do_v the_o like_a but_o if_o he_o will_v not_o be_v persuade_v to_o compel_v his_o subject_n by_o force_n the_o nuncio_n have_v instruction_n to_o propose_v unto_o he_o that_o all_o the_o mischief_n which_o trouble_v france_n and_o the_o poison_n which_o infect_v that_o kingdom_n and_o the_o neighbour_n place_n come_v from_o geneva_n that_o the_o extirpation_n of_o that_o root_n geneva_n and_o to_o persuade_v y_z e_o king_n to_o make_v ware_n against_o geneva_n will_v take_v away_o a_o great_a nourishment_n of_o the_o evil_a that_o make_v war_n out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n he_o
shall_v evacuate_v those_o bad_a humour_n which_o do_v trouble_v it_o therefore_o he_o be_v to_o exhort_v the_o king_n to_o join_v with_o he_o in_o this_o good_a work_n promise_v that_o he_o will_v ●d●ee_v the_o king_n of_o spain_n and_o the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n to_o do_v the_o like_a the_o pope_n give_v the_o bishop_n commission_n also_o to_o negotiate_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n as_o he_o pass_v he_o write_v to_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n and_o ●ealt_v with_o he_o by_o his_o nuncio_n that_o he_o will_v labour_v to_o divert_v his_o cofin_n from_o the_o nationall_n council_n which_o will_v be_v hurtful_a to_o france_n and_o a_o bad_a example_n for_o spain_n and_o worse_o for_o the_o low_a country_n the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n hearken_v to_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o war_n of_o geneva_n promise_v to_o employ_v himself_o whole_o in_o it_o so_o that_o those_o two_o king_n will_v be_v content_a to_o assist_v he_o and_o that_o the_o war_n be_v to_o be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o for_o he_o for_o that_o city_n belong_v to_o his_o dominion_n it_o be_v not_o just_a in_o case_n it_o be_v win_v that_o any_o shall_v possess_v it_o but_o himself_o therefore_o if_o his_o holiness_n will_v come_v to_o the_o effect_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o make_v a_o league_n with_o plain_a capitulation_n lest_o some_o great_a inconvenience_n may_v arise_v if_o either_o the_o king_n shall_v not_o agree_v or_o himself_o shall_v be_v abandon_v after_o he_o have_v provoke_v the_o swiss_n against_o he_o who_o will_v undoubted_o defend_v the_o city_n for_o geneva_n the_o king_n of_o spain_n consider_v that_o france_n will_v not_o permit_v it_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o any_o but_o frenchman_n which_o be_v not_o good_a for_o his_o service_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o vieinity_n of_o the_o franche_fw-mi county_n therefore_o he_o answer_v that_o he_o think_v it_o not_o a_o fit_a time_n to_o make_v attempt_n but_o for_o the_o nationall_n council_n of_o france_n he_o be_v persuade_v it_o will_v be_v a_o dangerous_a example_n to_o his_o state_n therefore_o he_o dispatch_v away_o antonio_n di_fw-fr toledo_n prior_n of_o lion_n to_o signify_v to_o the_o french_a king_n that_o the_o celebration_n of_o that_o council_n will_v be_v very_o hurtful_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o division_n which_o may_v arise_v the_o kingdom_n be_v infect_v he_o pray_v he_o not_o to_o go_v on_o herein_o synod_n the_o king_n of_o spain_n dissuade_v y_o e_o french_a king_n from_o the_o nationall_n synod_n and_o say_v that_o nothing_o move_v he_o to_o make_v this_o request_n but_o only_o his_o love_n to_o he_o and_o his_o zeal_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n he_o leave_v to_o his_o consideration_n beside_o the_o contention_n which_o it_o may_v cause_v within_o his_o kingdom_n the_o pernicious_a example_n which_o other_o province_n will_v take_v and_o the_o prejudice_n it_o will_v bring_v to_o the_o general_n council_n which_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v and_o be_v the_o only_a remedy_n for_o all_o the_o evil_n and_o division_n of_o christendom_n that_o it_o will_v show_v there_o be_v not_o so_o good_a intelligence_n between_o the_o emperor_n and_o they_o as_o shall_v be_v and_o will_v make_v the_o protestant_n wax_v proud_a in_o prejudice_n of_o the_o public_a cause_n he_o add_v that_o he_o want_v not_o force_v to_o repress_v the_o insolence_n of_o his_o subject_n and_o if_o he_o will_v make_v use_n of_o the_o force_n of_o he_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n he_o will_v very_o willing_o employ_v they_o in_o this_o case_n and_o his_o own_o person_n also_o if_o there_o be_v need_n that_o his_o subject_n may_v not_o boast_v they_o have_v bring_v he_o to_o any_o indignity_n whereof_o he_o be_v to_o consider_v much_o now_o in_o this_o begin_n of_o his_o reign_n he_o give_v commission_n also_o to_o his_o ambassador_n that_o if_o he_o can_v not_o obtain_v this_o he_o shall_v for_o the_o same_o and_o other_o reason_n negotiate_v a_o suspension_n of_o it_o for_o as_o long_o a_o time_n as_o he_o can_v and_o shall_v treat_v with_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n who_o as_o he_o understand_v have_v a_o great_a hand_n in_o this_o council_n that_o as_o a_o prince_n of_o the_o church_n and_o as_o have_v a_o great_a part_n in_o the_o government_n of_o that_o kingdom_n he_o be_v bind_v to_o consider_v the_o damage_n which_o may_v redound_v to_o it_o and_o all_o christendom_n he_o cause_v also_o the_o same_o request_n to_o be_v make_v to_o the_o duke_n of_o guise_n the_o constable_n the_o queen_n mother_n and_o to_o the_o martial_a saint_n andrew_n he_o give_v he_o commission_n also_o to_o advise_v the_o duchess_n of_o parma_n and_o vargas_n his_o ambassador_n at_o rome_n of_o whatsoever_o he_o do_v likewise_o he_o give_v the_o pope_n advice_n of_o the_o earnest_a request_n he_o have_v make_v by_o one_o express_o send_v and_o of_o the_o need_n that_o king_n have_v of_o assistance_n to_o this_o he_o add_v the_o necessity_n in_o which_o himself_o be_v the_o turk_n have_v take_v from_o he_o the_o year_n before_o twenty_o galley_n twenty_o five_o eccleisastic_n and_o demand_v of_o the_o pope_n a_o subsidy_n from_o the_o eccleisastic_n round_a ship_n and_o the_o fortress_n of_o gerbe_n which_o force_v he_o to_o increase_v his_o army_n he_o therefore_o request_v his_o holiness_n to_o grant_v he_o a_o large_a subsidy_n of_o the_o church_n and_o benefice_n of_o his_o kingdom_n the_o proposition_n of_o assault_a geneva_n be_v not_o well_o take_v in_o france_n because_o geneva_n the_o french_a man_n be_v distaste_v with_o the_o proposition_n of_o assault_a geneva_n it_o will_v make_v the_o hugonot_n so_o the_o reformatist_n be_v call_v suspicious_a and_o unite_v themselves_o beside_o none_o go_v to_o that_o war_n but_o the_o catholic_n the_o kingdom_n will_v be_v leave_v open_a to_o the_o opposite_n and_o to_o provoke_v the_o swiss_n protector_n of_o that_o city_n seem_v not_o good_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o service_n they_o may_v do_v that_o crown_n therefore_o they_o answer_v the_o nuncio_n only_o thus_o that_o while_o so_o great_a confusion_n do_v afflict_v the_o kingdom_n within_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o apply_v themselves_o to_o matter_n abroad_o but_o for_o the_o nationall_n synod_n the_o french_a king_n answer_v concern_v the_o nationall_n synod_n council_n the_o same_o answer_n be_v give_v to_o toledo_n and_o the_o nuncio_n that_o the_o king_n be_v resolve_v to_o keep_v himself_o and_o the_o kingdom_n in_o the_o catholic_a union_n that_o he_o will_v make_v a_o nationall_n council_n to_o separate_v himself_o but_o to_o unite_v to_o the_o church_n those_o that_o go_v astray_o that_o a_o general_n council_n will_v more_o please_v and_o in_o likelihood_n be_v more_o profitable_a if_o his_o urgent_a occasion_n will_v suffer_v he_o to_o expect_v the_o time_n which_o must_v needs_o be_v very_o long_o that_o the_o nationall_n council_n which_o he_o desire_v shall_v depend_v on_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o the_o pope_n which_o shall_v cease_v when_o the_o general_n shall_v be_v assemble_v and_o shall_v incorporate_v with_o it_o and_o that_o his_o deed_n may_v answer_v to_o his_o word_n he_o desire_v the_o pope_n to_o send_v a_o legate_n into_o france_n with_o power_n to_o assemble_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o to_o settle_v the_o affair_n of_o religion_n the_o pope_n cast_v forth_o the_o proposition_n to_o make_v war_n against_o geneva_n not_o so_o much_o for_o the_o hatred_n he_o bear_v to_o that_o city_n as_o the_o seminary_n of_o the_o zuinglian_n preacher_n in_o france_n or_o for_o fear_n of_o some_o innovation_n in_o italy_n as_o to_o prolong_v the_o treaty_n of_o the_o general_n council_n for_o if_o the_o war_n have_v be_v kindle_v it_o will_v have_v last_v a_o year_n at_o the_o least_o and_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n the_o council_n will_v have_v be_v forget_v or_o a_o good_a form_n will_v have_v be_v find_v for_o it_o but_o now_o see_v that_o his_o proposition_n do_v not_o take_v effect_n and_o that_o the_o french_a do_v still_o persevere_v in_o their_o resolution_n for_o a_o national_a synod_n he_o think_v it_o necessary_a not_o to_o defer_v his_o determination_n for_o the_o general_a and_o to_o stop_v the_o frenchman_n with_o this_o and_o with_o some_o grant_n of_o what_o they_o desire_v he_o confer_v hereof_o with_o the_o cardinal_n which_o be_v most_o intimate_a council_n make_v the_o pope_n hasten_v the_o general_n council_n with_o he_o and_o particular_o about_o the_o place_n which_o seem_v of_o most_o importance_n because_o in_o conclusion_n the_o council_n do_v produce_v effect_n according_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o he_o that_o be_v strong_a in_o the_o place_n where_o it_o be_v celebrate_v he_o will_v fain_o have_v propose_v bolonia_n or_o some_o other_o of_o his_o own_o
city_n promise_v to_o go_v thither_o in_o person_n but_o see_v it_o will_v be_v ill_o construe_v by_o the_o world_n he_o be_v resolve_v not_o to_o accept_v of_o any_o city_n beyond_o the_o mountain_n no_o not_o to_o hear_v any_o proposition_n of_o it_o the_o cardinal_n pacceco_n propose_v milan_n and_o he_o condescend_v so_o that_o he_o may_v have_v the_o castle_n in_o his_o hand_n during_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n which_o be_v to_o refer_v himself_o to_o a_o impossible_a condition_n he_o think_v also_o upon_o some_o of_o the_o venetian_a city_n but_o the_o republic_n excuse_v itself_o lest_o they_o shall_v make_v the_o turk_n suspicious_a of_o who_o force_n they_o be_v then_o afraid_a when_o he_o have_v consider_v all_o he_o find_v no_o fit_a place_n than_o trent_n for_o the_o council_n have_v be_v hold_v there_o twice_o before_o every_o one_o have_v experience_n of_o what_o be_v good_a and_o what_o bid_v in_o that_o place_n assembly_n who_o after_o consultation_n think_v trent_n the_o fit_a place_n for_o the_o assembly_n and_o therefore_o will_v more_o easy_o consent_v to_o go_v thither_o then_o elsewhere_o and_o there_o be_v also_o some_o appearance_n of_o reason_n for_o it_o because_o the_o council_n celebrate_v by_o julius_n be_v not_o finish_v but_o suspend_v he_o think_v to_o satisfy_v the_o french_a man_n by_o send_v cardinal_n tornon_n into_o france_n not_o in_o quality_n of_o a_o legate_n but_o with_o power_n when_o he_o be_v there_o and_o see_v there_o need_n to_o assemble_v there_o and_o send_v card._n tornon_n into_o france_n to_o hinder_v a_o nationall_n synod_n there_o some_o of_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o kingdom_n such_o as_o the_o king_n and_o himself_o think_v fit_a but_o not_o all_o that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o appearance_n of_o a_o council_n and_o to_o treat_v with_o these_o but_o to_o resolve_v of_o nothing_o there_o be_v also_o two_o other_o accident_n of_o no_o less_o consideration_n which_o thrust_v the_o pope_n forward_o to_o speak_v more_o plain_o of_o a_o council_n one_o far_o off_o but_o import_v the_o loss_n of_o a_o kingdom_n the_o other_o concern_v one_o person_n only_o but_o be_v of_o great_a consequence_n the_o nobility_n of_o scotland_n who_o have_v a_o pope_n scotland_n revolt_v from_o the_o pope_n long_a time_n make_v war_n to_o chase_v the_o french_a man_n out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o to_o take_v the_o government_n out_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o queen_n regent_n and_o have_v ever_o encounter_v many_o difficulty_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o great_a succour_n send_v she_o by_o her_o son_n in_o law_n the_o french_a king_n to_o maintain_v the_o kingdom_n for_o his_o wife_n final_o that_o they_o may_v quite_o free_v themselves_o they_o resolve_v to_o join_v with_o the_o english_a and_o incite_v the_o people_n against_o the_o regent_n to_o this_o end_n they_o give_v way_n to_o liberty_n of_o religion_n to_o which_o the_o people_n be_v incline_v by_o this_o mean_n they_o bring_v the_o frenchman_n into_o great_a strait_n and_o the_o old_a religion_n be_v little_o esteem_v for_o which_o the_o pope_n be_v blame_v because_o the_o world_n think_v that_o if_o the_o council_n have_v be_v begin_v all_o popular_a commotion_n will_v have_v be_v stop_v the_o other_o accident_n be_v that_o the_o king_n of_o bohemia_n have_v a_o long_a time_n hold_v intelligence_n with_o the_o protestant_a elector_n and_o prince_n of_o protestant_n maximilian_n be_v not_o without_o cause_n think_v to_o be_v a_o protestant_n germany_n and_o be_v former_o suspect_v for_o it_o by_o paul_n the_o four_o so_o that_o he_o can_v not_o refrain_v to_o object_v to_o the_o emperor_n in_o private_a discourse_n which_o he_o have_v with_o martin_n gusman_n his_o ambassador_n that_o his_o son_n be_v a_o favourer_n of_o heresy_n the_o same_o suspicion_n continue_v in_o the_o court_n after_o the_o death_n of_o paul_n the_o pope_n cause_v the_o count_n of_o arco_fw-la to_o tell_v he_o that_o if_o he_o will_v not_o live_v as_o a_o catholic_a he_o will_v not_o confirm_v he_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n yea_o will_v deprive_v he_o of_o all_o dominion_n notwithstanding_o this_o advice_n come_v afterward_o to_o rome_n that_o he_o entertain_v a_o preacher_n and_o hear_v he_o often_o who_o have_v bring_v in_o the_o use_n of_o the_o cup_n in_o diverse_a place_n but_o not_o in_o the_o city_n and_o the_o king_n himself_o say_v he_o can_v not_o receive_v it_o otherwise_o which_o although_o he_o put_v not_o in_o practice_n yet_o those_o word_n give_v the_o pope_n great_a suspicion_n especial_o because_o almost_o in_o all_o place_n of_o germany_n the_o communion_n of_o quick_o which_o two_o accident_n incite_v the_o pope_n to_o call_v the_o council_n quick_o the_o chalice_n be_v use_v by_o all_o that_o will_v and_o none_o hinder_v the_o priest_n to_o minister_v it_o for_o all_o these_o former_a respect_n the_o pope_n be_v resolute_a to_o make_v this_o great_a jump_n the_o three_o of_o june_n he_o call_v the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o emperor_n of_o spain_n portugal_n polonia_n venice_n and_o florence_n who_o appear_v all_o before_o his_o holiness_n except_o the_o ambassador_n of_o polonia_n that_o be_v sick_a he_o complain_v first_o that_o he_o can_v not_o call_v the_o french_a ambassador_n for_o fear_n of_o some_o question_n of_o precedency_n which_o be_v a_o cause_n to_o hinder_v the_o public_a benefit_n of_o consult_v on_o the_o common_a affair_n of_o christendom_n but_o those_o two_o king_n be_v cousin_n it_o be_v necessary_a they_o shall_v resolve_v to_o accommodate_v the_o difference_n he_o wherein_o he_o declare_v his_o purpose_n to_o all_o the_o ambassador_n reside_v with_o he_o for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o christian_a commonwealth_n and_o especial_o of_o their_o own_o kingdom_n then_o he_o say_v that_o the_o cause_n why_o he_o have_v call_v they_o be_v the_o celebration_n of_o the_o council_n which_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o bring_v to_o effect_v remove_v all_o difficulty_n which_o prince_n for_o their_o own_o end_n may_v set_v on_o foot_n that_o the_o place_n shall_v be_v trent_n which_o have_v please_v twice_o can_v now_o be_v deny_v by_o none_o in_o regard_n it_o be_v not_o a_o new_a place_n and_o the_o council_n celebrate_v there_o only_o suspend_v therefore_o take_v away_o the_o suspension_n the_o council_n be_v open_a as_o before_z and_o many_o good_a constitution_n have_v be_v make_v there_o it_o will_v not_o be_v fit_a to_o call_v they_o in_o question_n by_o make_v show_n of_o call_v a_o new_a council_n he_o add_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o do_v it_o quick_o because_o thing_n grow_v worse_a every_o day_n as_o appear_v in_o france_n where_o they_o treat_v of_o a_o nationall_n council_n which_o he_o neither_o will_v nor_o can_v endure_v because_o germany_n and_o every_o province_n will_v do_v the_o like_a that_o he_o will_v give_v order_n to_o his_o nuncij_fw-la with_o the_o emperor_n king_n of_o france_n and_o spain_n to_o treat_v hereof_o with_o their_o majesty_n and_o do_v now_o intimate_v the_o same_o to_o all_o they_o that_o they_o may_v send_v their_o prince_n word_n of_o it_o for_o although_o he_o can_v both_o resolve_v and_o execute_v of_o himself_o yet_o he_o think_v fit_a to_o do_v it_o with_o their_o knowledge_n that_o they_o may_v put_v he_o in_o mind_n of_o some_o thing_n for_o the_o common_a benefit_n and_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o send_v ambassador_n to_o the_o council_n and_o favour_v it_o by_o treat_v with_o the_o protestant_n he_o add_v that_o he_o do_v believe_v that_o some_o of_o the_o prince_n of_o germany_n will_v go_v thither_o in_o person_n and_o that_o he_o be_v sure_o the_o marquis_n of_o brandeburg_n will_v vargas_n make_v a_o long_a answer_n relate_v what_o have_v be_v do_v in_o former_a counsel_n he_o discourse_v of_o the_o manner_n of_o celebrate_v counsel_n and_o then_o descend_v to_o the_o place_n and_o speak_v of_o what_o be_v do_v in_o trent_n where_o himself_o be_v present_a he_o distinguish_v general_n counsel_n from_o nationall_n much_o condemn_v that_o which_o be_v intimate_v in_o france_n the_o ambassador_n of_o portugal_n commend_v the_o pope_n purpose_n and_o promise_v the_o obedience_n of_o his_o master_n the_o venetian_a say_v that_o in_o time_n past_a never_o any_o better_a remedy_n be_v find_v then_o counsel_n and_o thank_v god_n for_o inspire_v his_o holiness_n to_o do_v so_o pious_a a_o work_n which_o be_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o religion_n and_o benefit_n of_o prince_n who_o can_v not_o hold_v their_o state_n in_o peace_n in_o change_n of_o religion_n the_o florentine_a ambassador_n speak_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n offer_v all_o assistance_n from_o the_o duke_n the_o pope_n write_v to_o his_o nuncio_n in_o germany_n france_n it_o but_o alwye_n utter_v something_o that_o may_v cross_v it_o and_o spain_n in_o
to_o the_o conscience_n of_o every_o one_o to_o avoid_v they_o or_o read_v they_o to_o a_o good_a end_n after_o the_o year_n 800._o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n as_o they_o assume_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o politic_a government_n so_o they_o cause_v the_o book_n who_o author_n they_o do_v condemn_v to_o be_v burn_v and_o forbid_v the_o read_n of_o they_o notwithstanding_o one_o shall_v find_v but_o few_o book_n forbid_v in_o that_o sort_n until_o this_o age_n a_o general_a prohibition_n of_o read_v book_n contain_v doctrine_n of_o heretic_n or_o suspect_v of_o heresy_n upon_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n without_o any_o further_a sentence_n be_v not_o use_v martinus_n 5._o do_v in_o a_o bull_n excommunicate_v all_o the_o sect_n of_o heretic_n especial_o wiglesi_v and_o hussite_n not_o mention_v those_o who_o read_v their_o book_n though_o many_o of_o they_o go_v about_o leo_fw-la the_o ten_o condemn_v luther_n do_v withal_o forbid_v all_o his_o book_n upon_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n the_o pope_n follow_v in_o the_o bull_n call_v in_o oena_fw-la have_v condemn_v and_o excommunicate_v all_o heretic_n do_v excommunicate_v those_o also_o who_o read_v their_o book_n and_o in_o other_o bull_n against_o heretic_n in_o general_a do_v thunder_v the_o same_o censure_n against_o the_o reader_n of_o their_o book_n this_o do_v rather_o breed_v a_o confusion_n for_o the_o heretic_n not_o be_v condemn_v by_o name_n one_o be_v to_o judge_v of_o the_o book_n more_o by_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o doctrine_n then_o by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o author_n wherein_o diverse_a man_n be_v of_o diverse_a opinion_n many_o scruple_n of_o conscience_n do_v arise_v the_o inquisitor_n be_v more_o diligent_a make_v catalogue_n of_o those_o who_o they_o know_v which_o not_o be_v confer_v be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o remove_v the_o difficulty_n philip_n king_n of_o spain_n be_v the_o first_o that_o give_v a_o more_o convenient_a form_n in_o the_o year_n 1558_o make_v a_o law_n that_o the_o catalogue_n of_o book_n prohibit_v by_o inquisition_n shall_v be_v print_v according_a to_o this_o example_n paul_n 4._o also_o ordain_v that_o a_o index_n shall_v be_v compose_v by_o that_o office_n and_o print_v and_o so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o year_n 1559._o in_o which_o they_o do_v proceed_v many_o step_n further_o than_o former_o they_o have_v do_v and_o lay_v foundation_n to_o maintain_v and_o make_v great_a the_o authority_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n by_o deprive_v man_n of_o that_o knowledge_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o defend_v they_o from_o usurpation_n until_o that_o time_n they_o contain_v themselves_o within_o the_o term_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o heretic_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o book_n forbid_v if_o the_o author_n be_v not_o condemn_v this_o index_n be_v divide_v into_o three_o part_n the_o first_o contain_v the_o name_n of_o those_o all_o who_o work_n of_o what_o argument_n soever_o though_o profane_a be_v forbid_v and_o in_o this_o number_n be_v place_v not_o only_o those_o who_o have_v profess_a doctrine_n contrary_a to_o that_o of_o rome_n but_o many_o also_o which_o live_v and_o dye_v in_o the_o profession_n thereof_o the_o second_o contain_v the_o name_n of_o the_o book_n which_o be_v particular_o condemn_v other_o of_o the_o same_o author_n not_o be_v condemn_v in_o the_o three_o some_o book_n be_v condemn_v without_o a_o name_n but_o only_o by_o a_o general_a rule_n that_o all_o those_o be_v forbid_v which_o bear_v not_o the_o name_n of_o the_o author_n write_v after_o the_o year_n 1519_o and_o many_o author_n and_o book_n be_v condemn_v which_o for_o 300._o 200._o and_o 100_o year_n have_v be_v common_o read_v by_o the_o learned_a in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o the_o knowledge_n and_o without_o the_o contradiction_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o those_o time_n and_o among_o the_o modern_n some_o of_o those_o which_o be_v print_v in_o italy_n even_o in_o rome_n with_o approbation_n of_o the_o inquisition_n and_o allow_v also_o by_o the_o brief_n of_o the_o pope_n himself_o be_v forbid_v as_o the_o annotation_n of_o erasmus_n upon_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o leo_n the_o ten_o have_v read_v approve_v by_o his_o brief_n date_v in_o rome_n september_n read_v the_o annotation_n of_o erasmus_n upon_o the_o new_a testament_n read_v &_o approve_v by_o leo_n 10._o be_v forbid_v to_o be_v read_v 10._o 1518._o but_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n considerable_a above_o all_o that_o under_o colour_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n book_n be_v prohibit_v and_o condemn_v with_o the_o same_o severity_n in_o which_o the_o authority_n of_o prince_n and_o temporal_a magistrate_n be_v defend_v from_o they_o surpation_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o of_o counsel_n and_o bishop_n from_o the_o usurpation_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n in_o which_o hypocrisy_n or_o tyranny_n be_v manifest_v by_o which_o the_o people_n under_o pretence_n of_o religion_n be_v deceive_v in_o sum_n a_o better_a mystery_n be_v never_o find_v then_o to_o use_v religion_n to_o make_v man_n insensible_a that_o inquisition_n go_v so_o sarre_o that_o it_o make_v a_o catalogue_n of_o 62._o printer_n and_o prohibit_v all_o book_n print_v by_o they_o of_o what_o author_n art_n or_o idiom_n soever_o with_o a_o addition_n of_o more_o weight_n that_o be_v and_o book_n print_v by_o such_o printer_n who_o have_v print_v book_n of_o heretic_n so_o that_o there_o scarce_o remain_v a_o book_n to_o be_v read_v and_o for_o the_o height_n of_o rigour_n the_o prohibition_n of_o what_o book_n soever_o contain_v in_o that_o catalogue_n be_v upon_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n 〈◊〉_d sententiae_fw-la reserve_v to_o the_o pope_n deprivation_n and_o incapacitie_n of_o office_n and_o benefice_n perpetual_a infamy_n and_o other_o arbitrary_a punishment_n concern_v this_o severity_n remonstrance_n be_v make_v to_o this_o pope_n pius_n who_o refer_v the_o index_n and_o all_o the_o matter_n to_o the_o council_n as_o have_v be_v say_v touch_v the_o article_n propose_v there_o be_v diverse_a opinion_n ludovicus_fw-la becatelli_n archbishop_n of_o ragusi_n and_o friar_n augustin_n seluago_n archbishop_n of_o index_n the_o opinion_n of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o ragusi_n and_o of_o genua_n concern_v the_o index_n genua_n think_v that_o no_o good_a effect_n can_v proceed_v from_o handle_v the_o matter_n of_o book_n in_o counsel_n yea_o that_o it_o will_v rather_o hinder_v the_o conclusion_n of_o that_o for_o which_o the_o council_n be_v principal_o assemble_v for_o paul_n 4._o by_o the_o counsel_n of_o all_o the_o inquisitor_n and_o of_o many_o famous_a man_n who_o send_v he_o advice_n from_o all_o part_n make_v a_o most_o complete_a catalogue_n to_o which_o nothing_o can_v be_v add_v except_o some_o book_n come_v forth_o within_o these_o two_o year_n which_o deserve_v not_o the_o labour_n of_o a_o synod_n but_o he_o that_o will_v allow_v any_o that_o be_v prohibit_v in_o that_o collection_n will_v show_v that_o they_o have_v unaduised_o proceed_v in_o rome_n and_o so_o will_v take_v away_o all_o reputation_n from_o the_o index_n already_o publish_v and_o from_o the_o decree_n itself_o which_o they_o will_v make_v it_o be_v a_o common_a maxim_n that_o new_a law_n do_v remove_v estimation_n more_o from_o themselves_o then_o from_o the_o old_a beside_o say_v becatelli_n there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o book_n the_o world_n have_v too_o many_o already_o especial_o since_o print_v be_v invent_v and_o it_o be_v better_a to_o forbid_v a_o thousand_o book_n without_o cause_n then_o permit_v one_o that_o deserve_v prohibition_n neither_o be_v it_o fit_v the_o synod_n shall_v be_v trouble_v with_o render_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o prohibition_n make_v censure_n or_o approve_v those_o which_o be_v already_o make_v in_o diverse_a place_n by_o the_o catholic_n for_o it_o will_v be_v to_o call_v for_o contradiction_n it_o belong_v to_o a_o doctor_n to_o give_v a_o reason_n of_o his_o say_n a_o lawmaker_n if_o he_o do_v it_o do_v diminish_v his_o authority_n because_o the_o subject_n do_v wrestle_v with_o the_o reason_n allege_v and_o when_o he_o think_v he_o have_v resolve_v it_o he_o think_v also_o that_o he_o have_v take_v all_o virtue_n from_o the_o precept_n neither_o be_v it_o good_a to_o correct_v or_o purge_v any_o book_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n for_o fear_n of_o make_v man_n say_v that_o something_o be_v omit_v that_o deserve_a and_o something_o change_v that_o do_v not_o deserve_v correction_n moreover_o the_o synod_n will_v incur_v the_o displeasure_n of_o all_o that_o be_v affectionate_a to_o the_o book_n prohibit_v and_o will_v induce_v they_o not_o to_o receive_v the_o other_o necessary_a decree_n which_o shall_v be_v make_v he_o conclude_v that_o the_o index_n of_o paul_n be_v sufficient_a he_o think_v it_o not_o fit_a to_o take_v pain_n in_o vain_a in_o do_v of_o that_o anew_o which_o be_v
coccus_n archbishop_n of_o corfu_n make_v the_o oration_n when_o the_o mass_n be_v end_v 〈◊〉_d a_o question_n between_o the_o ambassador_n of_o portugal_n and_o hungary_n about_o the_o precedency_n of_o their_o master_n 〈◊〉_d the_o mandate_n of_o prince_n be_v to_o be_v read_v there_o grow_v a_o question_n between_o the_o ambassador_n of_o hungary_n and_o portugal_n each_o pretend_v that_o his_o shall_v first_o be_v read_v as_o of_o the_o more_o eminent_a king_n there_o be_v no_o difficulty_n in_o the_o precedence_n of_o the_o ambassador_n themselves_o because_o that_o of_o portugal_n as_o a_o secular_a sit_v at_o the_o right_a side_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o the_o other_o as_o a_o ecclesiastike_a at_o the_o left_a the_o legate_n have_v consult_v hereof_o say_v that_o the_o mandate_n shall_v be_v read_v in_o the_o order_n as_o they_o be_v present_v not_o according_a to_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o prince_n the_o pope_n brief_n refer_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o index_n to_o the_o council_n be_v read_v also_o this_o index_n have_v be_v make_v in_o rome_n by_o paul_n the_o four_o as_o have_v be_v say_v with_o which_o if_o the_o council_n have_v meddle_v it_o may_v have_v seem_v to_o challenge_v superiority_n above_o the_o pope_n therefore_o they_o think_v fit_a that_o the_o pope_n shall_v voluntary_o give_v leave_n to_o prevent_v that_o prejudice_n the_o mass_n patriarch_n read_v the_o decree_n the_o substance_n whereof_o be_v that_o the_o synod_n index_n the_o decree_n concern_v the_o index_n mean_v to_o restore_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n to_o its_o purity_n and_o correct_v manner_n in_o regard_n the_o number_n of_o pernicious_a and_o suspect_a book_n be_v increase_v because_o the_o censure_n make_v in_o diverse_a province_n and_o rome_n have_v do_v no_o good_a have_v determine_v to_o depute_v some_o father_n to_o consider_v hereof_o and_o to_o relate_v to_o the_o synod_n in_o time_n convenient_a what_o they_o think_v fit_a to_o have_v do_v more_o to_o separate_v the_o cockle_n from_o the_o good_a corn_n to_o remove_v all_o scruple_n out_o of_o man_n mind_n and_o to_o take_v away_o all_o cause_n of_o complaint_n ordain_v that_o this_o shall_v be_v publish_v with_o that_o decree_n that_o if_o any_o have_v interest_n in_o the_o business_n of_o the_o book_n and_o censure_n or_o any_o other_o to_o be_v handle_v in_o council_n he_o may_v know_v and_o be_v assure_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v courteous_o hear_v and_o because_o the_o synod_n do_v hearty_o desire_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n that_o all_o may_v acknowledge_v their_o common_a mother_n it_o do_v invite_v all_o who_o do_v not_o communicate_v with_o she_o to_o reconciliation_n and_o concord_n and_o to_o come_v to_o trent_n where_o they_o shall_v be_v embrace_v with_o all_o office_n of_o charity_n and_o further_o have_v decree_v that_o a_o safe_a conduct_n may_v be_v grant_v in_o a_o general_a congregation_n and_o shall_v be_v of_o the_o same_o force_n and_o strength_n as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v grant_v in_o public_a session_n the_o decree_n be_v read_v the_o title_n whereof_o be_v of_o the_o holy_a ecumenicall_a general_a question_v the_o title_n of_o the_o council_n be_v question_v synod_n lawful_o assemble_v in_o christ_n the_o archbishop_n of_o granata_n require_v that_o these_o word_n represent_v the_o universal_a church_n shall_v be_v add_v as_o have_v be_v observe_v in_o all_o the_o late_a counsel_n antonius_n perague_n archbishop_n of_o caglieri_n make_v the_o same_o request_n and_o these_o two_o be_v follow_v by_o almost_o all_o the_o spanish_a prelate_n desire_v that_o this_o request_n may_v be_v note_v in_o the_o act_n no_o answer_n be_v make_v but_o for_o conclusion_n the_o next_o session_n be_v appoint_v to_o be_v the_o 14_o of_o may._n the_o decree_n be_v print_v not_o only_o because_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n but_o because_o censure_v the_o decree_n be_v censure_v it_o be_v make_v of_o purpose_n to_o be_v publish_v to_o all_o and_o it_o be_v censure_v by_o all_o sort_n of_o person_n it_o be_v demand_v how_o the_o synod_n do_v call_v those_o who_o be_v interest_v in_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v handle_v in_o the_o council_n if_o they_o be_v not_o know_v and_o say_v that_o former_o all_o thing_n be_v handle_v beside_o expectation_n and_o who_o can_v prophesy_v what_o the_o legate_n will_v propose_v because_o they_o know_v not_o themselves_o still_o expect_v commission_n from_o rome_n those_o who_o be_v interest_v in_o any_o book_n how_o can_v they_o know_v that_o any_o thing_n will_v be_v speak_v against_o it_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o citation_n and_o incertainty_n of_o the_o cause_n may_v induce_v every_o one_o to_o go_v to_o trent_n because_o every_o one_o have_v interest_n in_o some_o particular_a which_o may_v perhaps_o be_v treat_v on_o it_o be_v conclude_v general_o that_o they_o be_v call_v in_o show_n and_o exclude_v indeed_o notwithstanding_o these_o thing_n which_o they_o can_v not_o praise_v they_o commend_v the_o ingenuous_a confession_n of_o the_o synod_n that_o the_o former_a prohibition_n have_v beget_v scruple_n in_o man_n mind_n and_o give_v cause_n of_o complaint_n in_o germany_n that_o part_n be_v suspect_v where_o the_o synod_n give_v authority_n to_o itself_o to_o give_v a_o safe_a conduct_n in_o a_o general_a congregation_n for_o they_o understand_v not_o any_o difference_n in_o regard_n the_o same_o person_n meet_v in_o both_o assembly_n but_o only_o that_o they_o do_v wear_v mitre_n in_o the_o session_n and_o cap_n in_o the_o congregation_n nor_o why_o if_o the_o safe-conduct_n can_v not_o then_o be_v grant_v they_o can_v not_o make_v a_o session_n express_o for_o it_o in_o sum_n they_o think_v that_o there_o be_v some_o great_a mystery_n cover_v in_o it_o howsoever_o the_o most_o understand_a man_n do_v believe_v that_o the_o synod_n be_v assure_v that_o no_o protestant_n will_v come_v to_o trent_n with_o any_o safe-conduct_n whatsoever_o except_o it_o be_v by_o force_n as_o it_o happen_v in_o the_o year_n 1552._o because_o of_o the_o resolution_n of_o charles_n a_o thing_n which_o can_v no_o more_o be_v put_v in_o practice_n the_o pope_n write_v back_o to_o the_o legate_n that_o the_o heretic_n shall_v not_o be_v invite_v to_o repentance_n with_o promise_n of_o pardon_n because_o it_o have_v be_v do_v by_o julius_n and_o another_o time_n by_o paul_n the_o four_o no_o good_a issue_n come_v of_o it_o among_o the_o heretic_n those_o who_o be_v in_o a_o place_n of_o liberty_n will_v not_o accept_v it_o and_o those_o who_o remain_v where_o the_o inquisition_n have_v power_n if_o they_o fear_v to_o be_v discover_v will_v receive_v the_o pardon_n fained_o to_o secure_v themselves_o of_o that_o legate_n the_o pope_n answer_n to_o the_o legate_n which_o be_v past_a with_o purpose_n to_o do_v worse_o more_v wary_o for_o the_o safe_a conduct_n he_o be_v content_v it_o shall_v be_v give_v to_o all_o who_o be_v not_o under_o the_o inquisition_n but_o so_o as_o that_o the_o exception_n shall_v not_o be_v express_v in_o regard_n that_o when_o julius_n grant_v his_o pardon_n except_o only_o to_o those_o who_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o inquisition_n of_o spain_n and_o portugal_n much_o be_v speak_v against_o it_o and_o it_o pass_v with_o small_a reputation_n as_o if_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o the_o same_o power_n over_o that_o inquisition_n as_o over_o other_o but_o for_o the_o manner_n of_o express_v it_o he_o do_v refer_v it_o to_o the_o synod_n for_o the_o form_n he_o commend_v that_o which_o the_o council_n give_v to_o germany_n in_o the_o year_n 1552_o in_o regard_n that_o be_v see_v already_o and_o that_o so_o many_o protestant_n come_v that_o year_n to_o trent_n upon_o that_o security_n concern_v the_o index_n he_o ordain_v that_o the_o deputy_n shall_v proceed_v until_o a_o occasion_n be_v offer_v to_o make_v a_o public_a decree_n without_o the_o opposition_n of_o any_o prince_n the_o answer_n be_v come_v the_o second_o of_o march_n and_o the_o day_n follow_v congregation_n be_v hold_v to_o resolve_v whether_o the_o general_a pardon_n ought_v to_o be_v publish_v and_o a_o safe_a conduct_n grant_v and_o what_o form_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o and_o the_o four_o day_n after_o long_a disputation_n all_o be_v conclude_v the_o legate_n have_v make_v the_o determination_n fall_v where_o they_o aim_v without_o intere_v the_o pope_n authority_n to_o invite_v the_o heretic_n to_o repentance_n be_v omit_v for_o the_o reason_n allege_v in_o rome_n it_o be_v much_o dispute_v whether_o a_o safe_a conduct_n be_v to_o be_v give_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o french_a english_a and_o scottish_a man_n and_o some_o speak_v of_o the_o greek_n and_o other_o nation_n of_o the_o east_n it_o be_v present_o see_v that_o these_o poor_a man_n afflict_v in_o servitude_n
so_o that_o open_a buy_n and_o sell_v be_v easy_o bring_v in_o which_o in_o the_o oriental_a church_n can_v never_o be_v correct_v though_o many_o canon_n and_o censure_n be_v make_v against_o it_o yet_o it_o be_v much_o diminish_v because_o god_n take_v from_o they_o by_o the_o rod_n of_o the_o saracen_n a_o great_a part_n of_o their_o good_n and_o in_o the_o west_n though_o it_o be_v much_o reprehend_v by_o good_a man_n yet_o it_o continue_v in_o some_o place_n more_o in_o some_o less_o until_o about_o the_o year_n 1000_o the_o ordination_n be_v divide_v from_o the_o collation_n of_o the_o benefice_n for_o which_o cause_n that_o do_v begin_v to_o pass_v for_o nothing_o and_o simony_n do_v still_o continue_v in_o this_o and_o that_o more_o open_o than_o before_o and_o this_o abuse_n do_v always_o increase_v though_o under_o diverse_a name_n of_o annates_fw-la small_a service_n write_v seal_n and_o other_o pretence_n which_o the_o church_n still_o use_v with_o small_a hope_n that_o they_o can_v ever_o be_v take_v away_o until_o christ_n come_v again_o with_o his_o whip_n overthrow_v the_o table_n of_o the_o money_n changer_n and_o chase_v they_o out_o of_o the_o temple_n but_o the_o ordination_n which_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o benefice_n have_v the_o fortune_n to_o be_v confer_v free_o do_v enjoy_v it_o but_o a_o small_a time_n for_o the_o bishop_n esteem_v it_o unprofitable_a and_o base_a and_o regard_v more_o the_o other_o which_o yield_v fruit_n leave_v off_o by_o little_a and_o little_a to_o administer_v the_o ordination_n so_o that_o titular_a bishop_n be_v institute_v who_o perform_v the_o pontifical_a ecclesiastical_a ministery_n and_o the_o true_a bishop_n busy_v themselves_o in_o the_o temporal_a only_o those_o have_v no_o revenue_n be_v force_v to_o maintain_v themselves_o by_o the_o administration_n of_o those_o function_n whereupon_o he_o that_o receive_v order_n be_v compel_v to_o contribute_v first_o by_o the_o name_n of_o alm_n or_o offering_n afterward_o to_o make_v it_o more_o honourable_a by_o the_o title_n of_o donative_n or_o present_a and_z proceed_v further_o that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v omit_v as_o be_v a_o duty_n it_o be_v cover_v with_o the_o name_n of_o reward_n not_o of_o the_o ordayner_n but_o of_o his_o servant_n or_o of_o the_o notary_n or_o of_o some_o other_o who_o serve_v he_o in_o the_o ordination_n therefore_o in_o this_o article_n it_o be_v propose_v that_o the_o abuse_n occur_v in_o the_o collation_n of_o benefice_n shall_v not_o be_v speak_v of_o as_o be_v a_o infirmity_n not_o curable_a with_o any_o remedy_n but_o death_n concern_v which_o the_o prelate_n be_v divide_v not_o by_o opinion_n or_o affection_n but_o by_o quality_n of_o person_n the_o rich_a bishop_n condemn_v the_o receive_n of_o any_o thing_n either_o for_o themselves_o or_o their_o officer_n or_o notary_n as_o simonicall_a and_o sacrilegious_a bring_v the_o example_n of_o jehesie_n servant_n of_o the_o prophet_n elizeus_fw-la and_o of_o simon_n magus_n and_o of_o the_o severe_a commandment_n of_o christ_n give_v free_o as_o you_o have_v receive_v they_o allege_v also_o many_o exaggeration_n out_o of_o the_o father_n against_o this_o sin_n say_v that_o the_o name_n of_o a_o voluntary_a donative_n or_o alm_n be_v vain_a colour_n repugnant_a to_o truth_n because_o the_o gift_n be_v bestow_v for_o the_o order_n without_o which_o it_o will_v not_o have_v be_v give_v and_o if_o it_o be_v a_o alm_n why_o be_v it_o give_v upon_o that_o occasion_n only_o let_v it_o be_v make_v at_o another_o time_n and_o order_n confer_v without_o the_o intervention_n of_o any_o thing_n but_o the_o mischief_n be_v that_o if_o one_o shall_v tell_v the_o ordain_a that_o he_o give_v he_o a_o alm_n he_o will_v hold_v it_o for_o a_o injury_n nor_o will_v receive_v it_o at_o another_o time_n therefore_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o believe_v that_o they_o can_v deceive_v god_n and_o the_o world_n they_o conclude_v that_o a_o absolute_a decree_n ought_v to_o be_v make_v that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v give_v though_o willing_o or_o under_o the_o name_n of_o alm_n nor_o receive_v not_o only_o by_o the_o ordainer_n but_o also_o by_o any_o of_o he_o or_o by_o the_o notary_n under_o the_o name_n of_o writing_n seal_n pain_n or_o any_o other_o pretence_n whatsoever_o but_o the_o poor_a bishop_n and_o the_o titular_a say_v to_o the_o contrary_a that_o as_o to_o give_v order_n for_o a_o price_n be_v a_o wicked_a sacrilege_n so_o to_o take_v away_o alm_n so_o much_o commend_v by_o christ_n do_v destroy_v charity_n and_o whole_o deform_v the_o church_n that_o there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n absolute_o for_o ordination_n which_o be_v for_o confession_n communion_n mass_n burial_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a function_n and_o therefore_o no_o cause_n why_o that_o shall_v be_v forbid_v in_o ordination_n which_o be_v allow_v in_o all_o these_o and_o the_o allegation_n that_o if_o it_o be_v a_o alm_n let_v it_o be_v give_v at_o another_o time_n be_v of_o as_o much_o force_n in_o all_o the_o other_o function_n the_o church_n have_v use_v from_o the_o beginning_n to_o receive_v oblation_n and_o alm_n upon_o these_o occasion_n which_o if_o they_o shall_v be_v take_v away_o the_o poor_a religious_a person_n who_o live_v of_o they_o will_v be_v force_v to_o take_v some_o other_o course_n the_o rich_a will_v not_o perform_v the_o office_n as_o do_v and_o for_o the_o space_n of_o five_o hundred_o year_n have_v plain_o appear_v so_o that_o the_o exercise_n of_o religion_n will_v be_v lose_v and_o the_o people_n remain_v without_o it_o will_v fall_v into_o impiety_n and_o diverse_a pernicious_a superstition_n and_o if_o thousand_o of_o crown_n be_v give_v without_o reprehension_n for_o the_o vestment_n which_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n give_v to_o the_o metropolitan_o how_o can_v a_o small_a acknowledgement_n be_v reprehend_v which_o the_o bishop_n receive_v from_o the_o inferior_a order_n what_o reason_n be_v there_o that_o thing_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n shall_v be_v order_v by_o contrary_a law_n that_o can_v be_v call_v a_o abuse_n which_o be_v institute_v in_o the_o beginning_n and_o it_o remain_v still_o in_o the_o pontifical_a that_o wax_v candle_n be_v present_v by_o those_o that_o be_v ordain_v to_o the_o bishop_n ordain_v at_o the_o offering_n place_n in_o time_n of_o the_o ordination_n which_o be_v temporal_a thing_n and_o if_o they_o be_v great_a and_o well_o adorn_v may_v cost_v much_o it_o be_v not_o therefore_o so_o bad_a as_o it_o be_v paint_v out_o neither_o can_v the_o opposite_n game_n by_o the_o infamy_n of_o poor_a bishop_n the_o name_n of_o reformer_n imitate_v the_o pharisee_n in_o observe_v moth_n and_o strain_v at_o gnat_n some_o say_v also_o that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v constitute_v as_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o innocentius_n the_o three_o in_o the_o general_a council_n where_o the_o use_n of_o give_v and_o receive_v a_o temporal_a thing_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o only_o approve_v but_o the_o bishop_n be_v command_v to_o compel_v the_o people_n by_o censure_n and_o ecclesiastical_a punishment_n to_o observe_v the_o custom_n give_v the_o title_n of_o laudable_a to_o those_o thing_n which_o now_o some_o go_v about_o to_o condemn_v as_o sacrilegious_a but_o dinisius_fw-la bishop_n of_o milopotamus_n make_v a_o long_a digression_n to_o show_v how_o the_o faithful_a will_v be_v edify_v if_o the_o sacrament_n be_v administer_v by_o the_o clergy_n for_o pure_a charity_n expect_v no_o reward_n but_o from_o god_n only_o he_o affirm_v that_o necessary_n be_v to_o be_v allow_v they_o and_o great_a provision_n also_o but_o that_o this_o be_v sufficient_o and_o superaboundant_o do_v by_o the_o assignation_n of_o tithe_n because_o they_o not_o be_v the_o ten_o part_n of_o the_o people_n do_v receive_v so_o great_a a_o portion_n beside_o other_o possession_n which_o be_v double_a as_o much_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o just_a to_o demand_v that_o which_o be_v already_o receive_v a_o hundred_o fold_n and_o if_o the_o bishop_n be_v poor_a it_o be_v not_o because_o the_o church_n be_v poor_a but_o because_o the_o riches_n be_v ill_o divide_v with_o a_o even_a distribution_n every_o one_o may_v be_v fit_v and_o that_o may_v be_v give_v without_o counter_a change_n for_o which_o more_o than_o the_o just_a price_n have_v be_v already_o receive_v he_o add_v that_o if_o this_o multitude_n of_o abuse_n can_v not_o be_v take_v away_o altogether_o it_o will_v be_v good_a to_o begin_v with_o that_o of_o ordination_n not_o restrain_v it_o to_o the_o only_a action_n of_o confer_v the_o sacrament_n but_o extend_v it_o also_o to_o the_o precedent_n for_o it_o will_v be_v a_o great_a absurdity_n that_o one_o shall_v pay_v too_o dear_a in_o the_o chancery_n of_o bishopricke_n for_o
dimisorie_a letter_n by_o which_o the_o clerk_n have_v leave_v to_o find_v out_o one_o that_o will_v ordain_v he_o and_o in_o rome_n to_o be_v ordain_v out_o of_o the_o time_n appoint_v and_o lay_v the_o reformation_n only_o upon_o the_o bishop_n that_o do_v ordain_v this_o opinion_n be_v approve_v by_o many_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o dimisory_n of_o bishop_n but_o concern_v the_o faculty_n give_v at_o rome_n the_o cardinal_n simoneta_n say_v that_o the_o pope_n will_v provide_v for_o it_o and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o thing_n to_o be_v handle_v in_o council_n concern_v the_o reward_n of_o notary_n some_o thing_n be_v say_v for_o some_o esteem_v it_o a_o office_n pure_o secular_a think_v that_o their_o pay_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v stop_v other_o hold_v it_o for_o a_o ecclesiastical_a office_n antonius_n augustinus_n bishop_n of_o lerida_n a_o antiquary_n say_v that_o in_o the_o ancient_a church_n the_o minister_n be_v ordain_v in_o presence_n of_o all_o the_o people_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o letter_n patent_n or_o testimonial_a and_o after_o they_o have_v gain_v a_o title_n they_o do_v not_o change_v diocese_n and_o if_o for_o any_o cause_n they_o do_v make_v a_o journey_n they_o have_v a_o letter_n from_o the_o bishop_n then_o call_v formata_fw-la the_o use_n of_o letter_n testimonial_a begin_v after_o that_o the_o people_n leave_v to_o be_v present_a at_o the_o ordination_n and_o the_o clerk_n begin_v to_o be_v vagabond_n and_o be_v introduce_v in_o supplement_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o people_n be_v to_o be_v esteem_v a_o temporal_a office_n but_o because_o it_o be_v apply_v to_o a_o spiritual_a matter_n it_o be_v to_o be_v use_v with_o moderation_n therefore_o his_o opinion_n be_v that_o some_o reward_n shall_v be_v allow_v for_o they_o but_o moderate_v and_o limit_v that_o which_o be_v propose_v in_o the_o four_o point_n belong_v only_o to_o the_o distribution_n concern_v distribution_n collegiate_n church_n which_o have_v by_o their_o institution_n this_o function_n among_o other_o to_o assemble_v themselves_o in_o the_o church_n to_o praise_n god_n at_o the_o hour_n appoint_v by_o the_o canon_n which_o therefore_o be_v call_v canonical_a rent_n be_v annex_v to_o they_o for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o canon_n distribute_v among_o they_o in_o one_o of_o these_o four_o manner_n for_o either_o they_o live_v at_o a_o common_a table_n and_o charge_n as_o the_o regulars_n or_o every_o one_o have_v his_o portion_n of_o rent_n assign_v to_o he_o which_o therefore_o be_v call_v a_o prebend_n or_o the_o service_n be_v end_v all_o be_v distribute_v among_o they_o either_o in_o meat_n or_o money_n those_o that_o live_v in_o common_a continue_v in_o that_o discipline_n but_o a_o small_a time_n but_o come_v to_o division_n either_o into_o prebend_n or_o distribution_n to_o the_o prebendary_n excuse_v those_o from_o perform_v those_o divine_a office_n who_o by_o reason_n of_o infirmity_n or_o some_o spiritual_a business_n can_v not_o be_v present_a it_o be_v a_o eafie_a thing_n to_o find_v a_o pretence_n and_o begin_v a_o use_n of_o be_v seldom_o in_o the_o church_n and_o to_o enjoy_v the_o prebend_n notwithstanding_o but_o he_o unto_o who_o the_o measure_n be_v distribute_v after_o the_o work_n be_v do_v can_v not_o be_v excuse_v so_o that_o discipline_n and_o frequency_n in_o the_o office_n remain_v long_o in_o this_o second_o kind_n then_o in_o the_o first_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o faithful_a when_o they_o give_v or_o bequeath_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o church_n ordain_v it_o shall_v be_v put_v in_o distribution_n and_o experience_n show_v that_o the_o great_a the_o distribution_n be_v the_o better_a the_o office_n be_v perform_v and_o that_o the_o negligence_n of_o those_o who_o do_v not_o assist_v in_o the_o office_n may_v be_v redress_v by_o take_v part_n of_o the_o prebend_n and_o make_v distribution_n thereof_o this_o be_v much_o commend_v by_o many_o of_o the_o prelate_n think_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n will_v be_v much_o enlarge_v hereby_o whereof_o there_o can_v no_o doubt_n be_v make_v because_o it_o do_v appear_v already_o by_o experience_n and_o this_o be_v all_o which_o be_v speak_v for_o a_o ground_n of_o this_o opinion_n but_o lucas_n bisantius_fw-la bishop_n of_o cataro_n a_o godly_a man_n but_o poor_a speak_v to_o the_o contrary_a that_o rather_o the_o prebendary_n shall_v be_v force_v by_o censure_n and_o deprivation_n of_o part_n or_o of_o all_o the_o fruit_n and_o of_o the_o prebend_n themselves_o but_o that_o the_o first_o form_n shall_v not_o be_v alter_v for_o almost_o all_o these_o institution_n be_v make_v by_o the_o last_o will_n of_o the_o faithful_a they_o ought_v to_o be_v observe_v inviolable_o and_o without_o alteration_n not_o only_o upon_o pretence_n of_o better_a but_o not_o for_o that_o which_o be_v true_o and_o certain_o better_a in_o regard_n it_o be_v not_o just_a to_o meddle_v with_o that_o which_o belong_v to_o another_o because_o he_o do_v not_o use_v it_o well_o but_o which_o be_v of_o more_o importance_n to_o exercise_v a_o spiritual_a function_n for_o reward_n be_v undoubted_a simony_n so_o that_o by_o drive_v out_o one_o evil_a another_o will_v enter_v far_o worse_o make_v negligent_a man_n to_o become_v simoniacal_a the_o other_o part_n answer_v that_o the_o council_n have_v power_n to_o change_v last_o will_n and_o for_o assist_v at_o divine_a office_n for_o gain_n one_o must_v distinguish_v that_o the_o gain_n be_v not_o the_o principal_a but_o the_o secondary_a cause_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o sin_n in_o it_o for_o the_o canon_n will_v go_v to_o church_n principal_o to_o serve_v god_n and_o secondary_o for_o the_o distribution_n the_o other_o reply_v that_o they_o see_v not_o how_o the_o council_n have_v great_a power_n over_o the_o good_n of_o the_o dead_a then_o of_o the_o live_n which_o no_o man_n be_v so_o impertinent_a as_o to_o pretend_v and_o beside_o the_o doctrine_n be_v not_o so_o secure_a as_o it_o be_v affirm_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o serve_v god_n for_o gain_v secondary_o and_o if_o it_o be_v it_o be_v not_o a_o secondary_a but_o a_o principal_a cause_n which_o first_o move_v and_o without_o which_o the_o work_n will_v not_o be_v do_v this_o opinion_n be_v not_o please_v and_o raise_v much_o murmur_a in_o the_o congregation_n for_o every_o one_o be_v conscious_a to_o himself_o that_o he_o receive_v the_o title_n and_o charge_n only_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o rent_n do_v think_v he_o be_v condemn_v therefore_o the_o article_n have_v great_a applause_n that_o the_o prebend_n shall_v be_v turn_v into_o distribution_n to_o incite_v man_n to_o serve_v god_n in_o the_o best_a manner_n they_o can_v these_o article_n have_v be_v thus_o discuss_v father_n be_v depute_v to_o make_v decree_n father_n be_v depute_v to_o frame_v the_o decree_n the_o decree_n and_o it_o be_v propose_v that_o in_o the_o next_o congregation_n they_o shall_v speak_v of_o six_o more_o leave_v that_o of_o secret_a marriage_n for_o another_o session_n the_o next_o day_n the_o legate_n and_o deputy_n meet_v to_o collect_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o father_n and_o concern_v the_o first_o article_n of_o residency_n they_o dissent_v among_o themselves_o simoneta_n favour_v the_o opinion_n residence_n the_o legate_n dissent_v in_o opinion_n concern_v residence_n that_o it_o be_v de_fw-la jure_fw-la positivo_fw-la and_o say_v that_o the_o great_a part_n even_o those_o who_o hold_v it_o be_v de_fw-la jure_fw-la divino_fw-la think_v fit_v that_o the_o question_n shall_v be_v omit_v mantua_n without_o manifest_v his_o own_o opinion_n say_v that_o the_o great_a number_n do_v demand_v a_o declaration_n of_o it_o of_o the_o other_o legate_n altemps_n follow_v simoneta_n and_o the_o other_o two_o though_o with_o some_o caution_n adhere_v to_o mantua_n and_o this_o difference_n do_v not_o paste_n without_o some_o bitterness_n though_o modest_o express_v for_o this_o cause_n the_o legate_n hold_v a_o general_a congregation_n the_o 20._o day_n in_o which_o the_o demand_n follow_v be_v read_v out_o of_o a_o paper_n that_o be_v because_o many_o father_n have_v say_v that_o residence_n be_v de_fw-fr jure_fw-la divino_fw-la some_o have_v say_v nothing_o and_o other_o speak_v against_o the_o make_n of_o the_o declaration_n to_o the_o end_n that_o those_o who_o be_v depute_v to_o make_v the_o decree_n may_v make_v they_o quick_o easy_o and_o secure_o your_o lordship_n may_v be_v please_v to_o deliver_v your_o opinion_n only_o with_o the_o word_n placet_fw-la whether_o you_o approve_v or_o disproove_v the_o declaration_n that_o residency_n be_v de_fw-fr jure_fw-la divino_fw-la because_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o this_o holy_a synod_n the_o decree_n shall_v be_v make_v as_o the_o great_a number_n shall_v give_v their_o voice_n which_o because_o they_o
and_o be_v not_o present_a at_o the_o discussion_n of_o the_o matter_n say_v that_o he_o hold_v that_o point_n to_o be_v very_o imperfect_a if_o they_o do_v not_o constitute_v withal_o that_o likewise_o nothing_o rome_n the_o bishop_n of_o veglia_n make_v a_o resolute_a speech_n concern_v some_o corruption_n in_o rome_n shall_v be_v exact_v at_o rome_n for_o dispensation_n to_o receive_v order_n out_o of_o due_a time_n before_o the_o just_a age_n without_o licence_n and_o examination_n of_o the_o ordinary_a and_o for_o irregularity_n and_o other_o canonical_a impediment_n for_o in_o those_o thing_n great_a expense_n be_v make_v whereas_o to_o the_o poor_a bishop_n who_o have_v not_o whereon_o to_o live_v a_o small_a alm_n be_v give_v which_o he_o will_v by_o all_o mean_n have_v take_v away_o yet_o so_o as_o that_o they_o give_v not_o a_o scandal_n to_o the_o world_n to_o tithe_v rue_v and_o steal_v gold_n and_o silver_n upon_o this_o occasion_n he_o enlarge_v himself_o and_o tax_v the_o payment_n make_v in_o rome_n for_o all_o sort_n of_o dispensation_n and_o add_v that_o whensoever_o any_o dispensation_n have_v be_v present_v to_o he_o either_o for_o ordination_n or_o aught_o else_o he_o have_v use_v to_o ask_v whether_o they_o have_v pay_v for_o they_o and_z understand_v that_o they_o have_v he_o have_v never_o execute_v nor_o admit_v they_o which_o he_o speak_v public_o because_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o every_o bishop_n so_o to_o do_v and_o be_v answer_v that_o they_o have_v former_o treat_v of_o this_o in_o congregation_n and_o resolve_v to_o refer_v the_o resolution_n thereof_o to_o the_o pope_n who_o may_v with_o more_o honour_n reform_v the_o office_n of_o rome_n he_o reply_v that_o the_o last_o lent_n he_o have_v speak_v of_o it_o in_o rome_n but_o particular_o in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o cardinal_n di_fw-mi perugia_n in_o presence_n of_o many_o cardinal_n and_o prelate_n of_o the_o court_n and_o say_v the_o same_o thing_n who_o answer_v they_o be_v matter_n to_o be_v propose_v in_o the_o council_n but_o now_o understand_v the_o contrary_a he_o will_v speak_v of_o it_o no_o more_o but_o leave_v it_o to_o god_n to_o the_o second_o of_o the_o ordination_n to_o title_n the_o bishop_n of_o five_o church_n say_v it_o be_v more_o necessary_a to_o provide_v according_a to_o the_o ancient_a constitution_n that_o none_o shall_v be_v ordain_v without_o a_o title_n and_o office_n then_o without_o a_o revenue_n because_o it_o be_v a_o excessive_a scandal_n that_o many_o be_v see_v to_o be_v make_v priest_n not_o to_o serve_v god_n and_o the_o church_n but_o to_o enjoy_v their_o ease_n join_v with_o much_o luxury_n and_o with_o a_o good_a revenue_n that_o the_o synod_n ought_v to_o think_v serious_o hereof_o and_o to_o find_v a_o mean_n that_o there_o may_v not_o be_v a_o ecclesiastical_a person_n who_o shall_v not_o be_v dedicate_v to_o some_o ministry_n because_o he_o have_v observe_v that_o in_o rome_n in_o these_o late_a time_n bishopriques_n have_v be_v give_v to_o some_o only_o to_o promore_o they_o who_o within_o a_o short_a time_n have_v resign_v they_o remain_v titular_a bishop_n only_o for_o ambition_n of_o dignity_n which_o invention_n antiquity_n will_v have_v detest_v as_o pestiferous_a to_o the_o four_o point_n for_o division_n of_o great_a and_o frequent_a parish_n after_o he_o have_v commend_v the_o decree_n he_o add_v that_o it_o be_v more_o necessary_a to_o divide_v great_a bishopriques_n that_o they_o may_v be_v better_o govern_v allege_v that_o in_o hungary_n there_o be_v some_o which_o contain_v 200_o mile_n in_o length_n which_o can_v be_v visit_v and_o direct_v by_o one_o man_n these_o thing_n be_v not_o well_o expound_v by_o the_o adherent_n of_o rome_n who_o think_v that_o all_o be_v bend_v to_o revive_v the_o treaty_n of_o residence_n the_o bishop_n of_o sidonia_n a_o man_n of_o the_o same_o country_n give_v worse_a satisfaction_n pope_n the_o bishop_n of_o sidonia_n propose_v metaphorical_o a_o reformation_n of_o the_o pope_n propose_v under_o metaphor_n the_o reformation_n of_o the_o pope_n himself_o say_v that_o darkness_n can_v not_o be_v take_v from_o the_o star_n except_o it_o be_v remoove_v from_o the_o sun_n nor_o the_o sick_a body_n heal_v so_o long_o as_o bad_a disposition_n do_v remain_v in_o the_o head_n which_o do_v disperse_v they_o to_o all_o the_o member_n and_o for_o the_o last_o point_n concern_v receiver_n he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o honourable_a for_o the_o council_n nor_o profitable_a for_o the_o church_n to_o begin_v with_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o small_a matter_n that_o the_o matter_n of_o importance_n be_v first_o to_o be_v handle_v the_o superior_a order_n to_o be_v reform_v first_o and_o the_o inferior_a afterward_o which_o saying_n seem_v to_o please_v many_o of_o the_o spanish_a prelate_n and_o some_o of_o the_o italian_n also_o but_o partly_o by_o say_v that_o those_o decree_n be_v already_o compose_v and_o that_o there_o be_v but_o three_o day_n to_o the_o session_n which_o short_a time_n do_v not_o comport_v the_o digestion_n of_o new_a matter_n partly_o by_o make_v such_o opposition_n against_o the_o thing_n speak_v as_o they_o be_v able_a and_o by_o give_v assurance_n that_o the_o pope_n will_v make_v a_o most_o strict_a reformation_n in_o the_o court_n the_o remedy_n of_o the_o abuse_n whereof_o can_v be_v better_o discern_v and_o apply_v at_o rome_n where_o the_o infirmity_n be_v better_a know_v then_o in_o the_o council_n and_o by_o such_o like_a reason_n the_o provision_n think_v on_o these_o and_o other_o prelate_n be_v delude_v and_o all_o be_v make_v content_a for_o that_o present_a with_o the_o nine_o article_n but_o the_o congregation_n be_v end_v the_o legate_n and_o other_o papalin_n remain_v prelate_n the_o lgat_n &_o other_o papalin_n do_v consult_v how_o they_o may_v repress_v the_o licence_n of_o the_o prelate_n in_o the_o place_n together_o to_o consider_v of_o what_o they_o hear_v discourse_v that_o the_o boldness_n of_o the_o prelate_n in_o broach_v new_a seditious_a matter_n without_o respect_n do_v increase_v daily_o which_o can_v not_o be_v call_v liberty_n but_o too_o much_o licence_n and_o that_o the_o divine_n with_o tedious_a discourse_n take_v up_o too_o much_o time_n contend_v among_o themselves_o about_o nothing_o and_o often_o pass_v to_o impertinence_n which_o course_n if_o it_o do_v continue_v the_o council_n will_v never_o be_v conclude_v beside_o there_o be_v danger_n that_o the_o disorder_n will_v increase_v varmia_n in_o which_o consultation_n crescentius_n be_v reprehend_v by_o the_o cardinal_n of_o varmia_n and_o produce_v some_o sinister_a effect_n john_n baptista_n castedo_n the_o speaker_n who_o have_v exercise_v the_o same_o office_n in_o the_o former_a reduction_n under_o julius_n tell_v they_o that_o cardinal_n crescentius_n when_o they_o digress_v from_o the_o matter_n propose_v without_o respect_n be_v wont_a to_o interrupt_v they_o and_o to_o cut_v off_o also_o the_o file_n of_o their_o discourse_n to_o abreviate_v those_o who_o be_v too_o profixe_v and_o sometime_o to_o impose_v they_o silence_n which_o be_v now_o do_v once_o or_o twice_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o council_n will_v be_v shorten_v and_o occasion_n of_o impertinent_a discourse_n will_v be_v take_v away_o varmiense_n be_v not_o please_v with_o this_o who_o say_v that_o if_o crescentius_n do_v govern_v so_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n that_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n have_v not_o give_v a_o good_a progress_n to_o that_o council_n that_o nothing_o be_v more_o necessary_a to_o a_o christian_a synod_n then_o liberty_n and_o that_o read_v the_o counsel_n of_o the_o better_a time_n one_o shall_v find_v contention_n and_o discord_n in_o the_o beginning_n of_o they_o even_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o emperor_n most_o potent_a in_o those_o time_n which_o notwithstanding_o do_v in_o the_o end_n turn_v by_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n into_o a_o marvelous_a concord_n and_o that_o be_v the_o miracle_n which_o do_v pacify_v the_o world_n he_o say_v there_o be_v infinite_a contention_n in_o the_o nicene_n council_n and_o most_o exorbitant_a in_o the_o ephesine_n and_o therefore_o no_o wonder_n if_o now_o there_o be_v some_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n civil_o carry_v which_o he_o that_o will_v resist_v by_o humane_a and_o violent_a mean_n will_v let_v the_o world_n know_v that_o the_o council_n be_v not_o free_a and_o take_v from_o it_o all_o reputation_n that_o it_o be_v good_a to_o refer_v the_o cause_n unto_o god_n who_o will_v govern_v counsel_n and_o moderate_v those_o who_o be_v assemble_v in_o his_o name_n the_o cardinal_n of_o mantua_n approve_v the_o opinion_n of_o varmiense_n and_o dislike_v the_o proceed_n of_o crescentius_n but_o say_v it_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o council_n to_o moderate_a abuse_n with_o decree_n
their_o desire_n to_o hold_v the_o session_n teach_v they_o patience_n they_o sit_v down_o again_o with_o the_o distaste_n of_o many_o prelate_n especial_o the_o courtier_n the_o bishop_n cause_v the_o point_n of_o the_o distribution_n to_o be_v read_v say_v that_o it_o seem_v to_o he_o a_o hard_a thing_n that_o power_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o the_o bishop_n to_o take_v the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o prebend_n and_o convert_v they_o into_o distribution_n that_o former_o all_o be_v distribution_n and_o that_o prebend_v creep_v in_o by_o abuse_n that_o bishop_n have_v authority_n to_o infringe_v bad_a custom_n that_o it_o be_v not_o just_a that_o the_o council_n by_o give_v the_o bishop_n a_o three_o part_n of_o the_o authority_n which_o he_o have_v shall_v take_v two_o three_o from_o he_o therefore_o he_o desire_v it_o shall_v be_v declare_v that_o the_o bishop_n have_v ample_a power_n to_o convert_v into_o distribution_n as_o much_o as_o they_o think_v convement_n the_o archbishop_n of_o prague_n confirm_v this_o opinion_n with_o other_o reason_n and_o the_o spaniard_n seem_v by_o their_o countenance_n to_o give_v consent_n the_o cardinal_n of_o distribution_n who_o make_v a_o speech_n unto_o they_o concern_v distribution_n mantua_n have_v much_o commend_v the_o piety_n of_o those_o bishop_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v a_o point_n worthy_a to_o be_v consult_v on_o by_o the_o synod_n and_o promise_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o legate_n who_o consent_n he_o first_o have_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v speak_v of_o in_o the_o next_o session_n the_o sixteenth_o day_n be_v come_v the_o legate_n ambassador_n and_o prelate_n go_v to_o the_o church_n with_o the_o usual_a ceremony_n the_o sermon_n be_v make_v by_o residence_n a_o session_n be_v hold_v the_o bish_n of_o tiniana_n preach_v the_o matter_n of_o who_o sermon_n be_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n and_o residence_n the_o bishop_n of_o tiniana_n who_o howsoever_o he_o be_v resolve_v not_o to_o speak_v then_o of_o grant_v the_o chalice_n do_v not_o forbear_v to_o take_v that_o matter_n only_o for_o his_o subject_n and_o to_o discourse_v that_o the_o use_n of_o the_o chalice_n be_v common_a so_o long_o as_o the_o hear_v of_o charity_n do_v endure_v but_o that_o decrease_v and_o inconvenience_n succeed_v by_o the_o negligence_n of_o some_o the_o use_n thereof_o be_v not_o interdict_v but_o only_o it_o be_v teach_v that_o those_o who_o can_v hardly_o avoid_v irreverence_n shall_v less_o offend_v if_o they_o do_v abstain_v from_o it_o who_o example_n in_o progress_n of_o time_n other_o do_v follow_v that_o they_o may_v not_o tie_v themselves_o to_o diligence_n in_o the_o first_o he_o commend_v the_o memorable_a example_n of_o piety_n and_o blame_v the_o impiety_n of_o the_o modern_a innovator_n who_o to_o have_v it_o have_v kindle_v so_o great_a a_o fire_n he_o exhort_v the_o pather_n to_o charity_n and_o to_o extinguish_v the_o flame_n and_o not_o to_o suffer_v all_o the_o world_n to_o burn_v by_o their_o default_n to_o condescend_v to_o the_o imbecility_n of_o their_o child_n who_o demand_v nothing_o but_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n he_o admonish_v they_o not_o to_o cast_v away_o so_o many_o province_n and_o kingdom_n to_o spare_v so_o small_a a_o matter_n that_o see_v that_o bless_a blood_n be_v seek_v with_o so_o earnest_a a_o desire_n they_o will_v not_o fear_v the_o former_a negligence_n for_o which_o it_o be_v omit_v but_o grant_v it_o that_o christ_n will_v not_o have_v they_o so_o obstinate_a in_o their_o own_o opinion_n as_o to_o maintain_v so_o pernicious_a a_o discord_n among_o christian_n for_o that_o blood_n which_o himself_o shed_v to_o unite_v they_o in_o a_o most_o strict_a bond_n of_o charity_n he_o pass_v dexterous_o from_o that_o matter_n to_o a_o exhortation_n to_o residence_n and_o conclude_v with_o the_o distaste_n of_o the_o other_o who_o desire_v to_o have_v those_o matter_n bury_v in_o silence_n when_o the_o ceremony_n be_v end_v the_o masse-bishop_n read_v the_o doctrine_n head_n the_o doctrine_n be_v read_v contain_v in_o four_o head_n express_v in_o four_o head_n contain_v in_o substance_n that_o the_o synod_n in_o regard_n of_o many_o error_n which_o go_v about_o concern_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n have_v determine_v to_o expound_v that_o which_o belong_v to_o the_o communion_n subvtraque_fw-la and_o of_o child_n prohibit_v all_o the_o faithful_a to_o believe_v teach_v or_o preach_v otherwise_o therefore_o according_a to_o the_o judgement_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n it_o do_v declare_v that_o the_o laicke_n and_o clerk_n who_o do_v not_o say_v mass_n be_v not_o bind_v by_o any_o divine_a precept_n to_o communicate_v sub_fw-la utraque_fw-la and_o that_o it_o can_v be_v doubt_v without_o prejudice_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n be_v sufficient_a that_o howsoever_o christ_n have_v institute_v and_o give_v the_o sacrament_n under_o two_o kind_n it_o can_v be_v infer_v from_o hence_o that_o all_o be_v oblige_v to_o receive_v it_o so_o nor_o from_o the_o speech_n of_o our_o lord_n relate_v in_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n of_o saint_n john_n where_o although_o there_o be_v word_n which_o name_n both_o kind_n yet_o there_o be_v also_o which_o name_n that_o only_o of_o bread_n beside_o it_o do_v declare_v that_o the_o church_n have_v ever_o have_v power_n to_o make_v a_o mutation_n in_o the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n so_o long_o as_o the_o substance_n remain_v which_o may_v be_v draw_v in_o general_a from_o the_o word_n of_o saint_n paul_n that_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n be_v dispenser_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n and_o particular_o in_o the_o eucharist_n concern_v which_o power_n be_v reserve_v to_o it_o to_o give_v order_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n that_o the_o church_n know_v this_o her_o authority_n howsoever_o the_o use_n of_o both_o kind_n be_v frequent_a from_o the_o beginning_n yet_o the_o custom_n be_v change_v for_o just_a cause_n have_v approve_v that_o other_o to_o communicate_v with_o one_o only_a which_o no_o man_n can_v change_v without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o church_n it_o do_v declare_v beside_o that_o all_o christ_n be_v receive_v under_o either_o of_o the_o kind_n and_o the_o true_a sacrament_n and_o that_o he_o who_o receive_v one_o only_a be_v not_o defraud_v of_o any_o grace_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n as_o concern_v the_o fruit_n thereof_o final_o it_o do_v teach_v that_o child_n before_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o sacramental_a communion_n because_o grace_n can_v be_v lose_v in_o that_o age_n not_o condemn_v antiquity_n for_o the_o contrary_a custom_n observe_v in_o some_o place_n because_o it_o be_v to_o be_v undoubted_o believe_v that_o they_o have_v do_v it_o not_o for_o necessity_n of_o salvation_n but_o for_o other_o probable_a cause_n in_o conformity_n of_o this_o doctrine_n four_o anathematism_n be_v read_v 1._o against_o he_o that_o shall_v say_v read_v four_o anathematism_n be_v read_v that_o all_o the_o faithful_a be_v bind_v by_o divine_a precept_n or_o necessity_n of_o salvation_n to_o receive_v both_o the_o kind_n in_o the_o eucharist_n 2_o that_o the_o church_n have_v not_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o communicate_v the_o laicke_n and_o the_o clerk_n who_o do_v not_o celebrate_v the_o mass_n with_o the_o kind_n of_o bread_n only_o or_o that_o it_o have_v err_v herein_o 3._o against_o he_o that_o shall_v deny_v that_o all_o christ_n the_o fountain_n and_o author_n of_o all_o grace_n be_v receive_v under_o the_o bread_n only_o 4._o against_o he_o that_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v necessary_a for_o child_n before_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n after_o this_o another_o decree_n be_v read_v also_o say_v that_o the_o synod_n will_v examine_v with_o the_o first_o occasion_n and_o define_v two_o other_o article_n not_o discuss_v as_o yet_o that_o be_v whether_o the_o reason_n for_o which_o the_o church_n have_v communicate_v under_o one_o kind_n be_v good_a still_o so_o that_o the_o cup_n ought_v not_o to_o hereafter_o a_o decree_n be_v read_v concern_v two_o point_n to_o be_v handle_v hereafter_o be_v grant_v to_o any_o and_o in_o case_n it_o do_v appear_v that_o it_o may_v be_v grant_v for_o honest_a cause_n with_o what_o condition_n the_o grant_n be_v to_o be_v make_v during_o the_o time_n of_o the_o mass_n alfonsus_n salmeron_n and_o franciscus_n della_fw-it torre_n jesuite_n discourse_v the_o one_o with_o varmiense_n and_o the_o other_o with_o madruccio_n as_o they_o stand_v behind_o their_o seat_n that_o in_o the_o first_o point_n of_o doctrine_n the_o matter_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n under_o both_o kind_n be_v obscure_o express_v and_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o speak_v plain_o and_o say_v that_o christ_n do_v institute_v it_o for_o his_o apostle_n and_o
to_o put_v in_o order_n those_o thing_n simoneta_n a_o reconciliation_n be_v make_v between_o the_o cardinal_n of_o mantua_n and_o simoneta_n which_o be_v to_o be_v handle_v in_o the_o next_o purpose_v to_o anticipate_v the_o time_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a letter_n come_v to_o trent_n from_o alexander_n simoneta_n to_o the_o cardinal_n his_o brother_n and_o from_o cardinal_n gonzaga_n to_o his_o uncle_n with_o most_o effectual_a exhortation_n in_o the_o pope_n name_n to_o accommodate_v the_o difference_n and_o to_o hold_v good_a intelligence_n together_o for_o which_o cause_n the_o sunday_n after_o the_o session_n simoneta_n dine_v with_o the_o cardinal_n of_o mantua_n and_o make_v a_o perfect_a reconciliation_n with_o he_o mantua_n begin_v to_o discourse_v of_o some_o prelate_n who_o come_v much_o to_o his_o house_n who_o he_o suspect_v to_o have_v do_v ill_a office_n against_o he_o but_o simoneta_n do_v stop_v he_o modest_o and_o say_v that_o hereafter_o they_o shall_v not_o speak_v so_o they_o consult_v earnest_o how_o they_o may_v give_v full_a satisfaction_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o court_n in_o matter_n of_o residence_n and_o what_o prelate_n be_v fit_a to_o be_v employ_v to_o persuade_v other_o those_o who_o have_v declare_v themselves_o to_o favour_v the_o interest_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o court_n howsoever_o they_o be_v otherwise_o able_a they_o think_v not_o fit_a because_o they_o want_v credit_n they_o make_v choice_n of_o two_o man_n of_o sincerity_n and_o dextrous_a in_o negotiation_n the_o bishop_n of_o modena_n and_o of_o bressia_n the_o same_o day_n the_o archbishop_n of_o he_o the_o archbishop_n of_o lanciano_n present_v the_o pope_n brief_a to_o the_o bishop_n who_o have_v write_v unto_o he_o lanciano_n have_v call_v together_o the_o prelate_n who_o have_v write_v to_o the_o pope_n in_o their_o own_o behalf_n present_v to_o they_o the_o pope_n brief_a full_a of_o kindness_n humanity_n and_o offer_v which_o please_v they_o all_o and_o do_v much_o mitigate_v their_o heat_n for_o residence_n another_o accident_n also_o happen_v the_o same_o day_n much_o in_o the_o pope_n favour_n for_o the_o marquis_n of_o pescara_n send_v unto_o his_o secretary_n a_o copy_n of_o a_o letter_n write_v to_o he_o from_o the_o king_n in_o which_o he_o tell_v he_o that_o have_v understand_v that_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o continuation_n will_v displease_v the_o emperor_n and_o france_n and_o may_v perhaps_o cause_v a_o dissolution_n of_o the_o council_n he_o give_v he_o commission_n to_o make_v no_o further_o instance_n for_o it_o so_o that_o no_o declaration_n of_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n will_v not_o have_v the_o continuation_n of_o the_o council_n or_o the_o point_n of_o residence_n speak_v of_o be_v make_v for_o a_o new_a indiction_n and_o that_o the_o council_n do_v proceed_v as_o it_o have_v begin_v afterward_o he_o give_v he_o order_n to_o let_v his_o prelate_n know_v that_o he_o have_v understand_v the_o controversy_n and_o dispute_n concern_v residence_n and_o the_o instance_n they_o have_v make_v that_o it_o may_v be_v declare_v to_o be_v de_fw-fr jure_fw-la divino_fw-la say_v that_o he_o commend_v their_o zeal_n and_o good_a intention_n yet_o think_v that_o the_o declaration_n do_v not_o befit_v the_o present_a time_n and_o therefore_o wish_v they_o to_o desist_v the_o secretary_n show_v the_o letter_n to_o the_o spanish_a pralat_n and_o granata_n have_v exact_o consider_v of_o it_o say_v that_o it_o be_v well_o see_v that_o the_o pope_n do_v dislike_v it_o that_o the_o king_n do_v not_o know_v the_o importance_n of_o it_o that_o he_o be_v counsel_v by_o the_o archbishop_n of_o sevil_n who_o never_o have_v reside_v and_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o conca_n who_o remain_v in_o court_n that_o he_o know_v very_o well_o to_o what_o end_n he_o do_v command_v it_o that_o he_o will_v obey_v he_o 2._o 1562_o pius_fw-la 4._o ferdinand_z elizabeth_n charles_n 9_o philip_z 2._o in_o not_o protest_v but_o will_v never_o forbear_v to_o demand_v it_o as_o often_o as_o there_o be_v occasion_n know_v well_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o offend_v the_o king_n herein_o that_o point_n concern_v the_o continuation_n be_v show_v also_o to_o the_o imperialist_n and_o frenchmem_a who_o answer_v there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o that_o declaration_n to_o be_v make_v express_o in_o word_n see_v that_o it_o be_v execute_v in_o deed_n in_o the_o next_o congregation_n hold_v the_o twenty_o day_n the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o the_o abuse_n consequent_a be_v propose_v to_o be_v handle_v the_o cardinal_n of_o mantua_n do_v admonish_v the_o prelate_n to_o deliver_v their_o opinion_n quiet_o and_o brief_o in_o the_o congregation_n and_o without_o noise_n and_o relate_v the_o rule_n which_o they_o have_v make_v for_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o divine_n to_o take_v away_o contention_n confusion_n and_o prolixity_n which_o be_v read_v be_v approve_v by_o the_o congregation_n afterward_o cardinal_n seripando_n discourse_v of_o the_o manner_n of_o examine_v the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n and_o the_o anathematism_n in_o the_o congregation_n and_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n that_o they_o have_v be_v examine_v and_o discuss_v before_o in_o the_o same_o council_n and_o establish_v also_o although_o not_o publish_v so_o that_o the_o father_n may_v very_o much_o abreviate_v their_o meditation_n in_o regard_n there_o be_v need_n of_o nothing_o more_o than_o of_o expedition_n granata_n add_v that_o the_o mass_n have_v be_v handle_v before_o and_o there_o remain_v much_o time_n until_o the_o session_n the_o matter_n of_o order_n may_v be_v handle_v also_o and_o the_o same_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o five_o church_n which_o some_o understand_v to_o be_v speak_v ironical_o and_o other_o to_o this_o end_n that_o they_o may_v handle_v residence_n according_a to_o the_o promise_n of_o mantua_n in_o the_o end_n the_o article_n to_o be_v handle_v in_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o divine_n be_v give_v forth_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o order_n before_o mention_v be_v comprehend_v doctrine_n seven_o rule_n be_v set_v down_o concern_v the_o order_n of_o examine_v the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n in_o seven_o rule_n that_o in_o every_o matter_n propose_v only_o four_o of_o the_o divine_n send_v by_o the_o pope_n choose_v by_o the_o legate_n shall_v speak_v two_o secular_o and_o two_o regular_o that_o by_o the_o ambassador_n of_o prince_n three_o of_o the_o secular_a divine_n send_v by_o they_o shall_v be_v choose_v that_o every_o legate_n shall_v choose_v a_o secular_a divine_a of_o his_o own_o family_n that_o of_o all_o the_o other_o secular_a divine_n of_o the_o family_n of_o the_o prelate_n only_o four_o shall_v be_v choose_v to_o speak_v beginning_n with_o those_o who_o be_v create_v doctor_n first_o that_o among_o the_o regulars_n every_o general_n shall_v choose_v three_o of_o his_o own_o order_n that_o none_o of_o the_o divine_n shall_v speak_v above_o half_a a_o hour_n or_o if_o they_o do_v shall_v be_v interrupt_v by_o the_o master_n of_o the_o ceremony_n and_o he_o that_o will_v be_v more_o brief_a shall_v be_v more_o commend_v that_o those_o divine_n who_o be_v not_o to_o speak_v may_v deliver_v their_o opinion_n in_o write_v to_o the_o deputy_n concern_v the_o thing_n propose_v by_o these_o rule_v they_o make_v account_v that_o four_o and_o thirty_o divine_n be_v to_o speak_v and_o that_o they_o may_v all_o be_v hear_v in_o ten_o congregation_n at_o the_o most_o in_o establish_v and_o publish_v this_o order_n the_o difficulty_n be_v what_o inscription_n to_o give_v it_o some_o thought_n that_o to_o call_v it_o a_o mean_a to_o be_v observe_v by_o the_o divine_n be_v to_o run_v into_o the_o inconvenience_n object_v by_o that_o spartan_a to_o the_o athenian_n that_o wise_a man_n do_v consult_v and_o the_o ignorant_a give_v sentence_n for_o avoid_v whereof_o the_o inscription_n be_v conceive_v thus_o a_o mean_a to_o be_v observe_v hereafter_o in_o the_o point_n which_o shall_v be_v examine_v by_o the_o inferior_a divine_n infer_v that_o the_o prelate_n be_v superior_a divine_n the_o article_n be_v thirteen_o 1._o whether_o the_o mass_n be_v only_o a_o commemoration_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o a_o true_a sacrifice_n 2._o whether_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n derogate_v from_o that_o of_o the_o cross_n 3._o whether_o christ_n do_v ordain_v that_o the_o apostle_n shall_v offer_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o mass_n in_o those_o word_n do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o 4._o whether_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n do_v only_o help_v he_o who_o do_v receive_v it_o and_o may_v not_o be_v offer_v for_o other_o as_o well_o live_v as_o dead_a nor_o for_o their_o sin_n examine_v 13._o article_n concern_v the_o mass_n be_v propose_v to_o be_v examine_v satisfaction_n and_o other_o necessity_n 5._o whether_o
thanksgiving_n or_o a_o bare_a commemoration_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o not_o propitiatory_a and_o that_o it_o do_v help_v only_o he_o that_o do_v receive_v it_o and_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v offer_v for_o the_o hue_n and_o the_o dead_a for_o sin_n punishment_n satisfaction_n and_o other_o necessity_n 4._o or_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n do_v derogate_v from_o that_o of_o the_o cross_n 5._o or_o that_o it_o be_v a_o deceit_n to_o celebrate_v mass_n in_o honour_n of_o saint_n 6._o or_o that_o error_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n 7._o or_o that_o the_o ceremony_n vestment_n or_o external_a sign_n use_v in_o the_o mass_n be_v rather_o incitement_n to_o ungodliness_n than_o office_n of_o piety_n 8._o or_o that_o the_o mass_n in_o which_o the_o priest_n alone_o do_v communicate_v be_v unlawful_a 9_o or_o shall_v condemn_v the_o rite_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o speak_v part_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n with_o a_o low_a voice_n or_o that_o the_o mass_n ought_v to_o be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o vulgar_a or_o that_o water_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v mingle_v with_o the_o wine_n the_o father_n assent_v to_o the_o decree_n except_o only_o to_o that_o particular_a that_o mass_n a_o decree_n concern_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o mass_n christ_n do_v offer_v himself_o which_o three_o and_o twenty_o bishop_n do_v contradict_v and_o some_o other_o say_v that_o howsoever_o they_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v true_a yet_o they_o think_v not_o either_o the_o time_n or_o place_n fit_a to_o decree_v it_o and_o there_o be_v some_o confusion_n in_o deliver_v their_o voice_n because_o many_o speak_v at_o once_o the_o archbishop_n of_o granata_n begin_v to_o dissent_v who_o have_v contradict_v in_o the_o congregation_n that_o he_o may_v not_o have_v occasion_n to_o do_v the_o same_o in_o session_n determine_v to_o be_v absent_a but_o the_o legate_n see_v he_o not_o at_o mass_n send_v to_o call_v he_o more_o than_o once_o and_o constrain_v he_o to_o come_v which_o do_v more_o excite_v he_o to_o contradict_v immediate_o after_o another_o decree_n be_v read_v for_o instruction_n of_o bishop_n concern_v abuse_n to_o be_v correct_v in_o celebration_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o contain_v in_o substance_n that_o the_o bishop_n ought_v to_o forbid_v all_o thing_n bring_v in_o by_o avarice_n irreverence_n or_o superstition_n it_o name_v particular_o for_o fault_n of_o avarice_n bargain_n for_o reward_n that_o which_o be_v give_v for_o new_a mass_n importunate_a exaction_n of_o alm_n of_o irreverence_n the_o admit_v to_o say_v mass_n of_o vagabond_n priest_n unknowen_a and_o public_a and_o notorious_a sinner_n mass_n in_o private_a house_n &_o every_o where_o else_o out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o oratory_n if_o the_o assistant_n be_v not_o in_o a_o honest_a habit_n the_o use_n of_o music_n in_o church_n mix_v with_o lascivious_a song_n all_o secular_a action_n profane_a speech_n noise_n and_o screeche_n of_o superstition_n to_o celebrate_v out_o of_o due_a hour_n with_o other_o ceremony_n and_o prayer_n than_o those_o which_o be_v allow_v by_o the_o church_n and_o receive_v by_o use_n a_o determinate_a number_n of_o some_o mass_n and_o of_o candle_n it_o ordain_v also_o that_o the_o people_n shall_v be_v admonish_v to_o go_v to_o their_o parish_n church_n at_o the_o least_o on_o sunday_n and_o great_a holiday_n declare_v that_o the_o thing_n aforesaid_a be_v propose_v to_o the_o prelate_n that_o they_o may_v prohibit_v and_o correct_v as_o delegate_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n not_o only_o those_o but_o all_o that_o be_v alike_o unto_o they_o the_o decree_n of_o reformation_n contain_v 11._o head_n 1._o that_o all_o the_o decree_n of_o pope_n and_o counsel_n concern_v the_o life_n and_o conversation_n of_o the_o clergy_n be_v observe_v hereafter_o under_o the_o same_o and_o great_a punishment_n at_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o ordinary_a and_o those_o reviue_v which_o be_v antiquate_v 2._o that_o none_o be_v promote_v to_o a_o bishopric_n but_o he_o who_o beside_o the_o quality_n require_v by_o the_o holy_a canon_n have_v be_v six_o month_n in_o holy_a order_n and_o if_o there_o be_v not_o notice_n of_o all_o the_o necessary_a quality_n in_o court_n information_n reformation_n the_o decree_n of_o reformation_n may_v be_v take_v from_o the_o nuncij_fw-la from_o his_o ordinary_a or_o neighbour_n ordinary_n who_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o doctor_n master_n or_o licentiate_a in_o theology_n or_o the_o canon_n law_n or_o declare_v to_o be_v able_a to_o teach_v by_o public_a testimony_n of_o a_o university_n and_o the_o regulars_n shall_v have_v the_o like_a testimony_n from_o the_o superior_n of_o their_o religion_n and_o the_o process_n and_o testification_n shall_v be_v free_o give_v 3._o that_o the_o bishop_n may_v convert_v the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o revenue_n of_o cathedral_n or_o collegiate_n church_n into_o daily_a distribution_n which_o notwithstanding_o those_o shall_v not_o lose_v who_o not_o have_v jurisdiction_n or_o other_o office_n do_v reside_v in_o their_o parish_n church_n or_o church_n unite_v be_v out_o of_o the_o city_n 4._o that_o none_o shall_v have_v voice_n in_o chapter_n but_o he_o that_o be_v a_o subdeacon_n and_o he_o that_o shall_v hereafter_o obtain_v a_o benefice_n to_o which_o any_o charge_n be_v annex_v shall_v be_v bind_v to_o receive_v order_n within_o one_o year_n that_o he_o may_v execute_v it_o 5._o that_o commission_n of_o dispensation_n out_o of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v address_v to_o the_o ordinary_n and_o those_o that_o be_v for_o grace_n shall_v not_o take_v effect_n until_o it_o be_v know_v by_o the_o bishop_n as_o delegate_n that_o they_o have_v be_v just_o get_v 6_o that_o commutation_n of_o will_n be_v not_o execute_v until_o the_o bishop_n as_o delegate_n do_v know_v that_o they_o have_v be_v obtain_v by_o expression_n of_o the_o truth_n 7._o that_o superior_a judge_n in_o admit_v appeal_n and_o grant_v inhibition_n shall_v observe_v the_o constitution_n of_o innocentius_n 4._o in_o the_o chapter_n romana_n 8_o that_o the_o bishop_n as_o delegate_n shall_v be_v executor_n of_o pious_a disposition_n as_o well_o testamentary_a as_o of_o the_o live_n shall_v visit_v hospital_n college_n and_o fraternity_n of_o laique_n even_o those_o which_o be_v call_v school_n or_o by_o whatother_n name_n soever_o except_o those_o which_o be_v under_o the_o immediate_a protection_n of_o king_n shall_v visit_v the_o alm_n of_o the_o mountain_n of_o piety_n and_o all_o other_o place_n of_o piety_n though_o under_o the_o charge_n of_o layman_n and_o shall_v have_v the_o knowledge_n and_o execution_n of_o whatsoever_o belong_v to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n salvation_n of_o soul_n and_o sustentation_n of_o the_o poor_a 9_o that_o the_o administrator_n of_o the_o fabric_n of_o any_o church_n whatsoever_o hospital_n confraternity_n alm_n of_o any_o mountain_n of_o piety_n or_o any_o other_o pious_a place_n shall_v be_v bind_v to_o give_v a_o account_n every_o year_n to_o the_o bishop_n and_z in_o case_n they_o be_v oblige_v to_o make_v a_o account_n to_o other_o the_o bishop_n shall_v be_v join_v with_o they_o without_o who_o they_o shall_v not_o have_v any_o discharge_n 10_o that_o the_o bishop_n shall_v examine_v the_o notary_n and_o forbid_v they_o the_o use_n of_o their_o office_n in_o spiritual_a matter_n 11._o that_o whosoever_o shall_v usurp_v the_o good_n right_n or_o emolument_n of_o church_n benefice_n mountain_n of_o piety_n or_o other_o pious_a place_n whether_o he_o be_v clerk_n or_o laique_n king_n or_o emperor_n shall_v remain_v excommunicate_a until_o a_o full_a restitution_n or_o absolution_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o if_o he_o be_v patron_n he_o shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o the_o right_n of_o patronage_n and_o the_o clerk_n consent_v shall_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o same_o punishment_n deprive_v of_o all_o benefice_n and_o uncapable_a of_o any_o more_o afterward_o the_o decree_n for_o the_o grant_n of_o the_o cup_n be_v read_v of_o this_o tenor_n that_o the_o synod_n have_v reserve_v to_o itself_o the_o examination_n and_o definition_n of_o two_o article_n concern_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o former_a session_n have_v now_o determine_v to_o defer_v the_o whole_a business_n to_o the_o pope_n who_o in_o his_o singular_a wisdom_n may_v do_v what_o he_o think_v profitable_a for_o the_o christian_a common_a wealth_n and_o for_o the_o good_a of_o those_o who_o demand_v it_o this_o decree_n as_o it_o be_v approve_v in_o the_o congregation_n by_o the_o mayor_n part_v only_o so_o it_o cup._n the_o decree_n concern_v the_o cup._n happen_v in_o the_o session_n where_o beside_o those_o who_o contradict_v because_o they_o think_v the_o cup_n can_v not_o be_v grant_v for_o any_o cause_n there_o be_v some_o
who_o require_v that_o the_o matter_n shall_v be_v defer_v and_o examine_v again_o to_o who_o the_o speaker_n answer_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o legate_n that_o consideration_n shall_v be_v have_v of_o it_o and_o final_o the_o next_o session_n be_v intimate_v for_o the_o twelve_o of_o november_n to_o determine_v concern_v the_o sacrament_n of_o order_n and_o matrimony_n session_n the_o matter_n of_o the_o next_o session_n and_o the_o synod_n be_v dismiss_v after_o the_o usual_a manner_n great_a discourse_n between_o the_o father_n about_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n continue_v still_o concern_v which_o some_o perhaps_o will_v be_v curious_a to_o know_v for_o what_o cause_n the_o decree_n last_o recite_v be_v not_o put_v after_o that_o of_o the_o mass_n as_o the_o matter_n seem_v to_o require_v but_o in_o a_o place_n where_o it_o have_v no_o connexion_n or_o likeness_n with_o the_o article_n precede_v he_o may_v know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o general_a maxim_n in_o part_n a_o maxim_n in_o the_o council_n about_o the_o mayor_n part_n that_o council_n that_o to_o establish_v a_o decree_n of_o reformation_n a_o mayor_n part_n of_o voice_n be_v sufficient_a but_o that_o a_o decree_n of_o faith_n can_v not_o be_v make_v if_o a_o considerable_a part_n do_v contradict_v therefore_o the_o legate_n know_v that_o hardly_o more_o than_o half_o will_v consent_v to_o this_o of_o the_o chalice_n do_v resolve_v to_o make_v it_o a_o article_n of_o reformation_n and_o to_o place_v it_o the_o last_o among_o those_o to_o show_v plain_o that_o they_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v of_o that_o rank_n there_o be_v also_o many_o discourse_n at_o that_o time_n and_o some_o day_n after_o about_o the_o point_n decide_v that_o christ_n offer_v himself_o in_o the_o supper_n some_o say_n that_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o three_o and_o twenty_o contradictor_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_o decide_v and_o other_o answer_v that_o a_o eight_o part_n can_v not_o be_v call_v a_o considerable_a or_o notable_a part_n there_o be_v some_o also_o who_o maintain_v that_o the_o maxim_n have_v place_n only_o in_o the_o anathematism_n and_o in_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o not_o in_o every_o clause_n which_o be_v put_v in_o for_o better_a expression_n as_o this_o which_o be_v not_o mention_v in_o the_o canon_n the_o emperor_n ambassador_n be_v very_o glad_a for_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o cup_n be_v assure_v that_o his_o majesty_n will_v more_o easy_o obtain_v it_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o upon_o more_o favourable_a condition_n than_o it_o can_v have_v be_v obtain_v in_o the_o council_n where_o for_o the_o variety_n of_o opinion_n and_o interest_n it_o be_v hard_o to_o make_v many_o to_o be_v of_o one_o mind_n though_o in_o a_o good_a and_o necessary_a matter_n the_o great_a part_n overcom_v the_o better_a and_o he_o that_o oppose_v have_v always_o the_o advantage_n of_o he_o that_o promote_v and_o their_o hope_n be_v the_o great_a because_o the_o pope_n seem_v before_o to_o have_v favour_v their_o petition_n but_o the_o emperor_n have_v not_o the_o same_o opinion_n aim_v not_o to_o obtain_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n absolute_o but_o to_o pacify_v the_o people_n of_o his_o own_o state_n and_o of_o germany_n who_o be_v distaste_v with_o the_o pope_n authority_n for_o the_o thing_n past_a can_v not_o relish_v any_o thing_n well_o that_o proceed_v from_o he_o whereas_o if_o they_o have_v obtain_v this_o grant_n immediate_o from_o the_o council_n it_o will_v have_v give_v they_o good_a satisfaction_n and_o breed_v a_o opinion_n in_o they_o that_o they_o may_v have_v obtain_v other_o request_n which_o they_o esteem_v so_o that_o this_o motion_n be_v stop_v and_o the_o infect_a minister_n casseer_v he_o do_v hope_n he_o may_v have_v hold_v they_o in_o the_o catholic_a communion_n he_o see_v by_o former_a experience_n that_o the_o grant_v of_o paul_n be_v not_o well_o receive_v and_o do_v more_o hurt_v then_o good_a and_o for_o this_o cause_n he_o do_v prosecute_v the_o instance_n no_o further_o with_o the_o pope_n and_o declare_v the_o cause_n of_o it_o therefore_o when_o he_o receive_v news_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n turn_v to_o some_o prelate_n who_o be_v with_o he_o he_o say_v i_o have_v do_v all_o i_o can_v to_o save_v my_o people_n now_o look_v you_o unto_o it_o who_o it_o do_v more_o concern_v but_o those_o people_n which_o desire_v and_o expect_v the_o favour_n or_o as_o they_o say_v decree_n the_o censure_n of_o the_o decree_n the_o restitution_n of_o that_o which_o be_v due_a unto_o they_o be_v all_o distaste_v that_o their_o just_a request_n have_v be_v treat_v on_o six_o month_n present_v by_o the_o intercession_n of_o so_o many_o and_o so_o great_a prince_n and_o after_o for_o better_a examination_n defer_v and_o dispute_v and_o discuss_v again_o with_o such_o contention_n shall_v in_o the_o end_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o pope_n which_o may_v have_v be_v as_o well_o do_v at_o the_o very_a first_o without_o lose_v so_o much_o time_n so_o many_o persuasion_n and_o so_o great_a pain_n they_o say_v the_o condition_n of_o christian_n be_v according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n of_o isayas_n he_o send_v and_o countermand_v expect_v and_o reexpect_v for_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v move_v first_o refer_v that_o to_o the_o council_n which_o now_o the_o council_n remit_v to_o he_o and_o both_o of_o they_o do_v mock_v both_o prince_n and_o people_n some_o discourse_v more_o substantial_o that_o the_o synod_n have_v reserve_v the_o definition_n of_o two_o article_n whether_o the_o cause_n which_o do_v former_o move_v to_o take_v away_o the_o cup_n be_v such_o as_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o make_v they_o persevere_v in_o the_o same_o prohibition_n and_o if_o not_o with_o what_o condition_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v grant_v the_o former_a be_v undoubted_o a_o matter_n not_o of_o fact_n but_o of_o faith_n the_o council_n do_v confess_v by_o a_o necessary_a consequence_n that_o it_o know_v the_o cause_n to_o be_v unsufficient_a and_o will_v not_o for_o worldly_a respect_n make_v the_o declaration_n for_o if_o they_o have_v think_v they_o sufficient_a they_o must_v needs_o persevere_v in_o the_o prohibition_n if_o any_o doubt_n have_v remain_v they_o shall_v have_v proceed_v in_o the_o examination_n and_o ought_v not_o to_o remit_v it_o but_o for_o the_o insufficiency_n of_o the_o cause_n but_o if_o they_o have_v make_v the_o declaration_n negative_a that_o be_v that_o the_o cause_n be_v not_o such_o as_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o persevere_v and_o refer_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o do_v upon_o information_n what_o remain_v to_o be_v do_v defacto_fw-la they_o may_v have_v be_v excuse_v neither_o can_v it_o be_v say_v that_o this_o be_v presuppose_v by_o the_o reference_n for_o in_o the_o decree_n of_o this_o session_n have_v repeat_v the_o two_o article_n they_o resolve_v to_o refer_v the_o whole_a business_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o therefore_o not_o presuppose_v any_o thing_n i_o do_v not_o find_v in_o the_o memorial_n which_o i_o have_v see_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n do_v raise_v any_o matter_n of_o discourse_n and_o the_o cause_n perhaps_o be_v for_o that_o the_o word_n do_v not_o so_o easy_o declare_v the_o sense_n as_o contain_v many_o strain_a metaphor_n which_o draw_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o reader_n unto_o diverse_a consideration_n who_o when_o they_o be_v come_v to_o the_o end_n know_v not_o what_o they_o have_v read_v only_o concern_v the_o prohibition_n of_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n in_o the_o mass_n the_o protestant_n say_v something_o for_o it_o seem_v a_o contradiction_n to_o say_v that_o the_o mass_n do_v contain_v much_o instruction_n for_o the_o faithful_a people_n and_o to_o approve_v that_o part_n shall_v be_v utter_v with_o a_o low_a voice_n and_o whole_o to_o forbid_v the_o vulgar_a tongue_n only_o command_v the_o pastor_n to_o declare_v something_o to_o the_o people_n whereunto_o some_o answer_v well_o that_o in_o the_o mass_n be_v some_o secret_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v conceal_v from_o the_o people_n which_o be_v uncapable_a for_o which_o cause_n they_o be_v speak_v soft_o and_o in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n but_o other_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o good_a edification_n be_v command_v to_o be_v teach_v but_o this_o be_v oppose_v two_o way_n one_o that_o therefore_o this_o second_o sort_n ought_v to_o be_v in_o the_o vulgar_a the_o other_o because_o they_o do_v not_o distinguish_v the_o two_o sort_n for_o the_o pastor_n be_v command_v to_o declare_v often_o something_o of_o that_o which_o be_v read_v and_o conceal_v the_o rest_n these_o two_o kind_n be_v not_o distinguish_v some_o of_o they_o may_v mistake_v for_o want_n of_o knowledge_n and_o so_o abuse_v the_o people_n the_o antiquary_n do_v laugh_v at_o these_o discourse_n because_o it_o be_v
fit_a to_o dissemble_v it_o he_o send_v into_o france_n forty_o thousand_o crown_n the_o residue_n of_o the_o hundred_o thousand_o which_o he_o promise_v and_o he_o cause_v sebastianus_n gualterus_n bishop_n of_o viterbo_n and_o ludovicus_fw-la antinori_fw-la to_o go_v to_o trent_n who_o have_v be_v in_o france_n have_v some_o acquaintance_n with_o some_o of_o those_o prelate_n and_o have_v make_v themselves_o know_v to_o the_o cardinal_n under_o colour_n to_o honour_v he_o and_o he_o write_v to_o this_o cardinal_n and_o to_o lansac_n letter_n full_a of_o compliment_n and_o confidence_n yet_o they_o think_v that_o these_o man_n be_v send_v to_o discover_v the_o cardinal_n intention_n and_o to_o observe_v his_o proceed_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o they_o have_v receive_v advice_n from_o rome_n that_o the_o bishop_n have_v exhort_v the_o pope_n not_o to_o be_v so_o much_o afraid_a in_o regard_n the_o cardinal_n also_o will_v find_v difficulty_n and_o impediment_n more_o than_o he_o believe_v he_o shall_v and_o say_v that_o himself_o will_v make_v more_o to_o arise_v the_o 22._o of_o november_n the_o cardinal_n resolve_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o congregation_n the_o day_n follow_v and_o it_o be_v agree_v that_o the_o king_n letter_n shall_v be_v read_v and_o himself_o make_v a_o speech_n but_o lorraine_n propose_v also_o that_o the_o ambassador_n de_fw-fr ferrieres_n shall_v make_v another_o to_o this_o the_o legate_n do_v not_o consent_n because_o if_o this_o have_v be_v once_o permit_v both_o he_o and_o all_o other_o ambassador_n will_v still_o be_v desirous_a to_o speak_v and_o propose_v with_o danger_n of_o make_v great_a confusion_n but_o conceal_v this_o cause_n they_o say_v that_o neither_o in_o this_o council_n nor_o under_o paul_n or_o julius_n it_o be_v ever_o permit_v to_o ambassador_n to_o speak_v in_o congregation_n but_o only_o when_o they_o be_v first_o receive_v and_o that_o without_o the_o pope_n consent_n they_o can_v not_o yield_v to_o such_o a_o novitie_n but_o lorraine_n answer_v that_o the_o king_n letter_n and_o the_o instruction_n be_v new_a it_o may_v be_v call_v a_o new_a ambassage_n and_o that_o the_o first_o entrance_n after_o many_o answer_n and_o reply_n lorraine_n have_v give_v his_o word_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o desire_v to_o speak_v any_o more_o the_o legate_n to_o give_v he_o satisfaction_n and_o that_o he_o may_v not_o have_v cause_n of_o open_a distaste_n be_v content_v therefore_o the_o next_o day_n the_o congregation_n be_v assemble_v the_o king_n letter_n be_v read_v with_o this_o inscription_n to_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o most_o reverend_a father_n assemble_v in_o trent_n to_o celebrate_v the_o sacred_a council_n in_o which_o he_o say_v that_o it_o have_v please_v god_n to_o call_v he_o to_o the_o kingdom_n it_o have_v please_v he_o also_o to_o afflict_v he_o with_o many_o war_n but_o have_v so_o open_v his_o eye_n that_o howsoever_o he_o be_v young_a he_o know_v that_o the_o principal_a cause_n of_o the_o evil_n be_v leter_n the_o french_a king_n leter_n the_o diversity_n of_o religion_n by_o mean_n of_o which_o divine_a illumination_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o kingdom_n he_o make_v instance_n for_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o council_n in_o which_o they_o be_v then_o assemble_v know_v that_o in_o they_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v find_v the_o most_o proper_a remedy_n to_o the_o like_a infirmity_n and_o that_o he_o be_v grieve_v that_o be_v the_o first_o to_o procure_v so_o good_a a_o work_n he_o have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o send_v his_o prelate_n with_o the_o first_o the_o cause_n whereof_o be_v notorious_a he_o think_v he_o be_v sufficient_o excuse_v and_o the_o rather_o because_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n be_v now_o arrive_v accompany_v with_o other_o prelate_n that_o two_o principal_a cause_n have_v move_v he_o to_o send_v that_o cardinal_n the_o first_o his_o own_o great_a and_o frequent_a instance_n to_o have_v leave_n to_o satisfy_v his_o duty_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o place_n he_o hold_v in_o the_o church_n the_o second_o because_o be_v of_o his_o privy_a council_n and_o exercise_v from_o his_o youth_n in_o the_o most_o important_a affair_n of_o the_o kingdom_n he_o know_v the_o necessity_n thereof_o better_a than_o any_o other_o and_o whence_o the_o occasion_n do_v arise_v so_o that_o he_o will_v be_v able_a to_o make_v a_o relation_n unto_o they_o conformable_a to_o the_o charge_n which_o be_v give_v he_o and_o demand_v in_o his_o name_n the_o remedy_n which_o be_v expect_v from_o their_o wisdom_n and_o fatherly_a affection_n as_o well_o for_o the_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o kingdom_n as_o for_o the_o general_a good_a of_o all_o christendom_n he_o beseech_v they_o to_o proceed_v herein_o with_o their_o wont_a sincerity_n that_o they_o may_v come_v to_o a_o holy_a reformation_n and_o that_o the_o ancient_a lustre_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n may_v appear_v in_o the_o union_n of_o all_o christendom_n in_o one_o religion_n which_o will_v be_v a_o work_n worthy_a of_o they_o desire_v by_o the_o whole_a world_n recompense_v by_o god_n and_o commend_v by_o all_o prince_n in_o conclusion_n for_o the_o particular_n he_o refer_v himself_o to_o the_o cardinal_n pray_v they_o to_o believe_v he_o in_o whatsoever_o he●_n shall_v say_v unto_o they_o on_o his_o part_n after_o this_o the_o cardinal_n speak_v in_o the_o begin_n he_o show_v the_o misery_n ●oraine_a the_o speech_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o ●oraine_a of_o the_o kingdom_n deplore_v the_o war_n the_o demolition_n of_o church_n occision_n of_o religious_a person_n conculcation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n burn_v of_o the_o library_n image_n and_o relic_n of_o saint_n overthrow_v of_o the_o monument_n of_o king_n prince_n and_o bishop_n and_o expulsion_n of_o the_o true_a pastor_n and_o pass_v to_o civil_a matter_n he_o show_v the_o contempt_n of_o the_o king_n majesty_n usurpation_n of_o his_o rent_n violation_n of_o the_o law_n and_o sedition_n raise_v among_o the_o people_n he_o attribute_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o this_o to_o the_o corruption_n of_o manner_n to_o the_o ruin_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n and_o negligence_n in_o repress_v heresy_n and_o in_o use_v remedy_n institute_v by_o god_n turn_v to_o the_o ambass_n of_o prince_n he_o tell_v they_o that_o that_o which_o they_o do_v now_o behold_v at_o leisure_n in_o france_n they_o shall_v find_v at_o home_n when_o it_o will_v be_v too_o late_o to_o repent_v if_o france_n tumble_v down_o with_o its_o own_o weight_n shall_v fall_v upon_o place_n near_o unto_o it_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o virtue_n and_o good_a disposition_n of_o the_o king_n the_o counsel_n of_o the_o queen_n and_o king_n of_o navarre_n and_o of_o the_o other_o prince_n but_o say_v the_o principal_a matter_n be_v expect_v from_o the_o synod_n whence_o the_o peace_n of_o god_n which_o pass_v all_o understanding_n aught_o to_o come_v that_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n be_v assure_v hereof_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o observance_n towards_o that_o synod_n and_o of_o his_o sorrow_n for_o the_o difference_n of_o religion_n do_v demand_v two_o thing_n of_o they_o the_o first_o that_o they_o will_v avoid_v new_a discord_n new_a and_o unprofitable_a question_n and_o cause_n a_o suspension_n of_o arm_n among_o all_o prince_n and_o state_n that_o scandal_n may_v not_o be_v give_v to_o the_o protestant_n and_o occasion_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o synod_n do_v more_o labour_n to_o incite_v prince_n to_o war_n and_o to_o make_v confederation_n and_o league_n then_o to_o keep_v the_o unity_n of_o peace_n that_o king_n henry_n have_v first_o establish_v it_o and_o then_o francis_n continue_v it_o and_o that_o the_o present_a king_n under_o age_n and_o his_o mother_n have_v always_o desire_v it_o which_o how_o soever_o it_o have_v unhappy_o succeed_v yet_o they_o may_v fear_v that_o the_o accident_n of_o the_o war_n will_v be_v more_o unfortunate_a for_o all_o the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v in_o danger_n of_o shipwreck_n one_o can_v help_v another_o he_o therefore_o desire_v that_o some_o account_n may_v be_v hold_v of_o those_o who_o be_v go_v astray_o from_o the_o church_n pardon_v they_o as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v do_v without_o offend_a god_n and_o hold_v they_o for_o friend_n as_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a even_o as_o far_o as_o unto_o the_o altar_n the_o second_o request_n common_a to_o the_o king_n with_o the_o emperor_n and_o other_o king_n and_o prince_n be_v that_o a_o reformation_n of_o manner_n and_o of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n shall_v be_v handle_v serious_o wherein_o the_o king_n do_v admonish_v and_o conjure_v they_o by_o christ_n our_o lord_n who_o will_v come_v to_o judgement_n that_o if_o they_o mean_v to_o restore_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o retain_v the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n they_o will_v not_o balance_v the_o incommodity_n
so_o it_o be_v most_o just_a that_o the_o perturber_n of_o it_o shall_v be_v punish_v the_o bishop_n of_o cava_fw-la will_v neither_o excuse_v himself_o for_o that_o which_o he_o have_v say_v nor_o receive_v the_o admonition_n with_o silence_n though_o it_o be_v in_o general_a but_o say_v that_o the_o cause_n ought_v to_o be_v remoove_v that_o the_o effect_n may_v cease_v that_o if_o the_o word_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o guadice_n have_v offend_v his_o own_o person_n he_o will_v have_v endure_v it_o for_o christian_a charity_n which_o as_o it_o require_v patience_n in_o wrong_n commit_v against_o one_o self_n so_o it_o make_v man_n sensible_a of_o the_o injury_n do_v unto_o christ_n who_o divine_a majesty_n be_v offend_v when_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o vicar_n be_v touch_v that_o he_o have_v speak_v well_o yea_o as_o well_o as_o may_v be_v and_o confirm_v the_o same_o with_o other_o word_n of_o the_o same_o sense_n which_o be_v general_o condemn_v of_o petulancy_n jacobus_n gilbertus_n of_o nogueras_n bishop_n of_o aliffe_n in_o deliver_v his_o voice_n bishop_n the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o aliffe_n concern_v the_o institution_n of_o bishop_n say_v that_o concern_v the_o institution_n of_o bishop_n one_o can_v not_o speak_v with_o better_a ground_n then_o consider_v well_o and_o understanding_n the_o word_n of_o saint_n paul_n to_o the_o ephesian_n for_o as_o it_o be_v most_o true_a that_o christ_n do_v rule_v the_o church_n with_o a_o absolute_a government_n while_o he_o live_v in_o mortal_a flesh_n as_o other_o have_v judicious_o say_v so_o it_o be_v a_o great_a untruth_n which_o be_v add_v that_o be_v that_o be_v in_o heaven_n he_o have_v abandon_v the_o same_o government_n yea_o he_o do_v exercise_v it_o rather_o more_o than_o before_o and_o this_o be_v it_o which_o he_o speak_v to_o his_o apostle_n at_o his_o departure_n i_o be_o with_o you_o until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n add_v also_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o that_o now_o also_o not_o only_o the_o inward_a influence_n of_o grace_n come_v from_o christ_n as_o from_o the_o head_n but_o a_o external_a assistance_n also_o though_o invisible_a to_o we_o which_o do_v minister_v occasion_n of_o salvation_n to_o the_o faithful_a and_o drive_v away_o the_o temptation_n of_o the_o world_n notwithstanding_o beside_o all_o these_o thing_n he_o have_v institute_v also_o some_o member_n of_o the_o church_n for_o apostle_n pastor_n etc._n etc._n to_o defend_v the_o faithful_a from_o error_n and_o to_o direct_v they_o to_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o knowledge_n of_o god._n and_o upon_o these_o he_o have_v best_o owe_v a_o gift_n necessary_a for_o the_o exercise_v of_o this_o holy_a office_n which_o be_v the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n which_o be_v not_o equal_a in_o all_o but_o so_o much_o as_o every_o one_o have_v be_v give_v he_o immediate_o by_o christ_n nothing_o be_v ●ord_n contrary_a to_o saint_n paul_n then_o to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v give_v to_o one_o only_o to_o impart_v it_o to_o who_o he_o list_v it_o be_v true_a that_o it_o be_v not_o equal_a in_o all_o but_o according_a to_o the_o divine_a distribution_n which_o as_o saint_n cyprian_n say_v that_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v preserve_v do_v ordain_v that_o the_o supreme_a shall_v be_v in_o peter_n and_o his_o successor_n not_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v absolute_a and_o according_a to_o the_o proverb_n that_o the_o will_n may_v be_v a_o law_n but_o as_o saint_n paul_n say_v for_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n only_o not_o for_o destruction_n so_o that_o it_o can_v be_v extend_v to_o abrogate_v law_n and_o canon_n make_v by_o the_o church_n for_o a_o foundation_n of_o government_n and_o here_o he_o begin_v to_o allege_v the_o canon_n cite_v by_o gratian_n in_o which_o the_o ancient_a pope_n do_v confess_v themselves_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o father_n and_o to_o the_o constitution_n of_o their_o predecessor_n the_o cardinal_n varminese_n interrupt_v he_o and_o say_v that_o the_o subject_n to_o speak_v on_o be_v the_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n so_o that_o this_o discourse_n be_v beside_o the_o matter_n the_o bishop_n answer_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o bishop_n be_v handle_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o speak_v of_o that_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o granata_n stand_v up_o and_o say_v that_o other_o have_v speak_v of_o it_o superfluous_o not_o to_o say_v pernicious_o meaning_n laynez_n and_o therefore_o that_o aliffe_n may_v speak_v of_o it_o likewise_o the_o bishop_n of_o cava_fw-la stand_v up_o and_o say_v that_o other_o have_v speak_v of_o it_o but_o not_o in_o that_o manner_n and_o whisper_n beginning_n to_o arise_v among_o the_o prelate_n simoneta_n make_v a_o sign_n to_o cava_fw-la to_o hold_v his_o peace_n and_o admonish_a aliffe_n to_o speak_v to_o the_o point_n he_o quiet_v the_o noise_n but_o he_o continue_v to_o allege_v the_o canon_n as_o he_o have_v begin_v varmiense_n interrupt_v he_o again_o not_o speak_v unto_o he_o but_o make_v a_o formal_a discourse_n to_o the_o father_n concern_v that_o matter_n he_o say_v the_o heretic_n pretend_v to_o prove_v that_o bishop_n elect_v by_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o true_a and_o lawful_a and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o opinion_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v condemn_v but_o whether_o true_a bishop_n be_v institute_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la or_o not_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o the_o heretic_n and_o the_o catholic_n and_o therefore_o the_o question_n do_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o synod_n which_o be_v congregat_v only_o to_o condemn_v the_o heresy_n he_o advise_v the_o father_n to_o abstain_v from_o speak_v thing_n which_o may_v give_v occasion_n of_o scaudall_n and_o exhort_v they_o to_o leave_v these_o question_n aliffe_n desire_v to_o reply_v but_o simoneta_n with_o the_o assistance_n of_o some_o other_o prelate_n do_v pacify_v he_o though_o with_o some_o difficulty_n and_o after_o he_o speak_v autonius_n maria_n saluia●●_n bishop_n of_o saint_n papulo_fw-la who_o say_v that_o all_o be_v assemble_v for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o proceed_v with_o a_o good_a intention_n though_o some_o one_o way_n and_o some_o another_o and_o have_v say_v many_o thing_n which_o serve_v partly_o to_o accord_v the_o opinion_n but_o principal_o to_o reconcile_v their_o mind_n be_v a_o cause_n that_o the_o congregation_n do_v quiet_o end_v and_o that_o word_n of_o humanity_n and_o reverence_n do_v pass_v between_o the_o cardinal_n and_o the_o bishop_n the_o four_o of_o december_n the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n deliver_v his_o opinion_n lorraine_n the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o card_n of_o lorraine_n concern_v the_o same_o matter_n and_o speak_v at_o large_a say_v that_o jurisdiction_n be_v give_v by_o god_n immediate_o to_o the_o church_n he_o allege_v the_o place_n of_o saint_n austin_n that_o the_o key_n be_v give_v to_o peter_n not_o unto_o one_o person_n but_o unto_o the_o unity_n and_o that_o peter_n when_o christ_n promise_v he_o the_o key_n do_v represent_v all_o the_o church_n who_o if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v a_o sacrament_n that_o be_v represent_v the_o church_n christ_n will_v not_o have_v give_v they_o unto_o he_o and_o he_o show_v a_o great_a memory_n in_o recil_v the_o place_n word_n by_o word_n then_o he_o say_v that_o that_o part_n of_o jurisdiction_n which_o be_v join_v with_o episcopal_a order_n the_o bishop_n do_v receive_v immediate_o from_o god_n and_o declare_v in_o what_o it_o do_v consist_v among_o other_o thing_n he_o specify_v that_o power_n of_o excommunication_n be_v contain_v in_o it_o enlarge_n himself_o much_o in_o the_o exposition_n of_o that_o place_n of_o saint_n matthew_n in_o which_o christ_n do_v prescribe_v the_o manner_n of_o brotherly_a correction_n and_o judicial_a of_o the_o church_n with_o authority_n to_o separate_v the_o disobedient_a from_o the_o body_n thereof_o then_o he_o dispute_v against_o that_o opinion_n allege_v diverse_a reason_n take_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n speak_v to_o saint_n peter_n and_o from_o the_o exposition_n which_o s._n leo_n the_o pope_n do_v give_v unto_o they_o in_o many_o place_n he_o exemplify_v in_o many_o bishop_n who_o have_v acknowledge_v all_o their_o jurisdiction_n to_o come_v from_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o speak_v with_o so_o much_o eloquence_n and_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o it_o can_v not_o clear_o be_v discover_v what_o his_o opinion_n be_v afterward_o he_o say_v that_o counsel_n have_v authority_n immediate_o from_o god_n allege_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n where_o two_o or_o three_o shall_v be_v assemble_v in_o my_o name_n i_o will_v be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o and_o the_o council_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o ascribe_v the_o resolution_n to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o stile_n of_o all_o counsel_n in_o say_v they_o be_v congregat_v
convenient_a for_o charles_n to_o stand_v unite_v with_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o may_v not_o subject_v himself_o to_o the_o dutch_a prince_n whereas_o this_o emperor_n be_v as_o it_o be_v subject_a unto_o they_o already_o final_o that_o this_o remedy_n may_v be_v defer_v because_o it_o will_v always_o be_v in_o season_n but_o by_o dissemble_v a_o while_n he_o may_v oblique_o make_v trial_n to_o hinder_v the_o resolution_n of_o the_o consultation_n which_o be_v make_v by_o send_v the_o cardinal_n of_o mantua_n to_o his_o majesty_n the_o writing_n which_o go_v about_o against_o the_o petition_n of_o the_o frenchman_n do_v not_o one_o displease_v they_o who_o take_v it_o for_o a_o affront_n but_o the_o emperor_n emperor_n displease_v the_o frenchman_n and_o the_o emperor_n also_o very_o much_o and_o the_o legate_n have_v receive_v commission_n from_o rome_n concern_v they_o be_v but_o ill_o satisfy_v and_o think_v that_o this_o be_v not_o to_o give_v commission_n to_o precedent_n of_o council_n but_o advertisment_n rather_o to_o minister_n to_o make_v use_n of_o entreaty_n by_o way_n of_o negotiation_n they_o write_v back_o only_o to_o demand_v what_o they_o shall_v do_v in_o case_n the_o imperialist_n shall_v make_v instance_n to_o have_v their_o petition_n propose_v and_o they_o cause_v gabriel_n paleotto_n auditor_n of_o the_o rota_n to_o write_v a_o full_a information_n of_o the_o difficulty_n which_o they_o send_v but_o the_o cardinal_n of_o mantua_n in_o regard_n the_o emperor_n have_v tell_v commendone_v that_o he_o will_v give_v answer_n to_o the_o council_n by_o his_o ambassador_n think_v it_o not_o convenient_a to_o go_v unto_o he_o before_o they_o receive_v that_o resolution_n beside_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n be_v at_o the_o emperor_n court_n and_o the_o effect_n of_o his_o negotiation_n not_o know_v he_o shall_v be_v doubtful_a in_o what_o manner_n to_o proceed_v upon_o these_o reason_n he_o excuse_v himself_o to_o pope_n the_o card._n of_o mantua_n write_v free_o to_o the_o pope_n the_o pope_n and_o beside_o write_v to_o he_o with_o his_o own_o hand_n that_o he_o have_v not_o a_o face_n to_o appear_v any_o more_o in_o congregation_n to_o give_v word_n only_o as_o he_o have_v do_v two_o year_n together_o that_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o prince_n do_v say_v that_o howsoever_o his_o holiness_n do_v promise_n much_o for_o reformation_n yet_o see_v nothing_o to_o be_v execute_v they_o do_v not_o think_v he_o have_v any_o inclination_n to_o it_o who_o if_o he_o have_v perform_v his_o promise_n the_o legate_n can_v not_o have_v be_v want_v to_o give_v satisfaction_n to_o the_o instance_n of_o so_o many_o prince_n neither_o ought_v any_o to_o marvel_v that_o this_o cardinal_n a_o prince_n conversant_a so_o many_o long_a year_n in_o many_o great_a affair_n and_o of_o a_o most_o complete_a conversation_n shall_v use_v this_o passage_n with_o his_o holiness_n it_o be_v a_o thing_n natural_a to_o man_n that_o be_v near_o their_o grave_n for_o some_o intrinficall_a cause_n unknowen_a even_o unto_o themselves_o to_o be_v distaste_v with_o humane_a matter_n and_o to_o neglect_v pure_a ceremony_n to_o which_o gaol_n he_o be_v then_o very_o near_o there_o remain_v but_o six_o day_n of_o his_o life_n from_o the_o date_n hereof_o but_o in_o the_o congregation_n the_o last_o that_o speak_v in_o the_o second_o rank_n be_v adrian_n a_o dominican_n friar_n who_o touch_v but_o light_o the_o matter_n in_o question_n discourse_v at_o large_a of_o dispensation_n and_o with_o theological_a term_n and_o form_n defend_v the_o thing_n mention_v by_o doctor_n cornisius_fw-la and_o speak_v of_o they_o not_o without_o scandal_n he_o say_v that_o authority_n to_o dispense_v in_o humane_a law_n be_v absolute_a and_o unlimited_a in_o the_o pope_n because_o he_o be_v superior_a to_o they_o all_o and_o therefore_o when_o he_o do_v dispense_v though_o without_o any_o cause_n the_o dispensation_n be_v notwithstanding_o to_o be_v hold_v for_o good_a that_o in_o divine_a law_n he_o have_v power_n to_o dispense_v but_o not_o without_o a_o cause_n he_o allege_v saint_n paul_n who_o say_v that_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o dispenser_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n and_o that_o to_o he_o the_o apostle_n dispensation_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v be_v commit_v he_o add_v that_o howsoever_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n concern_v the_o divine_a law_n be_v not_o of_o ●orce_n yet_o every_o one_o ought_v to_o captivate_v his_o understanding_n and_o believe_v that_o he_o have_v grant_v it_o for_o a_o lawful_a cause_n and_o that_o it_o be_v temeritie_n to_o call_v it_o into_o question_n then_o he_o discourse_v of_o the_o cause_n of_o dispensation_n which_o he_o reduce_v to_o public_a utility_n and_o charity_n towards_o private_a man_n this_o discourse_n give_v occasion_n to_o the_o french_a man_n to_o speak_v of_o the_o matter_n with_o the_o ill_a satisfaction_n of_o the_o papalin_n the_o secondranke_a have_v make_v a_o end_n of_o speak_v for_o observation_n of_o the_o promise_n make_v to_o lorraine_n not_o to_o handle_v the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n in_o his_o absence_n they_o change_v the_o order_n and_o make_v the_o four_o rank_n speak_v next_o john_n verdun_n handle_v the_o seven_o article_n of_o the_o degree_n of_o affinity_n and_o consanguinity_n pass_v immediate_o from_o it_o and_o come_v to_o the_o matter_n of_o dispensation_n and_o seem_v to_o have_v none_o other_o aim_n then_o to_o contradict_v friar_n adrian_n labour_v to_o weaken_v the_o pope_n power_n first_o he_o expound_v the_o place_n of_o saint_n paul_n that_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o dispenser_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o gospel_n and_o say_v the_o gloss_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o text_n for_o the_o place_n do_v not_o prove_v a_o dispensation_n that_o be_v a_o disobligation_n from_o the_o law_n but_o a_o publish_n and_o declare_v the_o divine_a mystery_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v perpetual_a and_o remain_v inviolable_a for_o ever_o he_o grant_v that_o in_o humane_a law_n a_o dispensation_n may_v lie_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o lawmaker_n imperfection_n who_o can_v not_o foresee_v all_o case_n and_o make_v general_a law_n must_v needs_o reserve_v power_n to_o he_o that_o govern_v the_o commonwealth_n because_o of_o sundry_a occurrence_n which_o may_v bring_v acception_n in_o particular_a matter_n but_o where_o god_n be_v the_o lawgiver_n from_o who_o nothing_o be_v conceal_v and_o by_o who_o no_o accident_n be_v not_o foresee_v the_o law_n can_v have_v no_o exception_n therefore_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v call_v a_o write_a law_n which_o in_o some_o case_n ought_v to_o be_v expound_v and_o make_v more_o gentle_a but_o all_o that_o law_n be_v even_o equity_n itself_o in_o humane_a law_n in_o which_o some_o case_n by_o reason_n of_o particular_a accident_n if_o they_o have_v be_v foresee_v will_v not_o have_v be_v comprehend_v a_o dispensation_n may_v well_o be_v grant_v but_o the_o dispenser_n can_v in_o any_o case_n free_v he_o that_o be_v bind_v and_o if_o he_o deny_v a_o dispensation_n to_o he_o that_o deserve_v it_o the_o party_n refuse_v shall_v notwithstanding_o remain_v without_o all_o obligation_n that_o the_o world_n have_v conceive_v a_o wrong_a opinion_n that_o to_o dispense_v be_v to_o bestow_v a_o favour_n and_o that_o the_o dispensation_n be_v requisite_a to_o be_v give_v as_o any_o other_o part_n of_o distributive_a justice_n to_o be_v exercise_v that_o the_o prelate_n do_v offend_v if_o he_o give_v it_o not_o to_o who_o it_o be_v due_a and_o in_o sum_n he_o say_v that_o when_o a_o dispensation_n be_v desire_v either_o the_o case_n be_v such_o as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v foresee_v it_o will_v have_v be_v except_v and_o here_o there_o be_v a_o obligation_n to_o dispense_v or_o will_v have_v be_v comprehend_v though_o it_o have_v be_v think_v on_o by_o the_o lawmaker_n and_o to_o this_o the_o power_n of_o dispense_n be_v not_o extend_v he_o add_v that_o flattery_n ambition_n and_o avarice_n have_v persuade_v that_o to_o dispense_v be_v to_o bestow_v a_o favour_n as_o the_o master_n will_v do_v to_o his_o servant_n or_o one_o that_o give_v of_o his_o own_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o lord_n and_o the_o church_n a_o servant_n but_o he_o be_v servant_n of_o he_o who_o be_v spouse_n of_o the_o church_n and_o by_o he_o set_v over_o the_o christian_a family_n to_o give_v as_o the_o gospel_n say_v to_o every_o one_o his_o own_o measure_n that_o be_v that_o which_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o and_o in_o conclusion_n he_o say_v that_o a_o dispensation_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o declaration_n or_o interpretation_n of_o the_o law_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o by_o dispence_v unbind_v any_o that_o be_v bind_v but_o declare_v only_o to_o he_o that_o
be_v not_o bind_v that_o he_o be_v exempt_v from_o the_o law_n the_o last_o day_n but_o one_o of_o february_n the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n return_v to_o trent_n have_v remain_v five_o day_n in_o ispruc_n which_o he_o send_v in_o continual_a return_v the_o card._n of_o lorraine_n return_v negotiation_n with_o the_o emperor_n king_n of_o the_o roman_n and_o their_o minister_n at_o his_o return_n he_o find_v the_o pope_n letter_n to_o he_o in_o which_o he_o say_v that_o he_o do_v desire_v a_o reformation_n shall_v be_v make_v and_o not_o defer_v any_o long_a and_o that_o they_o may_v have_v time_n to_o labour_v therein_o the_o word_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o order_n which_o be_v in_o difficulty_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o the_o cardinal_n do_v publish_v these_o letter_n purposely_o in_o trent_n where_o it_o be_v general_o know_v that_o the_o legate_n have_v a_o contrary_a commission_n but_o the_o papalin_n use_v all_o diligence_n to_o find_v what_o business_n the_o cardinal_n have_v by_o mean_n of_o those_o who_o be_v in_o his_o company_n and_o in_o particular_a what_o resolution_n be_v take_v concern_v the_o seventeen_o article_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o count_n frederick_n massei_n who_o come_v from_o ispruc_n but_o the_o day_n before_o relate_v that_o the_o cardinal_n be_v every_o day_n in_o private_a conferrence_n more_o than_o two_o hour_n with_o the_o emperor_n and_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n the_o frenchman_n make_v show_v to_o understand_v nothing_o of_o the_o article_n and_o say_v that_o none_o of_o the_o dutch_a divine_n have_v treat_v with_o the_o cardinal_n but_o staphilus_n only_a who_o present_v he_o with_o a_o book_n which_o he_o have_v make_v in_o matter_n of_o residence_n and_o canisius_n when_o he_o go_v to_o see_v the_o college_n of_o the_o jesuite_n that_o the_o divine_n have_v not_o speak_v to_o the_o emperor_n but_o only_o when_o go_v to_o see_v the_o library_n they_o overtake_v he_o and_o the_o king_n his_o son_n who_o demand_v what_o they_o think_v concern_v the_o grant_n of_o the_o cup_n the_o abbot_n of_o claneval_n who_o be_v first_o of_o they_o answer_v that_o he_o think_v it_o can_v not_o be_v grant_v then_o the_o emperor_n turn_v to_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n speak_v this_o verse_n of_o the_o psalm_n in_o latin_a forty_o year_n have_v i_o endure_v this_o generation_n and_o have_v always_o find_v they_o to_o err_v in_o their_o will_n but_o lorraine_n in_o visit_v the_o legate_n say_v nothing_o but_o that_o the_o emperor_n be_v very_o well_o and_o zealous_o affect_v towards_o the_o counsel_n desire_v it_o may_v produce_v some_o fruit_n and_o that_o if_o occasion_n be_v he_o will_v assist_v in_o person_n and_o go_v to_o rome_n also_o to_o pray_v the_o pope_n to_o have_v compassion_n of_o christendom_n and_o to_o suffer_v a_o reformation_n to_o be_v make_v which_o may_v not_o diminish_v his_o authority_n to_o which_o he_o bear_v exceed_v great_a reverence_n nor_o will_v have_v any_o thing_n speak_v of_o touch_v his_o holiness_n and_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n but_o to_o other_o in_o private_a he_o say_v that_o if_o the_o council_n have_v be_v govern_v with_o that_o wisdom_n as_o be_v convenient_a it_o will_v have_v have_v a_o sudden_a and_o prosperous_a end_n that_o the_o emperor_n be_v resolve_v that_o a_o good_a and_o a_o strong_a reformation_n shall_v be_v make_v which_o if_o the_o pope_n will_v continue_v to_o cross_v as_o hitherto_o he_o have_v do_v some_o great_a scandal_n will_v ensue_v that_o his_o majesty_n purpose_v to_o go_v to_o bolonia_n in_o case_n the_o pope_n come_v thither_o with_o design_n to_o receive_v the_o crown_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o such_o other_o thing_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v that_o the_o cardinal_n speak_v of_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o emperor_n the_o point_n on_o which_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n treat_v with_o the_o emperor_n council_n and_o inform_v the_o emperor_n of_o the_o disorder_n and_o deliver_v his_o opinion_n what_o remedy_n may_v be_v use_v to_o oppose_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o italian_a prelate_n of_o trent_n to_o obtain_v in_o council_n the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n the_o use_n of_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n in_o holy_a matter_n the_o relaxation_n of_o other_o precept_n of_o positive_a law_n a_o reformation_n in_o the_o head_n and_o the_o member_n and_o a_o mean_n to_o make_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n indispensable_a and_o how_o in_o case_n they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o obtain_v they_o may_v have_v a_o colourable_a occasion_n to_o justify_v their_o action_n if_o of_o themselves_o they_o shall_v make_v provision_n for_o the_o necessity_n of_o their_o people_n by_o make_v a_o nationall_n council_n assay_v also_o to_o unite_v the_o german_n with_o the_o frenchman_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n but_o this_o be_v not_o his_o negotiation_n only_o for_o he_o treat_v a_o marriage_n also_o between_o the_o queen_n of_o scotland_n and_o the_o arch_a duke_n ferdinand_n the_o emperor_n son_n and_o another_o between_o a_o daughter_n of_o his_o majesty_n and_o the_o duke_n of_o ferrara_n and_o to_o find_v a_o mean_n to_o compose_v the_o difference_n of_o precedence_n between_o france_n and_o spain_n which_o thing_n as_o domestical_a do_v touch_v prince_n more_o near_o than_o the_o public_a after_o the_o return_n of_o lorraine_n the_o congregation_n continue_v james_n alan_n a_o french_a divine_a enter_v likewise_o into_o the_o matter_n of_o dispensation_n and_o say_v that_o authority_n to_o dispense_v be_v immediate_o give_v to_o the_o church_n by_o christ_n and_o by_o it_o distribute_v to_o the_o prelate_n as_o need_v require_v according_a to_o time_n place_n and_o occasion_n he_o extrol_v the_o authority_n of_o general_n counsel_n which_o represent_v the_o church_n and_o diminish_v the_o pope_n add_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o general_n council_n to_o enlarge_v or_o restrain_v it_o the_o second_o of_o march_n the_o cardinal_n of_o mantua_n have_v be_v sick_a a_o few_o die_v the_o cardinal_n of_o mantua_n die_v day_n pass_v to_o another_o life_n which_o be_v cause_n of_o many_o mutation_n in_o council_n the_o legate_n do_v present_o send_v advice_n hereof_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o seripando_n who_o remain_v prime_a legate_n beside_o the_o common_a letter_n write_v in_o particular_a that_o he_o will_v be_v glad_a his_o holiness_n will_v send_v another_o legate_n his_o superior_a to_o govern_v the_o council_n or_o remove_v he_o but_o in_o case_n he_o will_v pope_n the_o three_o legate_n remain_v write_v to_o the_o pope_n leave_v he_o prime_a legate_n he_o tell_v he_o he_o will_v proceed_v as_o god_n shall_v inspire_v he_o and_o that_o otherwise_o it_o be_v better_a to_o remove_v he_o absolute_o the_o cardinal_n of_o varmia_n write_v a_o part_n also_o that_o his_o church_n have_v great_a need_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o a_o pastor_n and_o that_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n be_v bring_v in_o and_o other_o notable_a abuse_n desire_v leave_n to_o go_v thither_o to_o make_v provision_n herein_o and_o that_o general_o in_o all_o polonia_n there_o be_v need_n of_o a_o person_n who_o may_v keep_v the_o residue_n of_o the_o people_n in_o obedience_n say_v he_o shall_v do_v the_o apostolic_a sea_n more_o service_n in_o those_o quarter_n than_o he_o can_v by_o remain_v in_o the_o council_n but_o simoneta_n desirous_a that_o the_o weight_n of_o the_o whole_a business_n shall_v lie_v upon_o his_o shoulder_n hope_v to_o guide_v it_o with_o satisfaction_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o own_o honour_n consider_v that_o seripando_n be_v satiate_v with_o it_o and_o not_o incline_v to_o govern_v it_o and_o that_o varmiense_n be_v a_o simple_a man_n fit_a to_o bele_z he_o write_v to_o the_o pope_n that_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o council_n be_v not_o in_o a_o good_a state_n every_o novity_n will_v shake_v it_o much_o and_o therefore_o do_v think_v fit_a to_o continue_v without_o send_v other_o legate_n and_o promise_v a_o good_a issue_n in_o those_o day_n advice_n come_v from_o rome_n that_o a_o cause_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o segovia_n which_o be_v to_o be_v propose_v in_o the_o rota_n be_v refuse_v and_o that_o one_o of_o the_o auditor_n tell_v his_o proctor_n that_o the_o bishop_n be_v suspect_v of_o heresy_n this_o make_v a_o great_a stir_n not_o only_o among_o the_o spaniard_n but_o all_o the_o oltramontanes_n also_o complain_v that_o in_o rome_n calumny_n and_o infamy_n be_v raise_v against_o those_o who_o do_v not_o absolute_o adhere_v to_o their_o will_n the_o four_o of_o march_n the_o three_o rank_n begin_v to_o speak_v and_o for_o the_o five_o article_n all_o agree_v that_o it_o be_v heretical_a and_o to_o be_v condemn_v and_o so_o they_o do_v of_o the_o sixth_o yet_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n because_o some_o
residence_n be_v exquisite_o observe_v by_o all_o before_o any_o canon_n or_o humane_a decree_n be_v make_v because_o every_o one_o hold_v that_o he_o be_v bind_v by_o god_n but_o since_o that_o some_o have_v persuade_v themselves_o that_o there_o be_v no_o obligation_n but_o that_o which_o be_v derive_v from_o humane_a law_n howsoever_o these_o have_v often_o be_v renew_v and_o fortify_v with_o penalty_n yet_o all_o have_v still_o grow_v worse_o and_o worse_o the_o same_o day_n cardinal_n seripando_n die_v to_o the_o great_a grief_n of_o all_o the_o prelate_n and_o of_o all_o trent_n have_v in_o the_o morning_n receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n which_o he_o take_v out_o of_o his_o bed_n upon_o his_o knee_n after_o that_o he_o return_v into_o his_o bed_n and_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o five_o prelate_n and_o of_o the_o secretary_n of_o venice_n and_o florence_n and_o of_o all_o his_o family_n he_o make_v a_o long_a oration_n seripando_n the_o death_n of_o seripando_n in_o latin_a until_o his_o spirit_n do_v fail_v he_o he_o confess_v his_o faith_n whole_o comfortable_a to_o the_o catholic_a of_o the_o roman_a church_n speak_v of_o the_o work_n of_o a_o christian_a of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a of_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o council_n recommend_v the_o progress_n of_o it_o to_o the_o legate_n and_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n but_o strive_v to_o set_v down_o the_o mean_n his_o spirit_n do_v fail_v he_o and_o he_o say_v that_o god_n have_v forbid_v he_o to_o proceed_v further_o but_o that_o his_o divine_a majesty_n will_v speak_v himself_o in_o time_n and_o place_n and_o so_o pass_v without_o say_v any_o more_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n write_v from_o the_o emperor_n court_n to_o martin_n gusdelun_n the_o secretary_n and_o send_v a_o copy_n of_o a_o letter_n write_v to_o he_o from_o the_o king_n in_o which_o his_o majesty_n do_v advise_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v complain_v to_o he_o of_o the_o spanish_a prelate_n and_o howsoever_o he_o believe_v that_o his_o holiness_n be_v not_o well_o inform_v think_v that_o the_o prelate_n will_v show_v devotion_n towards_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n yet_o he_o give_v order_n to_o the_o count_n that_o at_o his_o come_n to_o trent_n he_o shall_v cause_v they_o to_o favour_v the_o pope_n as_o far_o as_o their_o conscience_n can_v permit_v and_o so_o to_o carry_v themselves_o that_o his_o holiness_n may_v not_o have_v cause_n to_o complain_v of_o he_o and_o to_o this_o purpose_n the_o count_n write_v also_o to_o granata_n segovia_n and_o leon._n the_o eighteen_o of_o march_n in_o which_o no_o congregation_n be_v hold_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o obsequy_n of_o seripando_n the_o french_a ambassador_n appear_v solemn_o before_o the_o two_o legate_n and_o complain_v that_o these_o eleven_o month_n since_o the_o first_o day_n of_o their_o arrival_n in_o trent_n until_o then_o they_o have_v make_v know_v the_o desolation_n of_o france_n and_o the_o danger_n of_o christendom_n for_o the_o difference_n of_o religion_n and_o declare_v that_o the_o most_o unecessary_a and_o principal_a remedy_n be_v a_o good_a entire_a reformation_n of_o manner_n and_o s_o 〈…〉_o moderation_n of_o positive_a law_n and_o have_v always_o receive_v good_a hope_n and_o gracious_a word_n but_o can_v never_o see_v any_o effect_n of_o they_o that_o the_o reformation_n be_v avoid_v as_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o father_n and_o theologue_n be_v now_o more_o hard_a and_o severe_a the_o 〈…〉_o i●_n 〈◊〉_d yield_v to_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o time_n they_o pray_v they_o to_o consider_v how_o many_o good_a man_n dye_v before_o they_o be_v able_a to_o do_v any_o good_a work_n for_o the_o public_a service_n whereof_o the_o cardinal_n of_o m_o 〈…〉_o and_o seripando_n be_v example_n desire_v they_o to_o do_v something_o for_o the_o discharge_n of_o their_o conscience_n while_o they_o have_v ti_fw-mi 〈…〉_o the_o 〈◊〉_d answer_v that_o they_o be_v displease_v with_o this_o long_o defer_v of_o matter_n 〈…〉_o 〈◊〉_d and_o seripando_n be_v cause_n that_o themselves_o 〈…〉_o so_o great_a a_o weight_n pray_v they_o to_o expect_v 〈◊〉_d and_o n_o 〈…〉_o 〈◊〉_d will_v present_o arrive_v they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d with_o the_o 〈…〉_o the_o 〈◊〉_d there_o because_o the_o imp_n 〈…〉_o make_v instance_n 〈◊〉_d will_v 〈…〉_o lie_v expect_v the_o negotiation_n of_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n in_o rome_n who_o together_o with_o lewis_n 〈…〉_o make_v request_n to_o the_o pope_n that_o a_o general_a reformation_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o the_o head_n and_o in_o the_o member_n may_v be_v make_v not_o in_o rome_n but_o in_o the_o council_n and_o also_o that_o the_o decree_n that_o the_o legate_n only_o may_v propose_v in_o council_n shall_v be_v revoke_v as_o contrary_a to_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o ambassador_n and_o prelate_n in_o propound_v what_o they_o think_v profitable_a these_o for_o their_o church_n and_o those_o for_o their_o state_n rome_n the_o negotiation_n of_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o emperor_n &_o king_n of_o spain_n in_o rome_n this_o instance_n the_o emperor_n the_o tight_a fit_n shall_v be_v first_o make_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o afterward_o to_o the_o council_n notwithstanding_o these_o prince_n be_v not_o absolute_o of_o one_o mind_n for_o howsoever_o don_n lewis_n make_v the_o same_o demand_n apart_o yet_o afterward_o he_o desire_v the_o pope_n to_o persuade_v the_o emperor_n not_o to_o seek_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n and_o marriage_n of_o priest_n say_v that_o the_o king_n have_v give_v commission_n to_o his_o ambassador_n to_o go_v to_o trent_n and_o persuade_v that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v speak_v of_o or_o if_o it_o be_v that_o the_o spanish_a prelate_n shall_v oppose_v it_o he_o exhort_v the_o pope_n to_o endeavour_n to_o win_v the_o heretic_n by_o gentleness_n not_o send_v nuncij_fw-la but_o use_v the_o mean_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o of_o other_o prince_n of_o authority_n to_o accept_v the_o demand_n of_o the_o frenchman_n and_o to_o leave_v the_o council_n free_a that_o all_o may_v propose_v and_o no_o practice_n be_v use_v in_o make_v the_o resolution_n the_o pope_n answer_n to_o the_o ambassador_n be_v that_o the_o decree_n answer_n the_o pope_n answer_n proponentibus_fw-la legatis_fw-la shall_v be_v so_o expound_v that_o every_o one_o may_v propose_v what_o he_o will_v and_o that_o to_o the_o legate_n which_o part_v late_o he_o have_v give_v liberty_n to_o resolve_v all_o thing_n which_o may_v occur_v in_o council_n without_o write_v at_o all_o that_o the_o reformation_n be_v desire_v by_o he_o and_o that_o he_o have_v often_o make_v instance_n for_o it_o and_o that_o if_o the_o world_n will_v have_v have_v it_o from_o rome_n it_o shall_v have_v be_v do_v by_o this_o time_n and_o put_v in_o execution_n also_o but_o see_v they_o will_v have_v it_o from_o trent_n if_o it_o be_v not_o effect_v the_o cause_n ought_v to_o be_v as_o 〈…〉_o ed_z only_o to_o the_o difficulty_n which_o be_v among_o the_o father_n that_o he_o desire_v to_o see_v a_o end_n of_o the_o council_n and_o do_v procure_v and_o solicit_v it_o nor_o have_v ever_o any_o thought_n to_o suspend_v it_o that_o in_o conformity_n hereof_o he_o will_v write_v to_o the_o legate_n and_o do_v write_v that_o the_o decree_n proponentibus_fw-la legatis_fw-la be_v make_v to_o take_v away_o confusion_n but_o that_o his_o will_n be_v that_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o prelate_n shall_v be_v hinder_v to_o propose_v what_o he_o think_v fit_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v dispatch_v the_o 〈◊〉_d according_a to_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o father_n without_o expect_v any_o order_n from_o rome_n but_o this_o letter_n be_v to_o give_v satisfaction_n and_o not_o to_o work_v any_o effect_n for_o morone_n the_o prime_a legate_n morone_n secret_n instruction_n give_v to_o cardinal_n morone_n have_v instruction_n apart_o to_o give_v a_o 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o order_n also_o which_o shall_v come_v from_o rome_n the_o pope_n answer_v don_n lewis_n in_o particular_a that_o he_o have_v open_v the_o council_n upon_o promise_n of_o his_o majesty_n that_o he_o will_v protect_v it_o and_o pre●●rue_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostoli_fw-la 〈…〉_o sea_n but_o that_o he_o find_v he_o be_v decert_v in_o regard_n he_o have_v 〈…〉_o his_o prelate_n then_o from_o he_o be_v not_o please_v it_o shall_v have_v licence_n nor_o be_v in_o servitude_n to_o those_o prince_n who_o preach_v liberty_n and_o be_v desirous_a to_o command_v that_o every_o one_o make_v request_n to_o he_o for_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o council_n but_o he_o do_v not_o know_v whether_o they_o have_v all_o well_o consider_v of_o what_o importance_n it_o will_v be_v if_o the_o prelate_n have_v the_o reins_n lay_v on_o the_o neck_n that_o howsoever_o there_o be_v among_o they_o some_o man_n excellent_a for_o
holiness_n have_v deprive_v himself_o of_o do_v the_o king_n any_o good_a office_n by_o give_v he_o so_o great_a a_o grievance_n the_o pope_n answer_v again_o not_o for_o out_o cause_n but_o your_o own_o and_o for_o the_o benefit_n 〈◊〉_d by_o we_o to_o the_o king_n these_o word_n be_v not_o worthy_a to_o be_v put_v into_o the_o protestation_n make_v unto_o 〈◊〉_d the_o precedent_n birague_n arrive_v in_o trent_n at_o the_o same_o time_n who_o as_o we_o say_v before_o the_o french_a king_n have_v send_v to_o the_o council_n and_o the_o emperor_n who_o trent_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d trent_n be_v receive_v in_o congregation_n the_o second_o of_o 〈◊〉_d where_o no_o ambassador_n inferior_a to_o the_o french_a be_v present_a that_o he_o may_v 〈◊〉_d they_o place_n because_o congregation_n be_v receive_v in_o congregation_n he_o have_v not_o the_o title_n of_o ambassador_n in_o the_o king_n 〈◊〉_d he_o present_v the_o letter_n of_o the_o king_n date_v the_o fifteen_o of_o april_n which_o saiel_n in_o substance_n that_o the_o trouble_n and_o 〈◊〉_d raise_v in_o the_o kingdom_n for_o cause_n of_o religion_n be_v very_o well_o knowe●●_n also_o his_o 〈◊〉_d with_o the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o assistance_n of_o prince_n and_o 〈◊〉_d his_o friend_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o arm_n that_o it_o please_v god_n in_o his_o incomprehensible_a judgement_n not_o to_o suffer_v those_o remedy_n of_o arm_n to_o produce_v any_o thing_n but_o 〈◊〉_d slaughter_n sacking_n of_o city_n ruin_n of_o church_n loss_n of_o prince_n lord_n knight_n and_o other_o calamity_n and_o desolation_n so_o that_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o know_v that_o they_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o heal_v the_o infirmity_n of_o spirit_n which_o be_v overcome_v only_o by_o reason_n and_o persuasion_n that_o this_o have_v cause_v he_o to_o make_v a_o pacification_n according_a to_o the_o content_n of_o his_o letter_n dispatch_v upon_o that_o occasion_n not_o to_o permit_v the_o establish_n of_o a_o new_a faith_n in_o the_o kingdom_n but_o that_o arm_n be_v lay_v aside_o he_o may_v with_o less_o contradiction_n make_v a_o union_n of_o all_o his_o subject_n in_o the_o same_o holy_a and_o catholic_a religion_n a_o benefit_n which_o he_o do_v expect_v from_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o from_o a_o good_a and_o serious_a reformation_n which_o he_o do_v promise_v himself_o from_o the_o synod_n and_o because_o he_o have_v many_o thing_n to_o represent_v to_o they_o and_o to_o desire_v of_o they_o he_o resolve_v to_o send_v mounseur_fw-fr renaut_n birague_n who_o will_v inform_v they_o of_o all_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n pray_v they_o to_o receive_v and_o hear_v he_o with_o courtesy_n the_o letter_n be_v read_v the_o precedent_n speak_v relate_v very_o particular_o the_o oration_n and_o make_v a_o oration_n discord_n war_n and_o calamity_n of_o france_n the_o state_n and_o necessity_n into_o which_o the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n be_v reduce_v the_o imprisonment_n of_o the_o constable_n and_o death_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o guise_n which_o make_v they_o to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v without_o arm_n he_o justify_v the_o accord_n at_o large_a as_o be_v make_v for_o pure_a and_o mere_a necessity_n and_o with_o more_o advantage_n to_o the_o catholic_a party_n then_o to_o the_o contrary_n that_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o king_n and_o council_n be_v not_o to_o suffer_v a_o introduction_n or_o a_o establishment_n of_o a_o new_a religion_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a arm_n and_o disobedience_n be_v remove_v to_o reduce_v with_o less_o contradiction_n and_o by_o the_o way_n observe_v by_o his_o ancestor_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o church_n those_o that_o be_v out_o of_o their_o way_n and_o to_o reunite_v all_o in_o a_o holy_a catholic_a profession_n know_v very_o well_o that_o the_o exercise_n of_o two_o religion_n can_v long_o subsist_v and_o continue_v in_o one_o kingdom_n then_o he_o say_v that_o the_o king_n do_v hope_n to_o reunite_v quick_o all_o his_o people_n in_o one_o opinion_n by_o the_o singular_a grace_n of_o god_n and_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o council_n a_o remedy_n use_v always_o by_o the_o ancient_n against_o such_o evil_n as_o those_o be_v which_o do_v then_o afflict_v christendom_n hepray_v the_o father_n to_o further_o the_o king_n good_a intention_n by_o a_o serious_a reformation_n by_o reduce_v manner_n to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o purity_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o by_o compose_v the_o difference_n in_o religion_n promise_v that_o the_o king_n will_v always_o be_v catholic_a and_o devote_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o his_o ancestor_n he_o say_v in_o conclusion_n that_o the_o king_n do_v trust_v in_o the_o goodness_n and_o wisdom_n of_o the_o father_n that_o they_o will_v compassionate_v the_o misery_n of_o france_n and_o labour_n to_o cure_v they_o the_o precedent_n have_v commission_n to_o demand_v that_o the_o council_n may_v be_v translate_v to_o a_o place_n where_o the_o protestant_n may_v have_v free_a access_n for_o notwithstanding_o all_o the_o security_n give_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o council_n they_o hold_v trent_n suspect_v and_o desire_v a_o place_n where_o the_o emperor_n may_v secure_v their_o but_o he_o touch_v not_o this_o point_n by_o the_o advie●_n of_o lordiu●_n and_o the_o french_a ambassador_n who_o ●●ought_v it_o not_o fit_a to_o make_v 〈◊〉_d and_o hold_v it_o 〈…〉_o of_o which_o 〈…〉_o k_fw-mi shall_v answer_v birague_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o synod_n condole_v the_o misfortune_n and_o calamity_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n and_o exhort_v the_o king_n that_o have_v be_v force_v to_o make_v peace_n and_o to_o grant_v something_o to_o the_o hugonot_n to_o restore_v religion_n entire_o he_o will_v for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n when_o the_o kingdom_n be_v in_o peace_n labour_n without_o any_o delay_n that_o this_o good_a end_n may_v be_v obtain_v and_o they_o show_v this_o answer_n to_o lorraine_n after_o the_o mass_n before_o they_o enter_v into_o the_o congregation_n who_o say_v he_o do_v not_o like_a they_o shall_v approve_v the_o king_n fact_n whereof_o they_o shall_v rather_o complain_v as_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o faith_n and_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o take_v time_n to_o answer_v as_o the_o use_n be_v in_o matter_n of_o importance_n whereupon_o they_o give_v order_n that_o birague_n shall_v be_v answer_v thus_o insubstance_n that_o in_o regard_n the_o thing_n relate_v and_o propose_v by_o he_o be_v of_o great_a weight_n and_o have_v need_n of_o much_o consideration_n the_o synod_n will_v take_v a_o fit_a time_n to_o answer_v he_o the_o french_a ambassador_n be_v much_o displease_v with_o this_o fact_n of_o lorraine_n think_v that_o if_o the_o legate_n have_v not_o be_v dispose_v to_o commend_v the_o king_n action_n he_o ought_v to_o have_v incite_v they_o yea_o to_o force_v they_o as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v whereas_o on_o the_o contrary_a they_o judge_v a_o commendation_n of_o the_o fact_n to_o be_v just_a and_o reasonable_a as_o indeed_o it_o be_v he_o have_v dissuade_v they_o but_o consult_v among_o themselves_o they_o resolve_v not_o to_o write_v thereof_o into_o france_n for_o many_o respect_n and_o lansac_n be_v to_o return_v short_o may_v make_v that_o relation_n which_o shall_v be_v think_v necessary_a the_o month_n before_o there_o happen_v a_o great_a tumult_n and_o popular_a commotion_n in_o bavaria_n because_o the_o cup_n be_v not_o allow_v nor_o marry_a man_n suffer_v priest_n a_o tumult_n in_o bavaria_n for_o the_o cup_n and_o marriage_n of_o priest_n to_o preach_v which_o disorder_n proceed_v so_o far_o that_o to_o appease_v they_o the_o duke_n promise_v in_o the_o diet_n that_o if_o in_o all_o june_n a_o resolution_n be_v not_o make_v in_o trent_n or_o by_o the_o pope_n to_o give_v they_o satisfaction_n himself_o will_v grant_v both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o this_o news_n come_v to_o the_o council_n make_v the_o legate_n dispatch_v in_o diligence_n nicolaus_n ormonetus_n to_o persuade_v that_o prince_n not_o to_o make_v such_o a_o grant_n promise_v that_o the_o council_n will_v not_o be_v want_v to_o his_o necessity_n to_o who_o the_o duke_n answer_v that_o to_o show_v his_o obedience_n and_o devotion_n to_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n he_o will_v use_v all_o mean_n to_o entertain_v his_o people_n as_o long_o as_o he_o can_v expect_v and_o hope_v that_o the_o council_n will_v resolve_v that_o which_o they_o see_v to_o be_v necessary_a notwithstanding_o the_o determination_n make_v before_o but_o the_o congregation_n proceed_v in_o handle_v the_o conciliarie_n matter_n annates_fw-la the_o bishopof_n nimes_n speak_v against_o annates_fw-la in_o one_o of_o they_o the_o bishop_n of_o nimes_n speak_v of_o the_o abuse_n of_o order_n discourse_v of_o annates_fw-la he_o say_v that_o howsoever_o it_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v that_o all_o church_n ought_v to_o contribute_v to_o
instruct_v in_o christian_a doctrine_n that_o to_o omit_v antiquity_n the_o schoolman_n and_o great_a part_n of_o the_o canonist_n have_v constant_o say_v that_o the_o dispensation_n of_o prelate_n be_v good_a cleave_v non_fw-la errante_fw-la and_o not_o otherwise_o hugonius_n also_o do_v offer_v to_o prove_v that_o assertion_n that_o there_o be_v the_o same_o tribunal_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v impious_a and_o scandalous_a make_v mortality_n equal_a to_o immortality_n and_o corruptible_a judgement_n of_o man_n to_o the_o incorruptible_a judgement_n of_o god_n and_o that_o it_o do_v proceed_v from_o ignorance_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v that_o servant_n which_o be_v set_v over_o the_o family_n of_o christ_n not_o to_o perform_v the_o office_n of_o the_o master_n of_o the_o family_n but_o only_o to_o distribute_v to_o every_o one_o not_o arbitrary_o but_o that_o which_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o master_n that_o he_o be_v amaze_v that_o christian_a care_n can_v endure_v to_o hear_v that_o the_o whole_a power_n of_o christ_n be_v impart_v to_o any_o they_o all_o speak_v some_o censure_v one_o some_o another_o of_o the_o jesuite_n assertion_n but_o the_o cardinal_n tell_v they_o that_o it_o will_v be_v no_o small_a matter_n if_o they_o can_v obtain_v that_o in_o the_o public_a decree_n of_o the_o council_n way_n may_v not_o be_v give_v to_o that_o doctrine_n at_o which_o it_o be_v convenient_a that_o all_o shall_v aim_v to_o which_o end_n they_o shall_v more_o easy_o come_v if_o the_o matter_n be_v pass_v over_o in_o silence_n and_o suffer_v to_o die_v in_o oblivion_n which_o by_o contradiction_n may_v do_v some_o prejudice_n to_o the_o truth_n they_o be_v pacify_v yet_o not_o so_o but_o that_o in_o their_o private_a meeting_n they_o speak_v of_o it_o very_o much_o but_o the_o legate_n do_v so_o accommodate_v the_o two_o article_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o bishop_n and_o of_o residence_n with_o general_a term_n that_o they_o residence_n the_o decree_n of_o the_o institution_n and_o of_o residence_n give_v satisfaction_n to_o both_o party_n and_o to_o lorraine_n also_o but_o have_v consult_v on_o they_o with_o the_o popish_a divine_n and_o some_o canonist_n prelate_n these_o say_v that_o they_o do_v admit_v a_o interpretation_n prejudicial_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o the_o use_n of_o the_o court_n the_o bishop_n of_o nicastro_n who_o have_v often_o contend_v in_o this_o matter_n in_o favour_n of_o rome_n say_v plain_o that_o by_o that_o form_n of_o speech_n it_o be_v infer_v that_o all_o jurisdiction_n of_o bishop_n do_v not_o proceed_v from_o the_o pope_n but_o a_o part_n of_o it_o immediate_o from_o christ_n which_o be_v by_o no_o mean_n to_o be_v endure_v other_o papalin_n maintain_v the_o same_o and_o make_v a_o bad_a interpretation_n of_o all_o if_o it_o be_v not_o plain_o say_v that_o bishop_n have_v all_o jurisdiction_n from_o the_o pope_n therefore_o the_o legate_n send_v the_o article_n thus_o reform_v to_o the_o pope_n not_o so_o much_o that_o they_o may_v be_v examine_v in_o rome_n as_o because_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a importance_n they_o will_v propose_v nothing_o without_o the_o pope_n knowledge_n the_o cardinal_n depute_v for_o these_o affair_n have_v see_v and_o examine_v they_o do_v judge_v that_o the_o form_n be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v all_o bishop_n in_o their_o diocese_n equal_a to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o pope_n reprehend_v the_o legate_n for_o send_v they_o because_o he_o know_v that_o the_o mayor_n part_n in_o the_o council_n be_v good_a catholic_n and_o devote_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o in_o confidence_n hereof_o be_v content_a that_o the_o proposition_n and_o resolution_n shall_v be_v determine_v in_o trent_n without_o his_o knowledge_n notwithstanding_o he_o think_v he_o ought_v not_o to_o consent_v to_o any_o prejudicial_a thing_n for_o fear_n of_o give_v bad_a example_n to_o they_o and_o be_v a_o cause_n that_o they_o also_o shall_v assent_v unto_o it_o against_o their_o conscience_n at_o this_o time_n they_o have_v another_o very_a hard_a negotiation_n also_o for_o the_o king_n pope_n a_o difficulty_n whether_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n ought_v to_o promise_v obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n of_o the_o roman_n be_v to_o send_v ambassador_n to_o give_v he_o a_o account_n of_o his_o election_n will_v not_o do_v as_o other_o emperor_n and_o king_n have_v do_v who_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o make_v difficulty_n do_v promise_n and_o swear_v whatsoever_o the_o pope_n will_v have_v they_o but_o he_o have_v respect_v not_o to_o offend_v the_o prince_n and_o protestant_n of_o germany_n will_v first_o know_v what_o word_n must_v be_v use_v the_o consultation_n hereof_o be_v commit_v in_o the_o cardinal_n they_o resolve_v that_o he_o must_v demand_v confirmation_n of_o the_o election_n and_o swear_v obedience_n according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o all_o other_o emperor_n whereunto_o he_o answer_v that_o they_o be_v deceive_v and_o that_o he_o will_v consent_v to_o nothing_o which_o may_v prejudice_n his_o successor_n as_o the_o action_n of_o his_o predecessor_n be_v allege_v against_o himself_o and_o that_o it_o be_v to_o confess_v he_o be_v vassal_n and_o he_o propose_v that_o his_o ambassador_n shall_v use_v these_o word_n that_o his_o majesty_n will_v perform_v all_o reverence_n devotion_n and_o duty_n to_o his_o holiness_n and_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n with_o promise_n not_o only_o to_o preserve_v but_o to_o enlarge_v as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v the_o holy_a catholic_a faith_n this_o negotiation_n continue_v this_o whole_a year_n without_o agreement_n and_o final_o in_o rome_n they_o think_v they_o have_v find_v a_o temper_n for_o it_o propose_v that_o he_o shall_v swear_v obedience_n not_o as_o emperor_n but_o as_o king_n of_o hungary_n and_o bohemia_n because_o it_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v they_o say_v that_o king_n steven_n do_v give_v the_o kingdom_n to_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1000_o acknowledge_v to_o receive_v it_o from_o the_o say_a sea_n and_o make_v himself_o vassal_n and_o that_o vlad●slaus_n duke_n of_o bohemia_n do_v receive_v from_o alexander_n the_o second_o power_n to_o wear_v a_o mitre_n bind_v himself_o to_o pay_v a_o hundred_o mark_n of_o silver_n every_o year_n these_o thing_n be_v consider_v of_o in_o germany_n because_o there_o be_v no_o proof_n of_o they_o but_o the_o bare_a affirmation_n of_o gregory_n the_o seven_o be_v deride_v and_o answer_n be_v make_v that_o they_o desire_v more_o fresh_a example_n and_o more_o certain_a and_o more_o lawful_a title_n messenger_n go_v to_o and_o fro_o with_o diverse_a proposition_n answer_n and_o reply_n of_o which_o we_o will_v now_o relate_v the_o issue_n that_o we_o may_v return_v no_o more_o to_o they_o which_o be_v that_o twenty_o month_n after_o count_n elfestain_v ambassador_n of_o that_o king_n arrive_v in_o rome_n with_o who_o the_o same_o treaty_n be_v renew_v to_o demand_v confirmation_n and_o swear_v obedience_n he_o answer_v that_o the_o oration_n which_o he_o be_v to_o recite_v punctual_o be_v in_o writing_n and_o that_o he_o have_v commission_n not_o to_o alter_v one_o jot_n the_o pope_n therefore_o propose_v the_o business_n to_o the_o cardinal_n in_o a_o general_a congregation_n who_o after_o long_a consultation_n conclude_v that_o howsoever_o the_o confirmation_n be_v not_o demand_v nor_o obedience_n promise_v yet_o in_o the_o answer_n to_o the_o ambassador_n it_o shall_v be_v say_v that_o his_o holiness_n do_v confirm_v the_o election_n supply_v all_o defect_n thereof_o the_o facto_fw-la &_o de_fw-la jure_fw-la and_o do_v receive_v the_o king_n obedience_n without_o say_v it_o be_v demand_v or_o not_o demand_v promise_v or_o not_o promise_v this_o ceremony_n give_v but_o small_a content_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o less_o to_o the_o college_n of_o cardinal_n but_o to_o return_v to_o the_o time_n whereof_o i_o write_v the_o pope_n be_v to_o answer_v the_o frequent_a instance_n make_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o ambassador_n resident_a in_o rome_n and_o by_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n in_o trent_n for_o abrogation_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o propoventibus_fw-la legatis_fw-la and_o be_v satiate_v with_o this_o trouble_n he_o write_v to_o the_o legate_n that_o the_o suspension_n of_o it_o shall_v be_v propose_v in_o congregation_n but_o morone_n answer_v the_o ambassador_n who_o urge_v the_o pope_n order_n that_o rather_o than_o he_o will_v condescend_v unto_o it_o he_o desire_v that_o his_o holiness_n will_v remove_v he_o this_o answer_n be_v give_v without_o participation_n of_o the_o other_o legate_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n resolve_v by_o he_o alone_o legate_n morone_n be_v think_v to_o take_v too_o much_o upon_o 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o other_o legate_n put_v they_o in_o a_o jealousy_n that_o he_o take_v too_o much_o upon_o he_o say_v that_o
the_o council_n shall_v be_v communicate_v unto_o he_o whereof_o though_o he_o see_v no_o effect_n yet_o he_o do_v not_o complain_v but_o he_o be_v trouble_v that_o he_o have_v command_v the_o legate_n not_o to_o impart_v unto_o he_o their_o own_o proper_a affair_n and_o especial_o that_o in_o which_o he_o may_v have_v do_v more_o good_a than_o another_o add_v that_o more_o mischief_n have_v ensue_v but_o for_o his_o mediation_n he_o say_v moreover_o that_o the_o blame_n of_o all_o be_v impute_v to_o his_o holiness_n and_o pray_v he_o that_o he_o will_v not_o be_v the_o author_n and_o cause_n of_o so_o great_a a_o evil_a he_o send_v musottus_n unto_o he_o also_o by_o post_n to_o inform_v he_o more_o particular_o of_o the_o resolution_n of_o the_o french_a ambassador_n and_o of_o the_o imminent_a danger_n the_o count_n of_o luna_n complain_v of_o the_o stiffness_n of_o the_o french_a ambassador_n and_o magnify_v his_o own_o great_a patience_n and_o modesty_n and_o desire_v the_o legate_n that_o the_o next_o sunday_n he_o may_v be_v admit_v to_o equal_a place_n &_o ceremony_n according_a to_o the_o pope_n order_n some_o think_v it_o be_v a_o stratagem_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o dissolve_v the_o council_n and_o the_o papalin_n call_v amorevoli_n say_v that_o if_o they_o must_v come_v to_o a_o dissolution_n they_o desire_v it_o shall_v rather_o happen_v for_o the_o controversy_n about_o the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v rector_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a think_v it_o will_v be_v more_o easy_a to_o justify_v his_o holiness_n in_o that_o and_o to_o lay_v all_o the_o blame_n upon_o the_o frenchman_n the_o next_o morning_n the_o last_o of_o june_n the_o count_n have_v assemble_v the_o spanish_a prelate_n and_o many_o italian_n tell_v they_o that_o the_o day_n before_o he_o go_v into_o the_o chapel_n not_o to_o give_v occasion_n of_o any_o disturbance_n but_o to_o keep_v the_o right_n of_o his_o king_n and_o make_v use_n of_o the_o pope_n order_n that_o since_o he_o have_v understand_v that_o in_o case_n he_o shall_v return_v to_o the_o chapel_n again_o the_o frenchman_n will_v protest_v which_o if_o they_o shall_v do_v he_o must_v not_o fail_v to_o answer_v they_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n and_o term_n that_o they_o shall_v use_v as_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o holiness_n so_o also_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o majesty_n of_o his_o king_n the_o prelate_n answer_v that_o if_o it_o come_v to_o this_o they_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o do_v his_o holiness_n service_n and_o not_o fail_v to_o hold_v esteem_n of_o his_o catholic_a majesty_n as_o far_o as_o do_v concern_v they_o the_o count_n pray_v they_o again_o to_o consider_v well_o of_o all_o which_o may_v happen_v in_o such_o a_o case_n say_v that_o himself_o will_v come_v prepare_v also_o and_o know_v that_o the_o frenchman_n can_v take_v but_o three_o course_n either_o against_o the_o legate_n or_o against_o the_o king_n or_o against_o he_o the_o ambassador_n he_o mean_v to_o be_v provide_v for_o a_o answer_n for_o all_o all_o the_o ambassador_n of_o other_o prince_n persuade_v the_o legate_n to_o find_v a_o temper_n that_o so_o great_a disorder_n may_v not_o happen_v who_o answer_v that_o they_o must_v needs_o execute_v the_o pope_n command_n which_o be_v precise_a and_o without_o any_o reservation_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o they_o have_v promise_v the_o count_n to_o do_v it_o whensoever_o he_o will_v request_v it_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n protest_v to_o they_o that_o in_o case_n they_o do_v so_o he_o will_v go_v into_o the_o pulpit_n and_o show_v of_o what_o importance_n the_o matter_n be_v and_o what_o a_o ruin_n it_o will_v bring_v to_o all_o christendom_n and_o with_o the_o crucifix_n in_o hand_n will_v cry_v misericordia_fw-la persuade_v the_o father_n and_o people_n to_o go_v out_o of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o may_v not_o see_v so_o fearful_a a_o schism_n and_o cry_v he_o that_o desire_v the_o welfare_n of_o christendom_n let_v he_o follow_v i_o will_v depart_v out_o of_o the_o church_n hope_v he_o shall_v be_v follow_v by_o every_o one_o the_o legate_n move_v herewith_o persuade_v the_o count_n to_o be_v content_a that_o no_o chapel_n shall_v be_v hold_v the_o next_o sunday_n nor_o any_o procession_n make_v according_a to_o the_o use_n and_o send_v the_o pope_n advise_v of_o all_o continual_a congregation_n be_v hold_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o french_a and_o spanish_a ambassador_n the_o spaniard_n sometime_o give_v hope_n he_o will_v be_v content_a and_o sometime_o make_v instance_n to_o go_v to_o church_n to_o execute_v the_o pope_n order_n for_o the_o incense_n and_o pax._n and_o the_o french_a ambassador_n be_v resolve_v to_o protest_v and_o depart_v and_o say_v open_o that_o they_o will_v not_o protest_v against_o the_o legate_n be_v but_o mere_a nor_o against_o the_o king_n of_o spanic_n or_o the_o count_n his_o ambassador_n in_o regard_n they_o do_v prosecute_v their_o cause_n nor_o against_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n which_o they_o will_v always_o honour_v follow_v the_o step_n of_o their_o predecessor_n but_o against_o the_o person_n of_o the_o pope_n from_o who_o the_o prejudice_n and_o innovation_n come_v as_o make_v himself_o a_o party_n and_o give_v cause_n of_o schism_n and_o for_o another_o cause_n also_o appeal_n unto_o the_o future_a pope_n lawful_o elect_v and_o to_o a_o true_a and_o lawful_a council_n threaten_v to_o depart_v and_o to_o celebrate_v a_o nationall_n the_o prelate_n and_o other_o frenchman_n apart_o do_v common_o say_v to_o every_o one_o that_o the_o ambassador_n have_v protestation_n against_o the_o person_n of_o the_o bishop_n who_o carry_v himself_o for_o pope_n be_v not_o lawful_a because_o there_o be_v a_o nullity_n in_o the_o election_n for_o simony_n intimate_v particular_o the_o obligation_n which_o cardinal_n caraffa_n have_v from_o the_o duke_n of_o florence_n elect_v the_o prenchman_n make_v a_o question_n whether_o the_o pope_n be_v lawful_o elect_v with_o promise_n of_o a_o certain_a sum_n of_o money_n which_o that_o cardinal_n send_v afterward_o to_o the_o catholic_a king_n pretend_v it_o can_v not_o be_v make_v but_o by_o consent_n of_o the_o pope_n before_o his_o assumption_n as_o also_o another_o obligation_n make_v by_o the_o pope_n own_o hand_n than_o cardinal_n in_o the_o conclave_n to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o naples_n whereof_o mention_n have_v be_v make_v before_o and_o the_o precedent_n de_fw-fr ferrieres_n prepare_v a_o very_a sharp_a oration_n in_o latin_a and_o a_o protestation_n which_o howsoever_o it_o be_v not_o make_v yet_o it_o be_v print_v and_o be_v show_v by_o the_o frenchman_n and_o be_v still_o to_o be_v see_v in_o print_n as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v recite_v to_o relate_v the_o substance_n whereof_o be_v not_o beside_o our_o present_a purpose_n that_o it_o may_v be_v see_v not_o what_o the_o french_a say_v only_o but_o what_o opinion_n they_o bring_v to_o the_o council_n he_o say_v in_o substance_n that_o that_o council_n have_v be_v call_v by_o mean_n of_o francis_n protestation_n the_o protestation_n and_o charles_n brothers_z french_a king_n they_o the_o french_a king_n ambassador_n be_v sorry_a they_o shall_v be_v force_v to_o depart_v or_o consent_v to_o the_o diminution_n of_o the_o king_n dignity_n that_o the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o french_a king_n be_v know_v to_o whosoever_o have_v read_v the_o pope_n law_n and_o the_o history_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o also_o those_o who_o have_v read_v the_o volume_n of_o the_o counsel_n must_v needs_o know_v what_o place_n themselves_o ought_v to_o hold_v that_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o catholic_a king_n in_o former_a general_a counsel_n have_v follow_v the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o most_o christian_n that_o now_o the_o mutation_n be_v make_v not_o by_o the_o father_n who_o if_o they_o have_v be_v in_o liberty_n will_v not_o have_v deprive_v any_o prince_n of_o his_o possession_n nor_o by_o the_o catholic_a king_n so_o near_o ally_v in_o amity_n and_o kindred_n with_o their_o king_n but_o by_o the_o father_n of_o all_o christian_n who_o in_o stead_n of_o bread_n have_v give_v his_o elder_a son_n a_o stone_n and_o for_o fish_n a_o serpent_n to_o wound_v with_o one_o sting_n the_o king_n and_o the_o french_a church_n together_o that_o pius_n 4._o do_v sow_v seed_n of_o discord_n to_o disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o king_n who_o be_v in_o amity_n change_v by_o force_n and_o injustice_n the_o order_n of_o sit_v always_o use_v by_o the_o ambassador_n and_o last_o in_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o lateran_n to_o show_v that_o he_o be_v above_o counsel_n that_o he_o can_v neither_o disturb_v the_o amity_n of_o the_o king_n nor_o alter_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n that_o the_o council_n be_v
fornication_n and_o to_o confine_v the_o dispensution_n also_o with_o in_o the_o limit_n which_o shall_v be_v speak_v of_o in_o recite_v the_o decree_n there_o be_v some_o contention_n also_o about_o the_o nine_o point_n in_o which_o superior_n marry_v whether_o one_o may_v be_v forbid_v or_o force_v to_o marry_v be_v forbid_v to_o force_v their_o subject_n to_o marry_v with_o threat_n and_o punishment_n name_v the_o emperor_n and_o king_n gulielmus_fw-la cassodorus_n bishop_n of_o bacellona_n oppose_v and_o say_v that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v presuppose_v that_o great_a prince_n will_v meddle_v in_o marriage_n but_o for_o great_a cause_n and_o for_o the_o public_a good_a that_o threat_n and_o punishment_n be_v then_o bad_a when_o they_o be_v use_v contrary_a to_o order_v of_o law_n but_o penal_a precept_n conformable_a to_o the_o law_n be_v just_a and_o can_v not_o be_v reprehend_v if_o there_o be_v any_o case_n he_o say_v in_o which_o the_o superior_a may_v just_o command_v a_o marriage_n he_o may_v force_v the_o celebration_n of_o it_o by_o penal_a command_n allead_v also_o that_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n decide_v by_o the_o divine_n that_o just_a fear_n do_v not_o cause_v a_o involuntary_a action_n he_o desire_v that_o lawful_a cause_n may_v be_v except_v and_o those_o superior_n only_o comprehend_v in_o the_o decree_n who_o do_v compel_v against_o justice_n and_o order_n of_o the_o law_n say_v that_o many_o case_n may_v occur_v in_o which_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o public_a good_a do_v require_v the_o celebration_n of_o a_o marriage_n which_o he_o that_o will_v say_v that_o a_o prince_n can_v not_o command_v and_o cause_n by_o compulsion_n to_o be_v celebrate_v shall_v offend_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o man_n to_o this_o reason_n he_o add_v a_o example_n that_o in_o the_o year_n 1556._o the_o second_o of_o january_n paul_n the_o 4._o send_v a_o monitorie_a to_o dame_n joan_n of_o arragon_n wife_n of_o ascanius_n columna_fw-la that_o she_o shall_v not_o marry_v any_o of_o her_o daughter_n without_o his_o leave_n or_o if_o she_o do_v the_o matrimony_n though_o consummate_v shall_v be_v void_a which_o that_o most_o wise_a and_o sincere_a pope_n will_v not_o have_v do_v if_o prince_n have_v not_o power_n to_o marry_v their_o subject_n in_o case_n of_o the_o public_a good_a in_o the_o point_n of_o not_o mention_v prince_n he_o be_v follow_v by_o many_o and_o the_o name_n of_o the_o emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n be_v take_v away_o but_o for_o the_o residue_n he_o be_v much_o oppose_v with_o this_o reason_n only_o that_o matrimony_n be_v a_o holy_a thing_n in_o which_o the_o secular_a power_n have_v no_o authority_n and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o lawful_a cause_n to_o compel_v any_o to_o marry_v it_o must_v be_v do_v by_o the_o ecclesiastical_a power_n only_o the_o relation_n of_o the_o monitory_a of_o paul_n raise_v a_o great_a whisper_v in_o the_o congregation_n and_o afterward_o give_v matter_n of_o diverse_a discourse_n some_o say_v he_o do_v it_o not_o as_o prince_n but_o as_o pope_n and_o that_o he_o have_v reason_n to_o do_v it_o in_o regard_n ascanius_n columna_fw-la be_v a_o traitor_n unto_o he_o he_o will_v not_o have_v he_o get_v new_a adherence_n by_o marriage_n of_o his_o daughter_n by_o which_o he_o may_v be_v confirm_v in_o his_o contumacy_n other_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n as_o vicar_n of_o christ_n have_v no_o traitor_n intemporall_a matter_n and_o that_o the_o opinion_n of_o those_o who_o think_v that_o marriage_n may_v be_v make_v void_a by_o apostolic_a authority_n be_v not_o well_o ground_v except_o it_o be_v by_o course_n of_o law_n or_o general_a canon_n but_o not_o for_o particular_a person_n and_o that_o for_o this_o neither_o reason_n can_v be_v bring_v nor_o example_n find_v some_o deny_v that_o one_o may_v ground_v himself_o upon_o such_o action_n of_o pope_n which_o show_n rather_o how_o far_o the_o abuse_n of_o their_o power_n can_v stretch_v then_o how_o far_o the_o lawful_a use_n thereof_o be_v extend_v and_o there_o be_v no_o less_o difficulty_n because_o the_o decree_n do_v comprehend_v father_n mother_n and_o other_o domestical_a superior_n who_o may_v compel_v their_o child_n especial_o daughter_n to_o marry_v and_o it_o be_v consider_v that_o to_o come_v to_o excommunication_n in_o case_n of_o this_o kind_n be_v very_o hard_o yet_o those_o who_o before_o have_v defend_v that_o child_n be_v bind_v to_o obey_v their_o father_n in_o this_o particular_a do_v maintain_v it_o a_o temper_n be_v propose_v that_o have_v first_o command_v politic_a superior_n upon_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n domestical_a superior_n shall_v be_v admonish_v not_o to_o compel_v their_o child_n against_o their_o will_n but_o the_o same_o man_n still_o oppose_v and_o say_v it_o be_v not_o just_a to_o take_v from_o father_n that_o power_n which_o god_n have_v give_v they_o and_o in_o the_o end_n it_o be_v resolve_v to_o take_v this_o part_n quite_o away_o but_o the_o bishop_n of_o barcelona_n and_o some_o few_o beside_o be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o opinion_n as_o to_o say_v that_o as_o the_o authority_n of_o father_n and_o other_o domestical_a superior_n over_o marriage_n be_v manifest_a or_o at_o the_o least_o not_o to_o be_v doubt_v and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v speak_v of_o so_o the_o same_o consideration_n ought_v to_o be_v have_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o politic_n superior_n the_o congregation_n assemble_v to_o discuss_v this_o point_n be_v end_v the_o last_o whereof_o be_v the_o last_o of_o julie_n they_o begin_v to_o speak_v private_o of_o secret_a marriage_n and_o both_o party_n continue_v in_o their_o own_o opinion_n some_o say_v that_o the_o difficulty_n do_v presuppose_v a_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o therefore_o can_v be_v determine_v be_v contradict_v by_o a_o notable_a number_n this_o trouble_a they_o much_o who_o desire_v they_o shall_v be_v make_v void_a and_o think_v that_o they_o be_v whole_o bar_v from_o all_o possibility_n to_o obtain_v it_o at_o this_o time_n a_o difficulty_n arise_v though_o private_a yet_o very_o contentious_a toledo_n a_o difficulty_n about_o censure_v the_o archbishop_n of_o toledo_n for_o the_o deputy_n concern_v the_o index_n have_v give_v the_o work_n of_o bartholomeus_n caranza_n archbishop_n of_o toledo_n to_o some_o divine_n to_o be_v peruse_v and_o they_o have_v relate_v that_o nothing_o worthy_a of_o censure_n be_v find_v in_o it_o the_o congregation_n do_v approve_v it_o and_o make_v public_a faith_n thereof_o at_o the_o petition_n of_o his_o agent_n but_o because_o the_o book_n and_o the_o author_n be_v under_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o inquisition_n of_o spain_n the_o secretary_n castellunne_v complain_v to_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n and_o the_o count_n to_o the_o father_n of_o that_o congregation_n desire_v a_o retractation_n the_o father_n be_v not_o incline_v to_o revoke_v the_o decree_n because_o they_o think_v it_o just_a the_o bishop_n of_o lerida_n either_o move_v by_o the_o count_n or_o for_o some_o other_o cause_n begin_v to_o speak_v against_o it_o and_o to_o tax_v it_o allege_v place_n of_o the_o book_n which_o by_o a_o bad_a interpretation_n do_v seem_v to_o deserve_v censure_n and_o which_o be_v more_o touch_v the_o judgement_n and_o conscience_n of_o those_o bishop_n the_o arch_a bishop_n of_o prague_n the_o chief_a of_o that_o congregation_n in_o defence_n of_o himself_o and_o his_o colleague_n complain_v to_o the_o legate_n desire_v they_o will_v show_v themselves_o in_o the_o business_n and_o protest_v not_o to_o assist_v in_o any_o public_a act_n until_o the_o congregation_n have_v due_a satisfaction_n the_o cardinal_n morone_n interpose_v and_o make_v peace_n with_o these_o condition_n that_o no_o other_o copy_n of_o the_o faith_n make_v shall_v be_v give_v and_o that_o lerida_n shall_v give_v satisfaction_n of_o word_n to_o the_o congregation_n and_o to_o prague_n in_o particular_a and_o that_o all_o shall_v be_v forget_v on_o both_o side_n and_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n with_o unresistable_a entreaty_n get_v the_o testimony_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o agent_n of_o toledo_n and_o so_o this_o stir_n be_v appease_v the_o legate_n give_v the_o article_n of_o reformation_n to_o the_o ambassador_n in_o number_n thirty_o eight_o that_o they_o may_v commend_v to_o their_o consideration_n what_o please_v they_o before_o they_o be_v give_v to_o the_o father_n to_o be_v discuss_v which_o reformation_n 38._o article_n of_o reformation_n article_n be_v divide_v and_o one_o half_o allot_v for_o the_o next_o session_n and_o the_o other_o for_o the_o session_n follow_v for_o the_o reason_n which_o shall_v be_v relate_v hereafter_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n persuade_v the_o other_o ambassador_n to_o demand_v that_o deputy_n may_v be_v elect_v for_o every_o nation_n to_o consider_v what_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v reform_v because_o the_o model_n
of_o discipline_n wherewith_o it_o be_v maintain_v will_v disorder_v every_o thing_n the_o bishop_n say_v that_o a_o privilege_n be_v ever_o with_o detriment_n and_o derogation_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o revocation_n favourable_a reduce_v thing_n to_o their_o own_o nature_n and_o therefore_o to_o take_v they_o away_o be_v not_o to_o innovate_v but_o to_o restore_v thing_n to_o their_o ancient_a state_n on_o the_o other_o side_n it_o be_v answer_v that_o the_o exemption_n of_o the_o regulars_n be_v so_o well_o prescribe_v by_o antiquity_n that_o it_o can_v no_o more_o be_v call_v a_o privilege_n but_o common-law_n that_o when_o the_o monastery_n be_v subject_a to_o bishop_n the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n both_o in_o they_o and_o their_o canon_n be_v so_o well_o govern_v and_o so_o severe_a that_o it_o merit_v to_o superintend_v over_o all_o that_o if_o they_o will_v restore_v antiquity_n they_o must_v do_v it_o in_o all_o part_n that_o if_o bishop_n will_v return_v to_o be_v as_o they_o be_v in_o those_o time_n monastery_n may_v be_v subject_v to_o they_o now_o as_o than_o they_o be_v but_o it_o be_v not_o just_a that_o they_o shall_v demand_v the_o superintendency_n over_o monastery_n before_o they_o make_v themselves_o to_o be_v such_o as_o be_v necessary_a the_o rector_n of_o a_o regular_a life_n shall_v be_v the_o regulars_n be_v favour_v by_o the_o ambassador_n and_o by_o the_o legate_n for_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o court_n which_o will_v have_v lose_v a_o great_a instrument_n if_o they_o have_v not_o depend_v whole_o on_o it_o and_o they_o want_v not_o the_o favour_n of_o some_o prelate_n who_o confess_v their_o reason_n be_v good_a this_o contention_n continue_v certain_a day_n but_o do_v abate_v by_o little_a and_o little_a because_o the_o bishop_n who_o have_v move_v it_o do_v discover_v every_o day_n more_o difficulty_n in_o it_o the_o three_o article_n be_v concern_v the_o impediment_n which_o bishop_n receive_v from_o secular_a magistrate_n who_o to_o preserve_v the_o temporal_a power_n do_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o exercise_v that_o absolute_a dominion_n which_o they_o will_v not_o only_o over_o the_o clergy_n but_o over_o the_o people_n to_o this_o effect_n the_o reformation_n of_o prince_n be_v make_v whereof_o we_o have_v speak_v already_o and_o will_v hereafter_o more_o at_o large_a this_o part_n and_o other_o which_o cohere_v with_o it_o be_v defer_v until_o another_o session_n because_o it_o be_v think_v a_o difficult_a matter_n and_o that_o it_o will_v have_v much_o prolong_v the_o business_n but_o the_o bishop_n do_v expound_v this_o delay_n as_o if_o they_o have_v mean_v to_o have_v do_v nothing_o in_o it_o and_o they_o complain_v that_o purpose_v to_o reform_v the_o whole_a church_n the_o clergy_n only_o shall_v be_v reform_v the_o legate_n use_v all_o mean_n to_o appease_v they_o show_v that_o not_o this_o only_o be_v defer_v but_o other_o matter_n also_o which_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v handle_v promise_v that_o the_o delay_n be_v only_o to_o proceed_v with_o more_o maturity_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v certain_o be_v discuss_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o facilitate_v the_o dispatch_n of_o that_o session_n which_o shall_v be_v a_o preparatorie_n for_o the_o other_o in_o which_o all_o that_o remain_v shall_v be_v handle_v the_o legate_n be_v all_o bent_n to_o hold_v the_o session_n at_o the_o time_n appoint_v think_v it_o necessary_a for_o the_o quick_a dispatch_n of_o the_o council_n for_o which_o the_o pope_n by_o every_o ordinary_a currier_n and_o sometime_o by_o a_o extraordinary_a do_v solicit_v they_o that_o he_o may_v be_v set_v at_o liberty_n from_o it_o in_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o seven_o of_o september_n friar_n martinus_n roias_n ambassador_n for_o the_o hospitalary_n of_o s._n john_n of_o jerusalem_n now_o call_v knight_n of_o malta_n be_v receive_v which_o be_v defer_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a opposition_n of_o some_o principal_a bishop_n that_o he_o may_v not_o have_v receive_v the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o knight_n of_o malta_n be_v receive_v place_n above_o they_o say_v it_o be_v not_o just_a that_o a_o religion_n of_o friar_n shall_v precede_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o so_o many_o prelate_n but_o final_o the_o matter_n be_v accord_v and_o publish_v in_o congregation_n that_o place_n be_v give_v he_o among_o the_o ambassador_n without_o prejudice_n of_o the_o prelate_n who_o pretend_v precedence_n the_o ambassador_n make_v a_o oration_n and_o excuse_v their_o grand_a master_n who_o do_v not_o send_v to_o trent_n soon_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o rumour_n of_o the_o turkish_a armada_n and_o oration_n his_o oration_n of_o the_o incommodity_n they_o receive_v by_o dragut_n the_o pirate_n he_o exhort_v the_o father_n to_o remedy_v the_o present_a evil_n which_o also_o do_v not_o a_o little_a touch_n the_o friar_n of_o their_o religion_n who_o be_v not_o idle_a member_n of_o the_o christian_a commonwealth_n he_o persuade_v the_o extirpation_n of_o heresy_n offer_v that_o their_o grand_a master_n and_o society_n will_v take_v upon_o they_o the_o patronage_n and_o defence_n of_o the_o cause_n spend_v not_o their_o good_n only_o but_o their_o life_n and_o blood_n he_o relate_v the_o beginning_n of_o their_o religion_n which_o be_v forty_o year_n before_o godfrey_n do_v go_v to_o the_o conquest_n of_o the_o holy_a land_n the_o heroical_a work_n do_v by_o their_o ancestor_n the_o like_a whereof_o they_o can_v not_o perform_v now_o because_o they_o be_v spoil_v of_o a_o great_a part_n of_o their_o land_n and_o possession_n that_o they_o be_v a_o barracado_fw-it of_o sicily_n and_o italy_n against_o the_o barbarian_n therefore_o he_o pray_v the_o father_n to_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o antiquity_n nobility_n merit_n and_o danger_n of_o that_o society_n and_o to_o cause_v their_o possession_n and_o commendaes_n usurp_v from_o they_o to_o be_v restore_v and_o that_o it_o may_v be_v decree_v by_o the_o council_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v confer_v upon_o none_o but_o of_o their_o order_n ratify_v the_o immunity_n and_o privilege_n thereof_o the_o speaker_n receive_v the_o excuse_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o synod_n and_o promise_v that_o they_o will_v have_v that_o consideration_n as_o his_o demand_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o commendaes_n and_o privilege_n of_o that_o religion_n do_v deserve_v but_o howsoever_o he_o make_v the_o same_o instance_n afterward_o to_o the_o legate_n and_o the_o relation_n to_o the_o pope_n his_o holiness_n will_v never_o answer_v any_o thing_n but_o that_o it_o belong_v to_o he_o only_o to_o make_v provision_n herein_o and_o that_o he_o will_v do_v it_o in_o time_n convenient_a in_o that_o congregation_n and_o those_o that_o follow_v voice_n be_v give_v concern_v the_o 21_o article_n of_o reformation_n propose_v in_o which_o though_o there_o be_v nothing_o of_o great_a moment_n yet_o for_o the_o order_n of_o the_o story_n and_o declaration_n of_o many_o thing_n which_o happen_v afterward_o it_o be_v not_o amiss_o to_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o principal_a in_o the_o first_o which_o be_v of_o the_o election_n of_o bishop_n it_o be_v say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o obligation_n to_o provide_v the_o most_o worthy_a the_o difficulty_n former_o move_v do_v return_v that_o it_o will_v bind_v very_o strait_o the_o hand_n as_o of_o the_o pope_n in_o collation_n so_o of_o king_n and_o prince_n in_o the_o nomination_n if_o they_o be_v tie_v to_o nominate_v one_o person_n only_o and_o the_o great_a part_n be_v of_o opinion_n to_o remove_v the_o comparative_a and_o to_o say_v only_o that_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o provide_v a_o worthy_a person_n but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n some_o consider_v that_o the_o father_n have_v always_o use_v this_o manner_n of_o speech_n that_o prefer_v in_o the_o p_o 〈…〉_o mo_z 〈…〉_o pr._n 〈…〉_o the_fw-mi 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d worthy_a 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v prefer_v the_o most_o worthy_a shall_v be_v prefer_v and_o allege_v the_o reason_n that_o he_o can_v be_v without_o blame_n who_o prefer_v the_o least_o worthy_a though_o fit_a before_o a_o other_o of_o more_o desert_n there_o be_v much_o disputation_n herein_o but_o a_o mean_n be_v find_v to_o compose_v all_o leave_v in_o show_n the_o word_n more_o worthy_a and_o speak_v first_o in_o positive_a term_n and_o pass_v afterward_o to_o comparative_n that_o the_o provision_n may_v be_v understand_v to_o be_v free_a and_o so_o that_o form_n be_v use_v which_o be_v now_o in_o print_n that_o be_v that_o there_o be_v a_o obligation_n to_o provide_v good_a and_o fit_a pastor_n and_o that_o he_o do_v mortal_o sin_n who_o do_v not_o prefer_v the_o more_o worthy_a and_o more_o profitable_a to_o the_o church_n leave_v a_o natural_a exposition_n to_o these_o word_n that_o many_o be_v more_o worthy_a and_o more_o profitable_a in_o respect_n of_o other_o who_o be_v less_o in_o
of_o heresy_n and_o other_o say_v it_o be_v much_o to_o be_v suspect_v at_o the_o least_o and_o other_o that_o it_o be_v offensive_a to_o godly_a ear_n they_o say_v he_o have_v take_v occasion_n to_o do_v it_o in_o absence_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n who_o will_v never_o have_v endure_v those_o term_n and_o that_o his_o end_n be_v to_o dissolve_v the_o council_n that_o he_o do_v attribute_n to_o king_n more_o than_o belong_v to_o they_o that_o he_o infer_v that_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v not_o necessary_a for_o the_o use_n of_o church_n good_n that_o he_o make_v the_o french_a king_n like_o to_o the_o queen_n of_o england_n but_o nothing_o do_v so_o much_o offend_v as_o that_o he_o say_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o french_a king_n over_o person_n and_o good_n ecclesiastical_a be_v not_o found_v upon_o the_o pragmatique_a concordates_n and_o privilege_n give_v by_o pope_n but_o upon_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n holy_a scripture_n ancient_a counsel_n and_o law_n of_o the_o christian_a emperor_n the_o french_a ambassador_n be_v reprehend_v also_o because_o they_o do_v not_o follow_v the_o step_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o spanish_a ambassador_n who_o though_o they_o have_v the_o same_o interest_n make_v not_o such_o a_o commotion_n because_o they_o know_v there_o be_v no_o reason_n for_o it_o de_fw-fr ferrieres_n defend_v himself_o &_o say_v that_o the_o legate_n have_v promise_v the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n that_o this_o matter_n shall_v not_o be_v speak_v of_o but_o with_o such_o moderation_n as_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o touch_v the_o affair_n of_o france_n which_o be_v not_o perform_v that_o the_o king_n instruction_n have_v be_v impart_v to_o the_o cardinal_n who_o if_o he_o have_v be_v present_a will_v not_o only_o have_v consent_v to_o but_o counsel_v protestation_n that_o those_o be_v great_a ignorantes_fw-la who_o have_v see_v nothing_o but_o the_o decretal_n law_n of_o four_o hundred_o year_n do_v think_v that_o there_o be_v 〈◊〉_d ecclesiastical_a law_n before_o they_o that_o if_o any_o will_v reform_v the_o king_n by_o the_o decretal_n he_o will_v reform_v they_o by_o the_o decree_n and_o lead_v they_o also_o to_o more_o ancient_a time_n not_o only_o of_o saint_n austin_n but_o of_o the_o apostle_n also_o that_o he_o do_v not_o make_v the_o french_a king_n as_o the_o queen_n of_o england_n but_o do_v oppose_v they_o who_o have_v begin_v long_o since_o to_o enlarge_v their_o own_o authority_n by_o di_fw-it 〈…〉_o ing_z the_o king_n that_o if_o those_o article_n do_v so_o much_o damnify_v the_o emperor_n and_o catholic_a king_n as_o they_o do_v france_n they_o will_v never_o have_v be_v propose_v and_o therefore_o he_o be_v not_o to_o take_v example_n by_o those_o who_o have_v not_o equal_a interest_n the_o archbishop_n of_o sant_n and_o the_o abbot_n of_o claraval_a be_v distaste_v most_o of_o all_o who_o go_v up_o and_o down_o say_v that_o the_o ambassador_n have_v do_v ill_a to_o protest_v and_o that_o their_o end_n be_v to_o make_v a_o confusion_n and_o give_v occasion_n for_o a_o nationall_n council_n in_o france_n that_o they_o be_v man_n not_o well_o affect_v creature_n of_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n send_v by_o he_o to_o the_o council_n for_o his_o own_o deseigne_n have_v protest_v without_o the_o king_n commission_n &_o that_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o make_v they_o show_v their_o instruction_n &_o to_o frame_v a_o inquisition_n against_o they_o as_o not_o have_v a_o good_a opinion_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n where_o in_o great_a difference_n do_v arise_v between_o the_o ambassador_n and_o they_o the_o next_o day_n the_o ambassador_n give_v the_o king_n a_o account_n of_o the_o cause_n why_o they_o have_v defer_v the_o protestation_n until_o then_o and_o how_o they_o be_v force_v at_o that_o time_n to_o come_v unto_o it_o add_v that_o they_o will_v defer_v the_o register_n of_o it_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n until_o his_o majesty_n have_v see_v it_o and_o command_v they_o what_o they_o shall_v do_v the_o legate_n not_o have_v a_o copy_n of_o the_o oration_n make_v a_o collection_n of_o it_o by_o the_o memory_n of_o those_o who_o have_v beeene_v most_o attentive_a to_o send_v it_o to_o the_o pope_n of_o which_o the_o ferrieres_n have_v get_v a_o copy_n complain_v that_o many_o thing_n be_v express_v against_o his_o intention_n and_o in_o particular_a where_o he_o name_v ecclesiastical_a law_n it_o be_v repeat_v spiritual_a law_n and_o that_o king_n may_v take_v church_n good_n at_o their_o pleasure_n whereas_o he_o have_v say_v only_o for_o necessary_a cause_n by_o this_o he_o be_v force_v to_o give_v forth_o his_o oration_n and_o send_v a_o copy_n of_o it_o to_o rome_n to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n excuse_v himself_o for_o not_o have_v use_v word_n of_o such_o acrimony_n as_o he_o be_v command_v in_o the_o last_o instruction_n and_o in_o the_o first_o which_o be_v reconfirm_v in_o those_o add_v also_o that_o he_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o obey_v the_o king_n and_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o undergo_v the_o reprehension_n of_o the_o counsellor_n of_o parliament_n who_o will_v have_v tax_v he_o if_o in_o a_o general_n council_n matter_n of_o so_o great_a importance_n have_v be_v determine_v against_o that_o which_o have_v be_v by_o they_o so_o exact_o maintain_v beside_o the_o king_n authority_n which_o he_o defend_v have_v be_v uphold_v four_o hundred_o year_n by_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n against_o the_o war_n in_o opposition_n of_o it_o make_v by_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v not_o just_a that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n the_o great_a part_n of_o who_o be_v courtier_n shall_v be_v judge_n of_o the_o ancient_a difference_n which_o the_o kingdom_n have_v with_o that_o court_n he_o give_v a_o copy_n of_o the_o oration_n to_o the_o ambassador_n also_o and_o to_o as_o many_o as_o do_v desire_v it_o and_o some_o say_v that_o he_o have_v pronounce_v it_o otherwise_o then_o it_o be_v write_v whereunto_o he_o reply_v that_o that_o can_v not_o be_v say_v by_o any_o that_o have_v any_o mean_a understanding_n of_o the_o latin_a and_o that_o howsoever_o it_o be_v the_o same_o pronounce_v and_o write_v yet_o if_o they_o think_v otherwise_o they_o must_v remember_v that_o the_o stile_n of_o the_o synod_n be_v never_o to_o judge_v of_o thing_n as_o they_o be_v deliver_v in_o voice_n but_o as_o they_o be_v exhibit_v in_o writing_n and_o therefore_o they_o shall_v move_v no_o controversy_n herein_o or_o if_o they_o will_v himself_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v before_o any_o other_o the_o oration_n be_v publish_v it_o be_v answer_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o synod_n answer_v and_o answer_v by_o a_o nameless_a man_n he_o say_v that_o the_o french_a ambassador_n have_v reason_n to_o compare_v themselves_o to_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o jew_n because_o they_o have_v both_o make_v a_o unjust_a complaint_n against_o god_n and_o that_o the_o same_o answer_n may_v be_v give_v they_o which_o the_o prophet_n give_v to_o that_o people_n in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n that_o if_o they_o have_v fast_v and_o lament_v so_o many_o year_n or_o eat_v and_o drink_v all_o be_v for_o their_o own_o interest_n that_o the_o king_n of_o france_n be_v cause_n of_o all_o the_o abuse_n of_o that_o kingdom_n by_o name_v to_o bishopricke_n unlearned_a person_n ignorant_a in_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n and_o more_o incline_v to_o a_o lascivious_a then_o to_o a_o religious_a life_n that_o the_o frenchman_n will_v not_o have_v a_o resolution_n in_o the_o controversy_n of_o faith_n that_o christian_a doctrine_n may_v always_o be_v uncertain_a and_o place_n may_v be_v give_v to_o new_a master_n who_o may_v rub_v the_o itch_a ear_n of_o that_o unquiet_a nation_n that_o they_o spare_v not_o to_o say_v in_o those_o turbulent_a time_n that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o king_n though_o very_o young_a as_o yet_o to_o dispose_v of_o all_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o have_v say_v with_o asseveration_n that_o benefice_a man_n have_v only_o the_o use_n of_o the_o revenue_n whereas_o in_o france_n time_n out_o of_o mind_n they_o have_v carry_v themselves_o for_o usufructuary_n make_v testament_n and_o receive_v inheritance_n from_o their_o kinsfolk_n who_o die_v intestate_a that_o to_o say_v the_o poor_a be_v owner_n of_o the_o revenue_n be_v much_o contrary_n to_o another_o say_n in_o the_o same_o oration_n that_o the_o king_n be_v patron_n of_o all_o ecclesiastical_a good_n and_o may_v dispose_v of_o they_o at_o his_o pleasure_n that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a absurdity_n to_o say_v that_o the_o king_n may_v not_o be_v reprehend_v by_o a_o general_a council_n see_v that_o david_n be_v reprehend_v by_o the_o prophet_n nathan_n and_o take_v it_o in_o good_a part_n that_o it_o do_v
will_v not_o endure_v a_o reformation_n this_o be_v oppose_v by_o almost_o all_o the_o officer_n of_o the_o court_n represent_v their_o loss_n and_o preiudices_fw-la and_o show_v how_o all_o will_v redound_v to_o the_o offence_n of_o his_o holiness_n and_o of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o diminution_n of_o his_o revenue_n only_o hugo_n buoncompagno_n bishop_n of_o bestice_n who_o be_v cardinal_n afterward_o a_o man_n much_o conversant_a in_o court_n affair_n say_v he_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o wonder_n at_o this_o great_a fear_n which_o he_o see_v do_v arise_v without_o reason_n that_o by_o confirmation_n of_o the_o council_n more_o authority_n be_v not_o give_v it_o then_o other_o general_a counsel_n have_v or_o then_o be_v give_v to_o the_o decree_n or_o decretal_n by_o the_o great_a number_n of_o which_o and_o by_o their_o plain_a speak_v against_o the_o present_a manner_n many_o more_o preiudices_fw-la and_o offence_n may_v arise_v than_o can_v do_v by_o these_o few_o decree_n of_o trent_n much_o reserve_v in_o the_o former_a word_n that_o no_o law_n do_v consist_v in_o the_o term_n but_o in_o the_o meaning_n not_o in_o that_o which_o the_o vulgar_a and_o grammarian_n do_v give_v it_o but_o which_o use_n and_o authority_n do_v confirm_v that_o law_n have_v no_o power_n but_o what_o be_v give_v they_o by_o he_o that_o govern_v and_o have_v the_o care_n to_o execute_v they_o that_o he_o by_o his_o exposition_n may_v give_v they_o a_o more_o ample_a or_o a_o more_o strict_a sense_n yea_o and_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o the_o word_n do_v import_v and_o that_o it_o will_v be_v no_o more_o to_o restrain_v or_o moderate_v the_o decree_n of_o trent_n now_o then_o to_o suffer_v they_o to_o be_v restrain_v by_o use_n or_o by_o exposition_n in_o time_n convenient_a he_o conclude_v that_o he_o see_v no_o cause_n why_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o difficulty_n about_o the_o confirmation_n but_o he_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n to_o withstand_v present_o the_o inconvenience_n which_o may_v arise_v by_o the_o temeritie_n of_o the_o doctor_n who_o the_o more_o ignorant_a they_o be_v of_o government_n and_o public_a affair_n the_o more_o they_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o give_v interpretation_n to_o law_n which_o do_v confound_v authority_n that_o experience_n show_v that_o law_n do_v no_o hurt_n nor_o cause_v any_o suit_n but_o by_o the_o diverse_a sense_n give_v unto_o they_o that_o by_o the_o constitution_n of_o nicolas_n the_o three_o upon_o the_o rule_n of_o saint_n francis_n a_o matter_n full_a of_o ambiguity_n in_o itself_o never_o any_o disorder_n do_v arise_v because_o he_o forbid_v all_o glossator_n and_o commentator_n to_o expound_v it_o that_o if_o such_o provision_n be_v make_v for_o the_o decree_n of_o trent_n and_o all_o man_n forbid_v to_o write_v upon_o they_o a_o great_a part_n of_o that_o which_o be_v fear_v will_v be_v withstand_v but_o if_o his_o holiness_n will_v forbid_v all_o interpretation_n even_o to_o the_o judge_n also_o and_o ordain_v that_o in_o all_o doubt_n they_o shall_v come_v for_o exposition_n to_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n no_o man_n will_v be_v able_a to_o make_v use_n of_o the_o council_n in_o prejudice_n of_o the_o court_n which_o by_o use_n and_o by_o interpretation_n may_v be_v accommodate_v to_o that_o which_o will_v be_v for_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o church_n and_o as_o there_o be_v a_o congregation_n which_o with_o great_a fruit_n do_v take_v care_n of_o the_o inquisition_n so_o his_o holiness_n may_v appoint_v another_o for_o this_o particular_a of_o expound_v the_o council_n to_o who_o all_o doubt_n shall_v be_v refer_v from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n this_o be_v do_v he_o say_v he_o foresee_v that_o by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n the_o right_n and_o prerogative_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v not_o only_o not_o be_v diminish_v but_o increase_v and_o enlarge_v much_o in_o case_n they_o know_v how_o to_o make_v use_n of_o these_o mean_n those_o that_o hear_v he_o be_v move_v by_o these_o reason_n and_o the_o pope_n see_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o come_v to_o the_o absolute_a confirmation_n without_o any_o modification_n and_o be_v persuade_v that_o it_o will_v fall_v out_o as_o the_o bishop_n council_n all_o gloss_n or_o interpretation_n be_v forbid_v to_o be_v make_v upon_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n have_v say_v he_o be_v peremptory_a not_o to_o hearken_v to_o any_o thing_n that_o can_v be_v speak_v against_o it_o but_z full_a of_o hope_n to_o collect_v much_o fruit_n by_o the_o pain_n take_v for_o finish_v the_o council_n he_o resolve_v to_o confirm_v it_o to_o reserve_v the_o interpretation_n to_o himself_o and_o to_o institute_v a_o congregation_n as_o the_o bishop_n have_v counsel_v and_o have_v impart_v this_o to_o the_o cardinal_n apart_o he_o determine_v to_o effect_v it_o therefore_o the_o six_o and_o twenty_o of_o january_n morone_n and_o simoneta_n have_v relate_v in_o consistory_n the_o tenor_n of_o the_o decree_n make_v in_o the_o last_o session_n that_o the_o confirmation_n shall_v be_v desire_v by_o they_o they_o demand_v that_o his_o holiness_n will_v vouchsafe_v to_o confirm_v all_o that_o which_o have_v be_v decree_v and_o define_v in_o that_o council_n under_o paul_n julius_n and_o his_o holiness_n the_o pope_n first_o cause_v the_o decree_n to_o be_v read_v ask_v the_o opinion_n of_o all_o the_o cardinal_n they_o be_v all_o for_o the_o confirmation_n uniform_o except_o the_o cardinal_n saint_n clement_n and_o alexandrinus_n who_o say_v that_o too_o much_o authority_n have_v be_v give_v to_o bishop_n in_o that_o council_n and_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o moderate_v it_o and_o then_o to_o make_v a_o exception_n of_o those_o point_n that_o do_v enlarge_v it_o too_o much_o which_o be_v note_v already_o in_o the_o end_n the_o pope_n conclude_v that_o it_o be_v good_a to_o confirm_v all_o without_o exception_n and_o so_o he_o do_v in_o word_n in_o the_o consistory_n confirm_v they_o and_o command_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v receive_v and_o inviolable_o observe_v by_o all_o the_o faithful_a and_o the_o same_o day_n he_o publish_v a_o bull_n subscribe_v by_o all_o the_o cardinal_n in_o which_o have_v relate_v the_o cause_n of_o call_v the_o council_n the_o progress_n the_o impediment_n and_o difficulty_n which_o happen_v from_o time_n to_o time_n and_o his_o diligence_n in_o favour_v the_o liberty_n thereof_o grant_v they_o free_a power_n over_o the_o thing_n reserve_v to_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n he_o thank_v god_n that_o it_o be_v end_v with_o a_o entire_a consent_n therefore_o be_v desire_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o synod_n for_o confirmation_n know_v the_o decree_n to_o be_v all_o catholic_a and_o profitable_a for_o christian_n he_o have_v confirm_v they_o in_o consistory_n and_o do_v confirm_v they_o by_o that_o writing_n command_v all_o prelate_n to_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v observe_v and_o exhort_v the_o emperor_n king_n republic_n and_o prince_n to_o assist_v for_o the_o observation_n of_o they_o also_o to_o favour_v the_o prelate_n not_o to_o permit_v their_o people_n but_o rather_o to_o prohibit_v they_o by_o all_o mean_n to_o embrace_v opinion_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o council_n and_o to_o avoidconfusion_n for_o bad_a all_o sort_n of_o person_n as_o well_o clerk_n as_o laique_n to_o make_v any_o commentary_n gloss_n annotation_n or_o any_o interpretation_n whatsoever_o upon_o they_o or_o to_o make_v any_o kind_n of_o statute_n though_o under_o pretence_n of_o great_a strength_n or_o better_a execution_n of_o the_o decree_n but_o that_o if_o any_o obscure_a place_n want_v interpretation_n or_o decision_n they_o shall_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n because_o he_o do_v reserve_v unto_o himself_o power_n to_o declare_v the_o difficulty_n or_o controversy_n as_o also_o the_o synod_n have_v already_o decree_v this_o consistoriall_a act_n of_o confirmation_n and_o the_o bull_n be_v print_v together_o with_o the_o decree_n which_o give_v matter_n of_o speech_n it_o appear_v by_o the_o tenor_n of_o they_o that_o the_o decree_n have_v not_o vigour_n as_o constitute_v by_o the_o council_n but_o as_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n whereupon_o it_o be_v say_v that_o one_o have_v confirmation_n the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n have_v power_n from_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n hear_v the_o cause_n and_o another_o have_v give_v the_o sentence_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v see_v the_o decrce_n before_o he_o confirm_v they_o because_o it_o do_v appear_v by_o the_o consistoriall_a act_n that_o he_o have_v only_o see_v the_o decree_n for_o desire_v the_o confirmation_n they_o say_v also_o that_o the_o decree_v make_v under_o paul_n and_o julius_n be_v read_v in_o trent_n and_o that_o it_o be_v fit_a they_o shall_v be_v
sultan_n of_o great_a cairo_n be_v the_o most_o like_a in_o all_o the_o world_n to_o this_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o neither_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o sultan_n nor_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o mammaluke_n be_v hereditary_a but_o pass_v from_o one_o family_n to_o another_o do_v sometime_o fall_v upon_o stranger_n but_o the_o servility_n of_o the_o roman_n be_v more_o base_a than_o that_o of_o these_o egyptian_n and_o syrian_n for_o the_o infamy_n of_o these_o be_v somewhat_o cover_v in_o that_o the_o mammaluke_n be_v warlike_a and_o valiant_a man_n accustom_v to_o labour_n and_o whole_o averse_a from_o pleasure_n but_o who_o do_v the_o roman_n serve_v marry_v idle_a and_o slothful_a person_n stranger_n and_o such_o as_o many_o time_n be_v as_o base_a for_o their_o descent_n as_o for_o their_o manner_n it_o be_v high_a time_n to_o awake_v out_o of_o this_o lethargy_n and_o to_o remember_v that_o to_o be_v a_o roman_a be_v a_o most_o glorious_a name_n when_o it_o be_v accompany_v with_o virtue_n and_o that_o their_o shame_n be_v double_v who_o have_v forget_v the_o honour_n and_o renown_n of_o their_o ancestor_n they_o have_v now_o a_o most_o fit_a opportunity_n to_o free_v themselves_o for_o when_o the_o pope_n die_v the_o cardinal_n be_v disunite_v the_o grandee_n be_v of_o diverse_a faction_n italy_n be_v full_a of_o arm_n and_o tumult_n and_o the_o papal_a tyranny_n be_v now_o 〈◊〉_d more_o odious_a to_o all_o prince_n then_o ever_o it_o be_v before_o in_o a_o letter_n of_o mounseur_fw-fr de_fw-fr lansac_n the_o french_a ambassador_n resident_a in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n write_v to_o the_o king_n his_o master_n we_o have_v not_o as_o yet_o propose_v the_o article_n of_o reformation_n because_o we_o well_o perceive_v that_o they_o will_v give_v ear_n to_o nothing_o that_o may_v hinder_v the_o profit_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n beside_o the_o pope_n be_v so_o much_o master_n of_o this_o council_n that_o his_o pensioner_n whatsoever_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n or_o we_o do_v remonstrate_v unto_o they_o will_v do_v but_o what_o they_o listen_v in_o a_o letter_n of_o mounseur_fw-fr de_fw-fr pibrac_n the_o french_a ambassador_n in_o the_o say_a council_n to_o the_o queen_n mother_n my_o lord_n the_o legate_n together_o with_o the_o italian_a bishop_n which_o come_v from_o rome_n make_v a_o kind_n of_o decree_n that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v greatness_n this_o be_v do_v that_o nothing_o may_v be_v move_v in_o the_o council_n to_o diminish_v the_o pope_n greatness_n propose_v for_o the_o father_n to_o consult_v of_o but_o by_o the_o legate_n only_o or_o at_o the_o least_o nothing_o but_o what_o please_v they_o this_o we_o have_v see_v observe_v even_o to_o the_o shut_n up_o of_o the_o council_n in_o another_o place_n of_o the_o same_o letter_n madam_n that_o they_o may_v the_o better_o keep_v the_o power_n which_o they_o have_v to_o be_v the_o only_a man_n that_o may_v propose_v and_o put_v into_o consultation_n what_o please_v they_o they_o hold_v it_o for_o a_o matter_n already_o determine_v that_o the_o ambassador_n of_o prince_n may_v not_o make_v any_o remonstrance_n in_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o prelate_n fear_v perhaps_o that_o if_o they_o be_v hear_v and_o understand_v by_o the_o father_n they_o may_v yield_v to_o their_o demand_n especial_o be_v reasonable_a in_o a_o letter_n of_o queen_n mother_n to_o mounseur_fw-fr de_fw-fr lansac_n if_o the_o promise_n which_o the_o legate_n do_v make_v unto_o you_o and_o the_o opinion_n which_o i_o have_v of_o their_o dignity_n and_o integrity_n do_v compel_v i_o to_o hope_v for_o some_o good_a from_o the_o council_n on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o which_o i_o have_v hitherto_o observe_v concern_v their_o manner_n of_o proceed_v quite_o contrary_a to_o their_o word_n make_v i_o fear_v that_o this_o whole_a council_n of_o we_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o fair_a appearance_n of_o flour_n without_o any_o fruit_n or_o amendment_n at_o all_o the_o king_n of_o france_n in_o a_o letter_n to_o the_o lord_n du_fw-fr ferrier_n and_o pybrac_n his_o ambassador_n in_o the_o council_n my_o lord_n as_o far_o as_o i_o perceive_v by_o your_o letter_n of_o the_o eleven_o of_o this_o month_n i_o be_o quite_o out_o of_o all_o hope_n of_o that_o which_o i_o expect_v from_o the_o council_n in_o case_n the_o father_n do_v proceed_v to_o determine_v of_o the_o ecclesiastiques_n the_o these_o be_v article_n for_o the_o reformamation_n of_o secular_a prince_n which_o the_o legate_n set_v on_o foot_n to_o hinder_v the_o propose_v of_o the_o article_n for_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o ecclesiastiques_n article_n which_o they_o have_v be_v please_v to_o communicate_v unto_o you_o this_o will_v be_v to_o pare_v the_o nail_n of_o king_n and_o let_v their_o own_o grow_v etc._n etc._n in_o a_o letter_n to_o the_o king_n of_o france_n by_o the_o lord_n du_fw-fr ferrier_n and_o de_fw-fr pybrac_n his_o ambassador_n in_o the_o council_n september_n 25._o 1563._o of_o a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o prelate_n which_o then_o be_v present_a in_o the_o council_n a_o whole_a hundred_o have_v ecclesiastiques_n have_v a_o conspiracy_n in_o y_z e_z council_n to_o hinder_v the_o reformation_n of_o the_o ecclesiastiques_n conspire_v together_o and_o subscribe_v as_o the_o say_a legate_n have_v assure_v we_o not_o to_o vote_n any_o article_n of_o the_o say_a reformation_n until_o the_o article_n of_o prince_n be_v propose_v and_o give_v to_o the_o father_n this_o have_v not_o only_o be_v do_v but_o it_o have_v be_v do_v more_o rigorous_o contrary_a to_o all_o law_n both_o divine_a and_o humane_a then_o at_o the_o first_o etc._n etc._n andrew_z dudithius_n bishop_n of_o five_o church_n in_o a_o epistle_n to_o maximilian_n 2._o emperor_n in_o which_o he_o deliver_v his_o opinion_n about_o the_o minister_a of_o the_o cup_n to_o the_o laity_n and_o the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n what_o good_a can_v be_v do_v in_o that_o council_n in_o which_o the_o vote_n be_v not_o weigh_v but_o number_v if_o goodness_n of_o the_o cause_n if_o reason_n have_v be_v the_o weapon_n to_o fight_v withal_o though_o we_o be_v but_o few_o we_o have_v vanquish_v a_o great_a army_n of_o our_o enemy_n but_o see_v that_o number_n only_o come_v into_o the_o field_n in_o which_o we_o be_v far_o inferior_a to_o they_o though_o our_o cause_n be_v good_a we_o can_v not_o possible_o prevail_v the_o pope_n have_v a_o hundred_o for_o one_o and_o in_o case_n those_o have_v not_o be_v enough_o he_o can_v have_v create_v a_o thousand_o more_o to_o have_v help_v at_o a_o need_n we_o daily_o see_v hungry_a and_o needy_a bishop_n come_v to_o trent_n youth_n for_o the_o mostpart_n which_o do_v but_o begin_v to_o have_v beard_n give_v over_o to_o luxury_n and_o riot_n hire_v only_o to_o give_v their_o voice_n as_o the_o pope_n please_v they_o be_v both_o unlearned_a and_o simple_a yet_o fit_a for_o the_o purpose_n in_o regard_n of_o their_o impudent_a boldness_n when_o these_o be_v add_v to_o the_o pope_n old_a flatterer_n iniquity_n triumph_v and_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o determine_v of_o any_o thing_n but_o as_o they_o please_v who_o think_v it_o to_o be_v the_o high_a point_n of_o their_o religion_n to_o maintain_v the_o authority_n and_o luxury_n of_o the_o pope_n there_o be_v a_o grave_n and_o learned_a man_n who_o be_v not_o able_a to_o endure_v so_o great_a a_o indignity_n he_o be_v present_o traduce_v as_o be_v no_o good_a catholic_a and_o be_v terrify_v threaten_v and_o persecute_v that_o he_o may_v approve_v thing_n against_o his_o will_n in_o sum_n matter_n be_v bring_v to_o that_o pass_n by_o the_o iniquity_n of_o those_o who_o game_n thither_o fit_v and_o prepare_v that_o the_o council_n seem_v to_o consist_v not_o of_o bishop_n but_o of_o disguise_a masker_n not_o of_o man_n but_o of_o image_n such_o as_o deddas_n make_v that_o move_v by_o nerve_n which_o be_v none_o of_o their_o own_o they_o be_v 〈…〉_o ing_z bishop_n who_o as_o country_z bagpipe_n can_v not_o speak_v but_o as_o breath_n be_v put_v into_o they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v nothing_o to_o do_v in_o this_o assembly_n all_o the_o counsel_n give_v there_o proceed_v from_o humane_a policy_n and_o tend_v only_o to_o maintain_v the_o pope_n immoderate_a and_o shameful_a domination_n answer_n be_v expect_v from_o thence_o as_o from_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o dolphe_n and_o dodona_n the_o holy_a sp_z 〈…〉_o which_o as_o they_o boast_v do_v govern_v their_o counsel_n be_v send_v from_o thence_o in_o a_o postilion_n cloak-bag_n which_o in_o case_n of_o any_o inundation_n can_v not_o come_v thither_o a_o thing_n most_o ridiculous_a until_o the_o water_n be_v assuage_v so_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o upon_o the_o water_n as_o it_o be_v in_o genesis_n but_o
147_o the_o four_o apr._n 8._o 1546._o 162_o the_o five_o june_n 17._o 1546._o 184_o the_o sixth_o jan._n 13._o 1547._o 223_o the_o seven_o march_v 3._o 1547._o 263_o the_o eight_o march_v 11._o 1547._o 267_o the_o nine_o and_o first_o in_o bolonia_n april_n 21._o 1547_o 270_o the_o ten_o and_o second_o in_o bolonia_n june_n 11._o 1547._o 276_o the_o eleven_o session_n and_o first_o in_o the_o second_o reduction_n in_o trent_n may_v 1._o 1551_o 313_o the_o twelve_o and_o second_o in_o the_o second_o reduction_n in_o trent_n sept._n 1._o 1551._o 317_o the_o thirteen_o session_n oct._n 11._o 1551._o 339_o the_o fourteen_o novemb._n 25._o 1551._o 356_o the_o fifteen_o jan._n 25._o 1552._o 369_o the_o sixteenth_o which_o be_v the_o sixth_o and_o last_o under_o pope_n julius_n the_o three_o april_n 28._o 1552._o 376_o the_o seventeenth_o and_o first_o under_o pope_n pius_n the_o four_o feb._n 26._o 1562._o 469_o the_o eighteen_o and_o second_o under_o pius_n the_o four_o feb._n 26._o 1562._o 480_o the_o nineteenth_o may._n 14._o 1562_o 506_o the_o twenty_o june_n 4._o 1562._o 511_o the_o one_o and_o twenty_o jul._n 16._o 1562._o 539_o the_o two_o and_o twenty_o sept._n 17._o 1562._o 572_o the_o three_o and_o twenty_o jul._n 15._o 1563._o 737_o the_o four_o and_o twenty_o novem_n 11._o 1563._o 783_o the_o five_o and_o twenty_o and_o last_o of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n december_n 3._o and_o 4._o 1563._o 805_o session_n in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v no_o real_a difference_n from_o a_o general_a congregation_n 662_o silvester_n prierias_fw-la write_v against_o luther_n 6_o simoneta_n make_v a_o faction_n about_o the_o institution_n of_o bishop_n 607_o simony_n be_v discuss_v with_o all_o doubt_n belong_v to_o it_o 398_o 399_o 492_o etc._n etc._n simony_n be_v lay_v to_o the_o charge_n of_o pope_n pius_n the_o four_o 628_o smalcalda_n in_o which_o there_o be_v a_o great_a assembly_n of_o the_o protestant_n 77_o soto_n be_v suspect_v to_o be_v a_o lutheran_n 178_o write_v three_o book_n de_fw-fr natura_fw-la &_o gratia_fw-la as_o a_o commentary_n upon_o that_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n and_o be_v oppose_v by_o andreas_n vega._n 216_o 229_o be_v ready_a to_o die_v he_o write_v a_o letter_n to_o the_o pope_n concern_v conciliarie_n matter_n 693_o subscription_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n 813_o swiss_n be_v divide_v in_o religion_n 45_o make_v a_o league_n after_o the_o death_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la 60_o be_v invite_v to_o the_o council_n by_o the_o pope_n 164_o be_v much_o favour_v by_o pope_n julius_n the_o three_o 313_o supplication_n send_v out_o of_o france_n into_o spain_n 447_o suspension_n of_o the_o council_n be_v make_v for_o two_o year_n 376_o 377_o but_o continue_v ten_o year_n 381_o t_o thechel_n a_o dominican_n write_v again_o luther_n 5_o title_n of_o the_o council_n be_v much_o question_v 134_o 141_o 142_o 481._o titular_a bishop_n speak_v against_o and_o defend_v 717_o the_o bishop_n of_o conimbria_n speak_v against_o they_o 735_o tradition_n be_v di●oursed_v on_o 151_o 152_o etc._n etc._n be_v make_v to_o ●e_v of_o equal_a authority_n with_o the_o scripture_n 154_o translation_n of_o the_o council_n to_o bolonia_n be_v resolve_v on_o in_o rome_n 259_o and_o execute_v in_o trent_n 266_o 267_o etc._n etc._n the_o discussion_n of_o the_o cause_n thereof_o be_v refer_v to_o certain_a delegate_n in_o rome_n 283_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n what_o it_o be_v 6_o trent_n be_v name_v for_o the_o place_n to_o hold_v the_o council_n in_o but_o the_o protestant_n will_v not_o consent_v 101_o the_o legate_n be_v recall_v from_o trent_n because_o they_o be_v leave_v alone_o 104_o and_o be_v send_v thither_o again_o 111_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v protest_v against_o by_o the_o protestant_n 126_o it_o begin_v the_o 13._o of_o december_n anno_fw-la dom._n 1545_o 129_o 130_o v._n vergerius_n be_v send_v nuncio_n to_o king_n ferdinand_n 52_o be_v make_v nuncio_n in_o the_o place_n of_o hugo_n rangone_n bishop_n of_o rheggio_n 66_o be_v recall_v out_o of_o germany_n 72_o and_o send_v back_o 73_o his_o negotiation_n 74_o return_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o be_v reward_v 78_o go_v to_o the_o colloquy_n in_o worm_n under_o a_o false_a name_n 93_o fly_v to_o the_o council_n for_o succour_n and_o after_o quit_v both_o it_o and_o italy_n 154_o discover_v the_o plot_n of_o the_o romanist_n to_o the_o swiss_n and_o grison_n 345_o write_v against_o the_o bull_n of_o the_o intimation_n of_o the_o council_n 436_o be_v in_o valtellina_n make_v objection_n against_o the_o council_n 743_o vincentia_fw-la be_v choose_v to_o hold_v the_o council_n in_o 84_o three_o legate_n be_v send_v thither_o 85_o the_o council_n be_v defer_v 86_o and_o afterward_o suspend_v during_o pleasure_n 90_o the_o venetian_n will_v not_o suffer_v the_o council_n to_o be_v hold_v in_o vincentia_fw-la 100_o virgin_n marie_n be_v exempt_v from_o sin_n by_o the_o franciscan_n 175_o 180_o how_o she_o come_v to_o be_v worship_v 181_o 182_o unction_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o it_o 350_o 351_o unction_n of_o benefice_n be_v invent_v to_o palliate_v plurality_n 251_o university_n of_o louvain_n &_o collen_n condemn_v luther_n book_n 9_o and_o so_o do_v the_o university_n of_o paris_n 16_o voice_n in_o council_n to_o who_o they_o belong_v by_o right_a 62_o how_o they_o have_v be_v give_v in_o council_n in_o all_o age_n 135_o whether_o they_o may_v be_v give_v by_o proctor_n 707_o vulgar_a tongue_n in_o the_o church_n what_o inconvenience_n it_o bring_v 460_o how_o it_o have_v be_v use_v in_o former_a time_n 577_o 578_o w._n waldense_n or_o albigenses_n in_o the_o alps_n 3_o be_v miserable_o slay_v by_o the_o frenchman_n 119_o obtain_v a_o great_a victory_n against_o the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n 446_o war_n between_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o french_a king_n 102_o the_o pope_n do_v more_o intend_v the_o war_n against_o the_o protestant_n than_o the_o council_n 144_o rumour_n of_o the_o protestant_n arm_n cause_v the_o counsel_n to_o be_v suspend_v 377_o war_n in_o france_n between_o the_o protestant_n and_o papist_n 647_o wolsey_n be_v delegated_a by_o the_o pope_n to_o hear_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o divorce_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o 68_o work_n of_o good_a man_n how_o they_o be_v to_o be_v value_v 196_o work_n before_o grace_n 198_o work_n after_o grace_n 199_o z._n zvinglius_fw-la in_o zuric_n oppose_v the_o pope_n begin_v from_o the_o abuse_n of_o indulgence_n preach_v by_o friar_n samson_n among_o the_o swiss_n 9_o the_o bishop_n of_o constance_n write_v and_o the_o dominican_n preach_v against_o he_o by_o which_o mean_n he_o be_v the_o more_o stir_v up_o 16_o his_o difference_n with_o luther_n 48_o be_v slay_v in_o battle_n 59_o zuric_n make_v a_o decree_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o reform_a religion_n 17_o finis_fw-la london_n ¶_o print_a by_o bonham_n norton_n and_o john_n bill_n printer_n to_o the_o king_n most_o excellent_a majesty_n anno_fw-la dom._n m._n dc_o xxix_o
himself_o of_o those_o affair_n and_o return_v assoon_o as_o be_v possible_a seek_v to_o give_v the_o pope_n all_o satisfaction_n and_o to_o make_v he_o his_o friend_n and_o for_o matter_n of_o the_o council_n not_o to_o think_v on_o they_o more_o than_o his_o conscience_n and_o honour_n do_v compel_v he_o she_o add_v that_o he_o shall_v have_v the_o same_o authority_n in_o the_o kingdom_n as_o he_o have_v before_o and_o therefore_o shall_v hasten_v his_o return_n the_o queen_n letter_n come_v to_o rome_n and_o trent_n in_o the_o end_n of_o may_n which_o as_o they_o be_v very_o grateful_a to_o the_o pope_n and_o make_v he_o believe_v he_o shall_v see_v a_o good_a end_n of_o the_o council_n so_o a_o other_o accident_n do_v much_o displease_v he_o for_o in_o france_n consultation_n be_v have_v how_o to_o pay_v the_o debt_n of_o the_o crown_n the_o leave_n ecclesiastical_a good_n be_v alien_v in_o france_n without_o the_o pope_n leave_n decree_n for_o alien_v the_o value_n of_o one_o hundred_o thousand_o crown_n of_o ecclesiastical_a immooveable_a good_n be_v confirm_v by_o the_o king_n edict_n and_o sentence_n of_o the_o parliament_n this_o raise_v a_o great_a tumult_n of_o the_o priest_n who_o say_v their_o privilege_n and_o immunity_n be_v violate_v and_o that_o sacred_a thing_n can_v not_o be_v alien_v for_o any_o cause_n whatsoever_o without_o the_o authority_n and_o decree_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o pacify_v which_o noise_n the_o ambassador_n desire_v his_o holiness_n to_o give_v his_o consent_n allege_v that_o the_o king_n be_v exhaust_v by_o the_o last_o war_n deseign_v to_o put_v his_o affair_n in_o order_n that_o he_o may_v begin_v as_o his_o purpose_n ever_o be_v since_o the_o make_n of_o the_o peace_n to_o reunite_v all_o the_o kingdom_n in_o the_o catholic_a religion_n and_o that_o he_o may_v be_v able_a to_o force_v whosoever_o shall_v oppose_v he_o mean_v to_o impose_v a_o subsidy_n and_o to_o cause_v the_o clergy_n to_o contribute_v their_o part_n also_o whereunto_o the_o church_n be_v so_o much_o more_o bind_v than_o other_o by_o how_o much_o her_o interest_n be_v more_o in_o question_n that_o all_o be_v consider_v nothing_o be_v find_v to_o be_v more_o easy_a then_o to_o supply_v that_o necessity_n with_o the_o alienation_n of_o some_o few_o ecclesiastical_a revenue_n wherein_o he_o desire_v the_o consent_n of_o his_o holiness_n the_o pope_n answer_v that_o the_o demand_n be_v paint_v forth_o with_o a_o fair_a pretence_n angry_a which_o make_v the_o pope_n angry_a of_o defend_v the_o church_n but_o be_v the_o only_a way_n to_o ruin_v it_o for_o the_o avoid_v whereof_o his_o secure_a course_n be_v not_o to_o consent_v to_o it_o and_o howsoever_o some_o may_v think_v that_o the_o french_a will_v proceed_v to_o execution_n without_o he_o yet_o he_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o leave_n will_v not_o have_v be_v demand_v in_o case_n they_o can_v have_v find_v buyer_n without_o it_o think_v that_o none_o will_v dare_v to_o adventure_v their_o money_n fear_v as_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o world_n be_v uncertain_a a_o time_n may_v come_v in_o which_o the_o ecclesiastique_n will_v resume_v their_o rent_n and_o not_o restore_v the_o price_n therefore_o have_v propose_v the_o business_n in_o consistory_n by_o the_o deliberation_n of_o the_o cardinal_n he_o resolve_v not_o to_o consent_v but_o by_o diverse_a excuse_n to_o show_v it_o be_v impossible_a to_o obtain_v that_o demand_n at_o his_o hand_n lorraine_n bear_v a_o irreconciliable_a hate_n to_o the_o hugonot_n not_o so_o much_o for_o religion_n as_o for_o faction_n which_o himself_o and_o his_o house_n have_v always_o with_o they_o be_v assure_v it_o be_v impossible_a to_o reconcile_v friendship_n be_v much_o displease_v that_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o peace_n do_v proceed_v for_o his_o return_n into_o france_n he_o think_v fit_a to_o consider_v very_o well_o when_o and_o in_o what_o manner_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v and_o for_o his_o particular_a affair_n he_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o hold_v good_a intelligence_n with_o the_o pope_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o with_o the_o minister_n of_o spain_n also_o more_o than_o former_o he_o have_v do_v therefore_o he_o begin_v from_o that_o day_n not_o to_o be_v so_o severe_a in_o procure_v the_o reformation_n and_o to_o show_v great_a reverence_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o to_o have_v good_a correspondence_n with_o the_o legate_n but_o beside_o the_o trouble_n for_o the_o demand_n of_o the_o alienation_n the_o pope_n have_v another_o of_o no_o loss_n weight_n for_o have_v often_o promise_v the_o french_a ambassador_n ambassador_n agreat_a difference_n in_o rome_n about_o precedence_n between_o the_o french_a and_o spanish_a ambassador_n to_o give_v he_o his_o due_a place_n at_o whitsuntide_n and_o desire_v to_o perform_v it_o he_o assemble_v some_o cardinal_n to_o find_v a_o mean_n to_o give_v the_o spanish_a ambassador_n satisfaction_n the_o course_n be_v propose_v one_o to_o give_v he_o place_n under_o the_o deacon_n on_o the_o left_a hand_n another_z upon_o a_o stool_n at_o the_o top_n of_o the_o deacon_n bench_n but_o these_o do_v not_o take_v away_o the_o difficulty_n for_o there_o remain_v still_o matter_n of_o our_o currencie_n in_o bear_v the_o train_n of_o his_o holiness_n and_o give_v water_n for_o his_o hand_n when_o he_o do_v celebrate_v the_o mass_n and_o in_o receive_v incense_n and_o the_o pax_n the_o difficulty_n of_o the_o train_n and_o the_o water_n do_v not_o press_v the_o 〈…〉_o because_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o to_o celebrate_v and_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n be_v to_o be_v there_o for_o the_o incense_n and_o the_o pax_n a_o temper_n be_v find_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v give_v to_o all_o on_o the_o right_a side_n even_o to_o the_o ambassador_n of_o florence_n also_o who_o be_v the_o last_o and_o then_o to_o those_o on_o the_o left_a the_o french_a be_v not_o content_a with_o this_o and_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v promise_v he_o his_o place_n and_o that_o the_o spaniard_n either_o shall_v not_o come_v or_o shall_v stand_v under_o he_o and_o will_v depart_v from_o rome_n if_o this_o be_v not_o perform_v and_o it_o please_v the_o spanish_a ambassador_n as_o little_a whereupon_o the_o pope_n send_v he_o word_n that_o he_o be_v resolute_a to_o give_v the_o french_a ambassador_n his_o place_n the_o spaniard_n answer_v that_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v resolute_a to_o do_v he_o that_o grievance_n he_o will_v read_v a_o write_n to_o he_o the_o cardinal_n who_o treat_v with_o he_o in_o the_o pope_n name_n show_v he_o it_o be_v not_o good_a to_o do_v so_o before_o his_o holiness_n have_v see_v it_o lest_z not_o be_v know_v before_o some_o inconvenience_n may_v arise_v the_o ambassador_n be_v unwilling_a to_o give_v it_o but_z in_o the_o end_n be_v content_a which_o the_o pope_n have_v read_v be_v very_o angry_a at_o the_o form_n of_o word_n which_o ambassador_n the_o protestation_n of_o the_o spanish_a ambassador_n he_o say_v be_v impertinent_a final_o he_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o pope_n chamber_n with_o four_o witness_n where_o he_o read_v his_o protestation_n on_o his_o knee_n which_o do_v contain_v that_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n ought_v to_o precede_v the_o french_a king_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o antiquity_n power_n and_o greatness_n of_o spain_n and_o of_o the_o multitude_n of_o his_o other_o kingdom_n by_o which_o he_o be_v the_o great_a and_o most_o potent_a king_n of_o the_o world_n because_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v ever_o be_v defend_v and_o preserve_v in_o his_o state_n that_o if_o his_o holiness_n will_v declare_v or_o have_v declare_v in_o word_n or_o writing_n in_o favour_n of_o france_n the_o grievance_n and_o injustice_n be_v notorious_a therefore_o he_o in_o the_o name_n of_o his_o king_n do_v contradict_v all_o declaration_n of_o precedence_n or_o equality_n in_o favour_n of_o france_n as_o frustrate_v and_o void_a against_o the_o notorious_a right_n of_o his_o catholic_a majesty_n and_o if_o it_o have_v be_v make_v there_o be_v a_o nullity_n in_o it_o be_v do_v without_o knowledge_n of_o the_o cause_n and_o citation_n of_o the_o party_n and_o that_o his_o holiness_n do_v this_o will_v because_v of_o great_a inconvenience_n in_o all_o christendom_n the_o pope_n answer_v admit_v the_o protestation_n si_fw-mi and_o in_o quantum_fw-la excuse_v himself_o for_o the_o citation_n omit_v because_o he_o give_v nothing_o to_o the_o french_a man_n but_o preserve_v the_o place_n in_o which_o he_o have_v ever_o seen●_n they_o next_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n but_o offer_v notwithstanding_o to_o commit_v the_o cause_n to_o the_o college_n of_o cardinal_n or_o to_o the_o whole_a rota_n add_v that_o he_o love_v the_o king_n and_o will_v do_v he_o all_o the_o good_a office_n he_o can_v the_o ambassador_n reply_v that_o his_o